diff options
| -rw-r--r-- | .gitattributes | 4 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | LICENSE.txt | 11 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | README.md | 2 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-0.txt | 7822 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-0.zip | bin | 114296 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-h.zip | bin | 391775 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-h/66940-h.htm | 9216 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-h/images/cover.jpg | bin | 247761 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-h/images/title_p_ilo.jpg | bin | 20503 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/66940-h/images/verso_ilo.jpg | bin | 2984 -> 0 bytes |
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 17038 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes new file mode 100644 index 0000000..d7b82bc --- /dev/null +++ b/.gitattributes @@ -0,0 +1,4 @@ +*.txt text eol=lf +*.htm text eol=lf +*.html text eol=lf +*.md text eol=lf diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6312041 --- /dev/null +++ b/LICENSE.txt @@ -0,0 +1,11 @@ +This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements, +metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be +in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES. + +Procedures for determining public domain status are described in +the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org. + +No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in +jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize +this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright +status under the laws that apply to them. diff --git a/README.md b/README.md new file mode 100644 index 0000000..2c70a2e --- /dev/null +++ b/README.md @@ -0,0 +1,2 @@ +Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for +eBook #66940 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/66940) diff --git a/old/66940-0.txt b/old/66940-0.txt deleted file mode 100644 index 0009ebf..0000000 --- a/old/66940-0.txt +++ /dev/null @@ -1,7822 +0,0 @@ -The Project Gutenberg eBook of In a Yellow Wood, by Gore Vidal - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and -most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms -of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at -www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you -will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before -using this eBook. - -Title: In a Yellow Wood - -Author: Gore Vidal - -Release Date: December 13, 2021 [eBook #66940] - -Language: English - -Character set encoding: UTF-8 - -Produced by: Andrés V. Galia, Sally Dunne, Joyce, Inatale and the Online - Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This - book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust - Digital Library.) - -*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN A YELLOW WOOD *** - - - TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES - -In the plain text version words in Italics are denoted by _underscores_. - -The book cover was modified by the transcriber and has been added to -the public domain. - -A number of words in this book have both hyphenated and non-hyphenated -variants. For the words with both variants present the one more used -has been kept. - -Obvious punctuation and other printing errors have been corrected. - -The Table of Contents was added by the transcriber. - - - * * * * * - - - IN A YELLOW WOOD - - - NOVELS BY _Gore Vidal_ - - IN A YELLOW WOOD - WILLIWAW - - - - - IN A - YELLOW WOOD - - By - - GORE VIDAL - - [Illustration] - - 1947 - - E. P. DUTTON & COMPANY, INC. - - NEW YORK - - - _Copyright, 1947, by E. P. Dutton & Co., Inc._ - _All rights reserved. Printed in the U.S.A._ - - [Illustration] - - FIRST EDITION - - NO PART _of this book may be reproduced - in any form without permission in writing - from the publisher, except by a reviewer - who wishes to quote brief passages in connection - with a review written for inclusion in - magazine or newspaper or radio broadcast._ - - - _American Book-Stratford Press, Inc., New York_ - - - _For Anais Nin_ - - - _All of the characters, all of the events and - most of the places in this book are fictitious._ - - - - - CONTENT - - Pg. - - 1 DAY 7 - - CHAPTER ONE 9 - - CHAPTER TWO 18 - - CHAPTER THREE 31 - - CHAPTER FOUR 46 - - CHAPTER FIVE 59 - - CHAPTER SIX 73 - - CHAPTER SEVEN 86 - - CHAPTER EIGHT 103 - - - 2 NIGHT 113 - - CHAPTER NINE 115 - - CHAPTER TEN 143 - - CHAPTER ELEVEN 166 - - CHAPTER TWELVE 180 - - 3 THE YELLOW WOOD 195 - - CHAPTER THIRTEEN 197 - - CHAPTER FOURTEEN 209 - - - - - 1 - DAY - - - _Two roads diverged in a yellow wood, - And sorry I could not travel both - And be one traveller._... - - --FROST - - -From _Collected Poems_ by Robert Frost. Copyright, 1930, 1939, by -Henry Holt and Company, Inc. Copyright, 1936, by Robert Frost. - - - - - _Chapter One_ - -Robert Holton removed several dark hairs from his comb and wondered if -his hairline was receding. He squinted for a moment at himself in the -mirror and decided that he was not losing his hair, not yet anyway. - -Then he sat down on the edge of the bed and put on his shoes. He -started to tie the laces of the left shoe when he began to think of his -dream. He had many dreams: of flying through the air, of walking in -empty rooms, of all the standard things that psychiatrists like to hear -about. Unfortunately, in the morning he could seldom recall what he had -dreamed the night before. He would remember the sensation of the dream -but nothing else. He would remember if it had been good or bad but that -was all. Last night his dream had been unpleasant and something in the -room had suddenly recalled it to him. - -Robert Holton frowned and tried to remember. Was it the carpet? He had -looked at the carpet while tying his shoe. He looked at it now. The -carpet was dusty and uninteresting. It was a solid brown color; the -same carpet that covered the floor of every hotel room in New York. No, -the carpet was not connected with his dream. - -He had been standing at the dresser while combing his hair. He looked -at the dresser: plain dull wood with dull scroll work about the mirror. -On the dresser was a dingy white cloth and on the cloth were a pair -of brushes, his wallet, and a collection of small things. Nothing -suggested an unpleasant dream. - -The morning light glowed yellowly through the window shade. There was a -band of brighter light between the bottom of the shade and the window -sill and here the daylight shone into the square room where Robert -Holton lived. He looked at the sunlight a moment and forgot his dream. - -He glanced at his watch: fifteen minutes to eight. He had to be at the -office at eight-thirty. Quickly he tied his shoes and got to his feet. -He searched through the bureau drawers for a shirt. He found a white -one and put it on. Before the war he had worn colored shirts but now -plain white ones seemed more sound. And then it was a good idea not to -be too vivid when you worked for a brokerage house. - -His tie was pretty, though. It was a striped one, blue and white. Not -a dark sullen blue but a light and casual blue. As he knotted his tie -in front of the mirror he noticed his face was pale. He was always pale -in the morning, of course; still, he looked unhealthy in the city. This -morning he looked paler than usual. There were no pouches under his -eyes, though, and he was glad of that. Robert Holton looked younger -than twenty-six. His features were boyish and undistinguished and -certain women had said that he was handsome. Robert Holton had looked -well in uniform. - -He put on his trousers and tightened the belt. Robert Holton, though he -had never been much of an athlete, had a good build. Sitting at desks, -however, would ruin it sooner or later and the thought made him sad. -There was nothing he could do, of course, for he would always sit at -desks. - -He picked up his coat from the chair where he had hung it the night -before and put it on. He posed for a moment in front of the mirror. -Perhaps he was not handsome but he was nicer looking than a great many -people and it is better to be nicer looking than a great many people -than to be unusually handsome. - -Robert Holton turned from the window and went into the bathroom. His -watch was on the tile floor beside the bathtub where he had left it the -night before. He set the watch by his alarm clock. - -Again he tried to recall his dream. On the wall there was a picture -of some apples on a table. A Frenchman had painted the picture twenty -years before. It had been reproduced and the hotel had bought several -copies because they were cheap and because the manager’s wife had -thought the picture pleasant. Robert Holton liked the picture. It -seemed to suggest his dream to him more than anything else in the room. -He studied the picture but he could not remember the dream. The picture -only made him uneasy. He looked away. - -He went to the closet and took out his trench coat. He had bought it -when he became a lieutenant three years before. - -It was almost eight o’clock now. Robert Holton opened the door of his -room and stepped out into the corridor. - -There was a difference in smell. The corridor smelled old and dusty as -though no one had walked down it in years. Robert Holton in the one -year he had lived in this hotel had never seen anyone else come out of -a room. Sometimes he wondered if he might not be the only person living -on this floor, or in this hotel, or in the world. - -The ceiling of the corridor was high and he enjoyed walking under such -a high ceiling. He walked to the elevator and pressed the button marked -“Down.” - -There was a large pot filled with white sand beside the elevator door. -He had always wanted to put something into that white sand. A cigarette -butt, anything at all to spoil the white smooth surface. One day he -would spit on the sand; he made himself that promise. - -There was a clatter as the elevator went past his floor. That always -happened. He pushed the button angrily. - -Robert Holton tried to recall what he was supposed to do that day at -the office. He could think of nothing very important that had to be -done. In the afternoon he was supposed to go to a cocktail party and -he looked forward to that. Mrs Raymond Stevanson was giving it and she -was a very proper person to know. She had been a friend of his mother’s -and she had been nice to Robert Holton when his mother had died several -years earlier. His father thought Mrs Raymond Stevanson was stupid but -his father was often harsh and she was, after all, important socially. -When one was starting out in the brokerage business contacts were -important. He began to map his day in detail. - -There was a loud rattling and the elevator stopped at his floor. The -door opened and Robert Holton stepped into the elevator. - -“Good morning, Mr Holton,” said the elevator boy, a young man in his -middle teens. - -“Good morning, Joe. What kind of a day is it?” - -“Wonderful out. Real warm for this time of year. Real Indian summer -outside. Real nice weather.” - -“That’s fine,” said Robert Holton, glad to hear that the weather was -good. - -“Any news on the market?” asked Joe, stopping at the seventh floor. - -“Nothing new.” A middle-aged man, tall and thin, came into the -elevator. Robert Holton had seen him almost every day for a year but -they never spoke. The middle-aged man wore a black shiny topcoat and he -carried a large leather brief case in which the outlines of an apple -could be seen. - -“I guess there’s nothing for me to put my money in, I guess,” said Joe. - -“I shouldn’t advise buying now,” said Robert Holton. It was a daily -joke of theirs. Joe would pretend he had money to invest and wanted -advice. - -They stopped at the second floor and another tall thin man in a shiny -black overcoat got into the elevator. This man had a red face, though, -and the other man had a white face. Neither of them ever spoke. Robert -Holton often wondered what they did for a living, whether they had -wives or not. - -“Well, here we are,” said Joe, opening the door. “We made it all right -this time.” - -“We certainly did.” Robert Holton followed the two older men out of the -elevator and into the lobby. - -The lobby was high-ceilinged and old-fashioned. Tropical bushes grew -in buckets and a gray chandelier was suspended from the center of the -ceiling. At the desk sat a faded little woman. - -She nodded to Robert Holton and he nodded to her. They never spoke. He -picked up a newspaper from the desk, looked at his mail box to see if -he might have overlooked something the night before. Finding nothing, -he put three cents in a saucer beside the newspapers. - -Robert Holton went outside. The morning was clear and cool. There was -a depth, a golden depth in the air. There was no time of the year as -pleasant as autumn, thought Robert Holton; unless it was spring. He -liked spring, too. - -He walked down the not yet busy side street where he lived. His -footsteps sounded sharp and loud on the pavement. The brownstone houses -that lined the street seemed large and significant this morning. -Perhaps it was because of the clearness of the day. He noticed details -in the stone that he had never noticed before. For instance, one of -the houses was built of oddly pitted stone. He had seen another place -built of pitted stone. He thought a moment: Notre Dame, the cathedral -in Paris. During the war he had seen it. He had even walked up a great -many winding steps to get to the top. At the top he had noticed the -pitted stone which had proved, somehow or other, that the building was -very old. - -Sleepy children were coming out of the houses. They walked down the -street to the bus stop, schoolbooks under their arms. There was a smell -of bacon and coffee in the air and Robert Holton’s stomach contracted -hungrily. - -At the end of the street was the subway station. Every morning he -disappeared down it and every evening he came up out of it. He spent a -lot of time in the subway. - -He went down the dirty cement steps. He put a nickel into the turnstile -and walked out onto the cement platform. Twenty or thirty men and women -stood on the platform with him, waiting for the downtown train. - -The express went crashing by them. The noise of these trains was -terrific. After it had passed he had to yawn several times to clear the -deafness from his ears. Then the local stopped and he got aboard. - -He sat next to a stout man who lived in his hotel. Occasionally they -would speak. - -“How’s the market?” asked the fat man, deciding not to read his paper. - -“The market’s doing fine, should go up.” - -“Well, that sure is good news. I’ve a little bit that I’d like to -put in it. I’d like to put it in something safe, though. You know of -something safe? Something that’s going to go way up, say?” - -“Well, that’s a hard question. It’s very hard to tell just yet. Sugar’s -doing well,” said Robert Holton. He always said the same things to -these questions. No one cared what he said. They would repeat it to -acquaintances, saying that a friend of theirs in Wall Street had -advised them to buy sugar but they didn’t feel it was such a good buy -at this time. - -“You was in the army, weren’t you?” asked the stout man suddenly. - -Robert Holton nodded. - -“Been out long?” - -“Over a year.” - -“I’ll bet you was glad to get out. To get away from all those rules and -things, those restrictions. I was in the army in the last war. I guess -the one before last, you’d call it now. I was sure glad to get out.” - -“Everyone is,” said Robert Holton and he thought of the things that he -had done in London. He had liked London. - -“You went to college, didn’t you?” asked the stout man; he was trying -to clear up something in his mind. - -“That’s right.” - -“That’s what I thought. Me, I never had the opportunity. I had to go -to work,” said the stout man with pride. “I had to work when I was a -youngster. I never went to college.” - -“It’s a good experience,” said Robert Holton, wishing the man would -read his paper and stop asking questions. The train went around a -corner noisily; blue electric sparks sparkled outside the window. Then -the train straightened out again. - -“I’m in the grocery business,” said the stout man. - -“I know,” said Robert Holton, “we’ve talked about that before.” - -“I started right in at the bottom,” said the stout man. - -“That’s the best place to start,” said Robert Holton, feeling that -there was no answer to this. He was wrong. - -“Well, I don’t know. It’s hard to say. How _did_ you like the -army?” - -“It wasn’t bad.” - -“It wasn’t good neither. I never got overseas last time, I mean time -before last, but we had it rough in training.” - -“I can imagine.” Robert Holton looked away and the stout man stopped -talking. Robert Holton looked at the upper moulding of the car to see -if there were any new advertisements. There weren’t any. His special -favorite, a girl advertising beer, was behind him and he couldn’t see -it. Gloomily he examined a fat red child devouring a piece of bread. -This was the advertisement he liked least. He looked away. - -A woman with a small child sat across from him, directly under the -bread advertisement. The woman was heavy with a roll of flesh around -her middle; she wore a tight black dress. The child with her was about -the age of the one in the picture. This child was pale, though, pale -and fat. - -A Negro was asleep next to the woman and child. He was long and thin -and his bare ankles and wrists looked like brown wood. Two Jewish -secretaries with yellow hair talked brightly together. They were young -women and wore gaily colored clothes and their plump legs were hairless -and pink. - -An old woman with gray hair and deep lines in her face looked at the -two young women and seemed to hate them in a secret womanly manner. -Several young boys, wearing discarded army clothing, sat in a corner, -their schoolbooks beside them. They talked in hoarse changing voices. -Robert Holton could not hear what they were saying but their voices -seemed to speak of sexual things. - -The train stopped at a station and the stout man left. Two more stops -and Robert Holton would get off. - -The car was beginning to empty. Only the two girls were opposite him. -They still talked brightly and laughed too loudly, conscious that he -was watching them. - -The train made its two stops and the girls got off. No one sat opposite -him now. He studied the advertisements. - -Then his stop was made. Quickly he got up, his trench coat under his -arm. He went out onto the platform and before the train left he looked -in again through the window. Slightly to the right of where he had been -sitting was the picture of the girl advertising beer. He looked at her -until the train pulled out. - -When the train was gone he turned and walked up the dirty cement steps -and as he walked he wished that he had a girl as pretty as the one who -advertised beer. - - - - - _Chapter Two_ - - -“Hurry up, Marjorie. Let’s get those tables cleaned up.” - -“Yes,” said Marjorie Ventusa, “yes, Mrs Merrin, I certainly will,” she -spoke sweetly, hoping that Mrs Merrin would get the sarcasm in her -voice but Mrs Merrin was already at the other end of the restaurant -talking to another waitress. - -Marjorie pushed her natural blonde hair out of her eyes. She was never -able to keep it in order; perhaps she should have it cut shorter, wear -a snood perhaps. Mrs Merrin was watching her, she noticed. Quickly -Marjorie began to put the dirty dishes on her tray. - -People were coming in and out of the restaurant. It got a lot of -the less wealthy Wall Street trade. Clerks and secretaries and -stenographers had breakfast and lunch here and the lonelier ones had -supper here. When her tray was full she went back to the kitchen. - -On the other side of the swinging doors the cooks, wearing fairly -clean aprons and white hats, were cooking at ranges. There was always -steam and the smell of soap in the air. People shouted at one another -and it was like a war. Marjorie hated the kitchen. The front part of -the restaurant was all right. She had been a waitress off and on for -fifteen years and she didn’t mind noisy people and the clattering of -dishes. - -She put some glasses of water on her tray before she left the kitchen. -Then Marjorie Ventusa gave the swinging door a kick and walked back -into the dining room. She had five tables to take care of. - -Two women were seated at the table she had just cleared. She could tell -from the backs of their heads that they were secretaries and older -women; this meant they would be very particular and leave a ten-cent -tip for both of them. - -“Good morning,” said Marjorie Ventusa, smiling brightly and thinking of -nothing at all. She put the water glasses on the table. The two women -were frowning at their menus. - -“How much extra is a large orange juice?” asked one. - -“It’s ten cents more if you take it with the breakfast.” - -“All right, I’ll take a double orange juice, some toast and coffee. Do -you have any marmalade?” - -“Yes, ma’am.” - -“Well, bring some of that, too.” - -The other woman said, “The same for me.” Marjorie Ventusa picked up -their menus. As she was turning to go she saw Robert Holton come into -the restaurant and she was suddenly happy. She smiled at him and he, -seeing her, smiled back. She pointed to one of her tables and he sat -down at it. Quickly she went back to the kitchen to give her orders. -She pushed her hair back from her face and promised herself that she -would get a snood the next day. - -Marjorie Ventusa liked Robert Holton. For a year he had been coming -into the restaurant; he always spoke pleasantly to her and they -would joke together. She had never seen him anywhere except in the -restaurant. She knew that he never really noticed her but she was -always glad to see him and she was delighted when he talked to her -and smiled at her; his smile was pleasant and he had nice teeth. She -thought him handsome. - -“Good morning, Mr Holton,” she said, putting a glass of water and some -silverware on his table. - -“How’re you today, Marjorie? You look perfect.” - -“Sure, sure, I do; I’m a real beauty.” Marjorie always felt awkward -with him, as though she couldn’t think of the right words to say. She -was older than he was, too. Marjorie was thirty-seven; she had known a -lot of men and still she was awkward with him. - -“What you going to have this morning?” she asked. - -“Well....” He drawled the word as he looked at the menu and she had a -strong urge to touch the short dark hairs on the back of his neck. She -tried to think of some excuse to do so. Then she was angry with herself -for having thought of such a thing. - -“I guess I’ll have some orange juice and scrambled eggs and bacon.” - -“Is that all you going to eat? Why, how you ever going to get big and -strong?” - -He laughed. “Not sitting at a desk and eating your cooking.” - -“Oh, is that so?” Marjorie Ventusa walked slowly back to the kitchen. -She felt strained as she walked for she could feel he was watching her. -She wished suddenly that her hips weren’t so big and that her legs were -slimmer. - -She shouted his order to the cooks, then she took the two secretaries’ -breakfasts out to them. They complained bitterly about the size of the -orange juice and one said that it was too sour and the other said that -there were seeds in it. - -“I’m sorry,” said Marjorie, “would you like something else?” - -They said they would not and acted as if she had grown the oranges -badly and had put seeds in the juice. One of her other tables was full -now and she went and took their order. - -Out in the kitchen his breakfast was ready and she put it on her tray. -There were some seeds in the orange juice which she carefully removed -with a spoon. - -He was reading his paper when she came back. He didn’t look up as she -arranged the dishes on his table. - -“Well, here’s your breakfast,” she said. “You better eat it while it’s -hot.” - -“Oh, sure.” Robert Holton folded his paper and laid it on the table. -She watched him as he drank the orange juice. - -“Sour, isn’t it?” she asked. - -“A little bit, maybe.” - -“I’m glad you’re not going to complain. The rest, they all complain all -the time. I get so tired sometimes I could get sick; I get so tired of -listening to them.” - -“Just don’t take them seriously. Everybody feels awful in the morning. -You’ve just been awake longer and you feel better than they do, that’s -all.” - -Marjorie Ventusa laughed admiringly. “I wouldn’t have ever thought of -that,” she said. “You might be right. Anyway a girl gets pretty tired -of being shouted at all the time like it’s her fault.” - -“Well, just relax. I like the food and the service.” - -“Thank you,” she said, trying to sound elegant and funny at the same -time. - -“When you going to go out dancing with me?” Robert Holton asked, -sawing a piece of bacon in half with a blunt knife. - -“I’m pretty busy,” she said; she always said that when he asked her -that question. He would say it because he thought it was funny and she -would answer him as though she thought it was funny too. She wished -that he meant it now. She had always wished that he meant it. “I’m -pretty busy,” she said. “I got so many people asking to go out with me. -You’d have to wait couple of weeks, maybe.” - -“I can wait,” he said, smiling at her; smiling the way he would to a -child, she thought suddenly. She watched him eat. - -“Marjorie,” said a voice behind her. - -“Yes, Mrs Merrin, I’m coming. I’ll be right with you. I was just -cleaning this table.” - -Mrs Merrin was tall and stout with a wide loose mouth which she could -make look stern and harsh when she wanted to. She made it look that way -now. - -“Marjorie,” she said in a low voice, “you stop your hanging around and -talking to the customers. I tell you I won’t stand for it.” - -“I’m sorry, Mrs Merrin. I was just cleaning the table.” Mrs Merrin -smiled warmly at Robert Holton and walked away. - -“She’s an awful bitch,” said Marjorie Ventusa. - -“What did she say?” asked Robert Holton. “I didn’t hear her.” - -“She was just running off at the mouth, that’s all. She thought I was -talking too much to you.” - -One of her tables called for a check and she walked over quickly and -put their used plates on her tray. Then she went back to the kitchen. -More orders were ready for her. She loaded her tray and went back to -work. - -As she worked she watched Robert Holton. It was twenty minutes past -eight and she knew that he had to be at his office at eight-thirty. -She hoped that he would stay as long as possible. His office was only -a block away and he would be able to stay until eight-thirty. He ate -slowly, she knew, and he would read his paper as he ate. - -She hurried back to the kitchen. Two waitresses were talking and -laughing together in a corner. They were young and pretty and would -probably marry in another year and never work again; in another year -Marjorie Ventusa would still be waiting on tables. - -She stopped in front of the mirror behind the swinging doors. Mrs -Merrin always said that neatness was an important thing. - -Marjorie Ventusa rubbed the kitchen steam from the mirror. Her hair was -back in her face again. She pushed it viciously out of her eyes. She -hated its color. It was pale blonde, a real pale blonde. But because -she was getting older and because she was part Italian everyone thought -that she dyed her hair. She wondered if perhaps she shouldn’t have it -colored black. Her eyebrows were dark, thin and dark, and that made the -color of her hair look even more suspicious. - -A sailor she had seen several times during the war had told her that -she had a beautiful figure and she had tried to believe him. She was -too heavy, though. Well, she hadn’t been heavy at that time. At least -not quite so heavy as she was now. She wondered what kind of women -Robert Holton liked. - -“Marjorie,” said Mrs Merrin. That was all Mrs Merrin said as she walked -by. Marjorie Ventusa was glad. One day she would lose her temper and -get fired. - -The mirror had steamed up again. She took her tray and went out into -the dining room. More customers had come. She put glasses of water -and silverware on their tables and took their orders and gave them -instructions in how to order and how to avoid paying extra for what -they wanted. - -Robert Holton was halfway through his breakfast. She looked at the -clock over the kitchen doors. It was twenty-seven minutes after eight -o’clock. She would work very hard now to get her orders taken care of -and then she would have a few minutes to talk to him before he left. -She usually couldn’t talk to him at lunch because he was always with -someone else. - -Marjorie Ventusa traveled quickly back and forth from kitchen to dining -room and back again. Her hair was hopelessly out of shape now and she -was perspiring. - -Finally her last customer was satisfied for the moment. She wandered -casually over to Robert Holton’s table. - -“Breakfast good?” she asked. - -“Never better.” - -“That don’t make it so good.” They laughed. He was always so polite -with her. That was why she liked him, she thought. He was very kind. He -was handsome, too, but that wasn’t as important as being polite. A lot -of fine people were not handsome. - -“What’s in the paper?” she asked. She never quite knew what to talk -about when she was with him. - -“Not much. The same old stuff. Election stuff mostly.” - -“Seems like there’s always an election.” - -“There’re a lot of them.” - -“I almost don’t read any newspapers. I don’t seem to get time to read -them. I’ll bet you read a lot of them.” - -“I have to. I read all about the market.” - -“That’s right, you’re in Wall Street. That must be exciting. Working -there where all those big deals are made.” - -“They don’t make them where I am.” He laughed. “I’m just another -worker.” - -“I thought you were way up in one of the big houses.” - -“Well, sort of a clerk which doesn’t pay much. It’s a good way to -starve.” - -“You ought to do something different. Suppose you marry some girl....” - -“I’m not getting married for a long time.” - -“I suppose,” said Marjorie Ventusa calmly, “that you got some nice -society girl all lined up.” - -Robert Holton shook his head. “I haven’t any girl anywhere.” - -“Isn’t that like life. All the handsome men don’t have girls and they -wonder why so many of us are old maids.” - -“You’re not an old maid yet, Marjorie. By the way, what’s your last -name? As long as I’ve known you I’ve never known your last name.” - -“Ventusa.” She spelled it for him. - -“Italian name?” - -“My father was Italian, my mother was Irish.” - -“That’s a good combination. I knew a lot of pretty girls when I was in -Italy.” - -“Were you there in the war?” - -“I was there over a year.” - -“I always wanted to travel. I guess I’d rather travel than do -anything. My father, he used to tell me stories about Italy. He came -from Sicily. Were you ever in Sicily?” - -“Yes, I was in Sicily.” - -“It’s beautiful, isn’t it?” - -“Beautiful.” - -“Must be real messed up now.” - -“Not too bad. The scenery’s still there.” - -“I’m going to go there someday,” said Marjorie Ventusa, knowing that -she never would. - -“You’ll like it.” - -Mrs Merrin was looking at her and she pretended to be busy at his table. - -“Let me get you some more coffee,” she said. She picked up the plates -from his table and put them on her tray. Her arm touched his hand. He -pulled away unconsciously, and she walked back to the kitchen. - -She got a cup of coffee for him. Two other orders were ready for her. -She put them on her tray and returned to the dining room. - -She noticed a girl was walking over to Robert Holton’s table. She had -seen the girl often before. She worked in Robert Holton’s office. -Occasionally they would have lunch together. She was a pretty girl. -Her hair was dark and her skin white. Her lips were full and painted a -deep red. She had a slim figure and slim legs and her eyes were blue, a -deep vivid blue that Marjorie Ventusa envied. The girl spoke to Robert -Holton. He stood up. Then they both sat down. - -Marjorie Ventusa took care of two tables and then she went to Robert -Holton’s table and placed his cup of coffee before him. - -“Good morning,” she said to the pretty girl. - -“Good morning,” said the pretty girl absently. “I’ll have some -grapefruit juice. That’s all I want. I’m reducing,” she said to Robert -Holton and she patted her slim waist. - -“What on earth are you reducing for?” - -“You think I look all right this way?” she asked, pretending surprise. - -Marjorie Ventusa hurried to the kitchen. She hated this pretty girl. -All day long Robert Holton was with her. Perhaps even at night they -were together. She pushed her blonde hair back out of her face. If -only she had been pretty and young. Of course, she had been young but -she had never been pretty. She was far from old now. They said that if -one wanted something badly enough one would get it. That was foolish; -Marjorie Ventusa had never gotten anything she wanted, except a yellow -satin dress. When she was a child she had wanted a yellow satin dress -and her father had bought her one. The dress was in a box in her closet -now; she had not looked at it in fifteen years. She picked up a glass -of grapefruit juice and put it on her tray. - -The pretty girl was laughing when she came back to their table and -Robert Holton was watching her. She wore a gray suit buttoned tightly -across her small breasts. - -“Here’s your grapefruit juice.” - -“Thank you very much,” said the girl, paying no attention to Marjorie -Ventusa, saying the words mechanically. - -The waitress began to clean the table next to Robert Holton’s. She -rubbed the gray damp cloth over the shiny black table-top and she -listened to Robert Holton and the pretty girl as they talked. - -“But Caroline” (her name was Caroline then), “I didn’t know you were -expecting me last night.” - -“Well, we weren’t really. I just thought you might come on over, that’s -all. We had quite a gang. Jimmy Hammond, he was at Yale about the same -time you were.” - -“I went to Harvard.” - -“That’s right, you did. Well, you would’ve liked Jimmy Hammond. He was -in the army, too. And there were a whole lot of people around. I just -thought you’d have liked to come.” - -“I certainly would’ve but I didn’t remember your inviting me.” - -“That’s all right,” said Caroline, drinking her grapefruit juice and -making a face as she did. “God, but this stuff is sour.” - -Marjorie Ventusa, having cleaned the shiny black table-top cleaner than -it had ever been before, turned to another table. She was still close -enough to hear what they said. - -“What did you do last night, Bobby?” She called him Bobby. Marjorie -Ventusa wondered if she would ever be able to call him that. - -“Not a thing. I went home to bed early.” - -“Next time I’ll send you an engraved invitation when I want you to come -to the house.” - -“You do that. What time’s it getting to be?” - -Caroline looked at the clock. “It’s not much after eight-thirty. Let’s -take our time.” - -“We don’t want to be too late.” - -“You haven’t been around long. Nobody gets there on time. What’re you -bucking for, Mr Holton?” - -He grinned at her. Robert Holton had dark blue eyes. Marjorie Ventusa -had never noticed them before. They were beautiful eyes, she thought -suddenly. - -One of the waitresses came over to her and said, “Boy, you sure must -like that guy in the corner.” - -“What do you mean? What you talking about?” - -“Nothing at all. You needn’t get so excited. I was just noticing you -talking to him all the time. I couldn’t help noticing, Marjorie. You -was there so long talking to him.” - -“He comes in here a lot and we talk, that’s all. I hope _you_ -don’t mind.” - -“I don’t mind at all, Marjorie. I was just kidding you.” - -Marjorie Ventusa picked up a cup of coffee and went back to the dining -room. The waitress had irritated her. She didn’t want anyone to think -that she would fall for a man at least ten years younger than she -was. Well, perhaps not ten years. Robert Holton could be thirty. The -difference between thirty and thirty-seven was not so great. - -She walked over to Robert Holton’s table. They were talking. - -“I don’t see what you have against Dick. He’s an awful nice fellow.” - -“I don’t have anything against him. He just doesn’t like me. He thinks -I’m trying to get his job.” - -“Well, are you?” - -Robert Holton smiled. “I don’t want anything; didn’t you know that?” - -“Well, aren’t you the saint. You mean you wouldn’t like to take his -job? Not even if it was offered to you?” - -“I suppose if it were easier to take a job than refuse it I’d take the -job. I’m easy to please.” - -Caroline sighed. “You’re easy to please. I guess that’s what war does -to you.” - -“I was always like that. I was like that at college.” - -“Just lazy?” - -“Just lazy.” - -“Good Lord, it’s almost nine! We have to get out of here.” - -Robert Holton waved to Marjorie Ventusa. She came over to their table -slowly. She didn’t want him to leave any sooner than he had to. - -“Got my check, Marjorie?” - -“I’ll get it for you.” She went to the cashier and had his check -totalled for him. Then she brought it back and he paid her, leaving a -ten-cent tip under his water glass. - -Caroline stood up and put her gray coat about her shoulders. Robert -Holton picked up his trench coat and slung it over his arm. - -“I’ll see you at lunch, Marjorie,” he said. - -“See you,” said Marjorie Ventusa and she watched them as they went out -the door into the bright autumn morning. - -“Say, Marjorie,” said one of her regular customers, “how about some -more coffee.” - -“O.K., O.K.,” she said. - -“When are you going to get those tables cleaned?” said Mrs Merrin who -was back in Marjorie Ventusa’s corner. “I wish you’d try to get them -done right after the customers leave. I wish you’d make some effort, -Marjorie.” - -“I’m sorry,” said Marjorie Ventusa. - -She began to clear Robert Holton’s table. - -“What about my coffee?” asked the customer. “When I going to get it?” - -“Right away.” Marjorie Ventusa finished cleaning Robert Holton’s table. -Almost sadly she pocketed the ten-cent tip which he had left under the -water glass. - - - - - _Chapter Three_ - - -The elevator door opened and Caroline Lawson and Robert Holton stepped -out of it and into the New York office of Heywood and Golden, members -of the New York Stock Exchange and other organizations equally sound. - -The entrance hall was modern and dignified. The walls were clean and -white and there was a thick carpet on the floor. Two heavy leather -couches furnished the entrance. A dark genteel girl sat behind a -reception desk. - -“Good morning, Caroline,” she said in a nasal voice. “Good morning, -Bob.” - -“Hello, Ruth,” said Robert Holton, and Caroline Lawson smiled at her. - -“Anything new?” asked Robert Holton. - -“Not a thing, Bob, not a thing. Everything’s just as dull as ever. Of -course, it’s still early.” - -“Sure,” said Caroline, amused at the thought of anything interesting -happening to them, “the day’s just started.” - -“Is the boss in yet?” asked Robert Holton. He was terribly afraid -of getting in bad, thought Caroline, looking at him. He was rather -cowardly but nice. Perhaps having been in the war had changed him. -Perhaps he would improve. - -Ruth shook her head. “No, he’s not in yet. He hasn’t come in yet. He’s -always late, Mr Murphy is.” Mr Murphy was the head of the Statistical -Section where Robert Holton worked. Caroline was Mr Murphy’s secretary. - -“Well, I’m glad,” said Robert Holton. - -“You certainly _are_ eager,” said Ruth, looking up at him, her -head slightly to one side: the way that movie actresses looked. - -Robert Holton laughed. “I guess I am.” - -“And after all you’ve been through, too! Why, if I’d seen what you’ve -seen I wouldn’t worry what nob ... anybody thought.” - -“That’s what I used to say,” said Robert Holton. - -“Come on, Bob,” said Caroline. “Let’s get back to the salt mine.” - -Ruth nodded to them and they walked into a long room. On one side of -the room were the doors of offices; the other side was covered with -tremendous pictures of factories and ships and railroads. The pictures -were Mr Golden’s idea. He wanted to explain to customers the real -meaning of the stocks they were buying. Mr Golden always wanted people -to feel that the stock market was a creative, a productive thing. - -Women of all ages sat typing at small desks in the long room. The light -was indirect and modern and very even. One could see that Heywood and -Golden was a well-organized house. - -People murmured good mornings to Caroline and Robert Holton as they -walked together between the desks. At the end of the room there was a -glass door behind which were a large blackboard, ticker tape machines, -and men recording the prices of the various stocks. - -“Look busy, don’t they?” commented Caroline. - -“They certainly do. I wouldn’t have that job for anything.” - -“I think it’d be sort of exciting.” - -“Too much running around for me. I like to sit still.” - -“It takes,” said Caroline, “all kinds to make up a world.” - -“Isn’t that lucky?” said Robert Holton and Caroline didn’t know whether -he was laughing at her or not. Sometimes he bothered her. She liked -him. Almost everybody did because he was nice-looking and quiet. He was -weak, though, she thought. She didn’t like a man to be weak. She wanted -someone that she could lean on. Caroline Lawson was one of those pretty -girls who could never bear weak men and yet, by nature, hated those who -were stronger. - -They stood and watched the ticker tape machines through the glass door. -A tall white-faced boy was slowly marking figures on the blackboard. -He stood on a small stepladder and as he wrote the figures his left -foot tapped regularly and rhythmically on the top step of the ladder. -Caroline wondered what tune he was making. - -“You like to dance, don’t you?” she asked suddenly. - -“What? Dance? Sure, I like to dance. Why?” - -“Oh, I don’t know. I was just thinking, that’s all. I like to dance a -whole lot. When I was at college we used to have wonderful dances.” - -Robert Holton laughed. “That wasn’t so long ago, when you were at -college. Don’t you go out any more?” - -“Of course I do. You know I do, all the time, and I’m not trying to get -you to ask me out either.” - -He laughed at her and that was all. - -Caroline looked at him and tried to guess what he was thinking. He was -probably thinking that she was very pretty and that he would like to -ask her to go out with him. She wouldn’t go out with him, he knew. Not -now, not after she had said these things. Later, perhaps, when they had -forgotten the words she had said. Caroline sighed as she thought of her -own strength and of his weakness. - -“Let’s get back to the office,” said Holton. - -They walked down a short corridor. At the end of the corridor was the -Statistical room. Here a dozen men and women worked at desks. They -compiled figures for the executives and the customers and everyone else -in the house. - -Through a noise of automatic welcomes, Caroline and Robert Holton went -into the office. Most of the desks were on the side of the room away -from the windows. The windowed end of the room was protected by a -railing; behind the railing was Mr Murphy’s desk and at a respectful -distance from his desk was Caroline Lawson’s. - -“See you later, Bob,” said Caroline and she opened the door of the -railing and went into the windowed section of the room. She let the -door swing creakily shut and went to her desk. Glancing sideways, she -watched Robert Holton go to his desk at the other end of the office. -Then she sat down. - -The desk was neat. A new blotter was in the center. An inkwell, without -ink in it, and a penholder, without a pen in it, held the top of the -blotter down. A slim imitation silver vase sat on one corner of the -desk. Occasionally Mr Murphy would put a flower in the vase and she -would smile at him when he did that and Mr Murphy would wink at her. - -One of the two phones on her desk rang. She picked up the receiver. -“Hello?” Someone asked for Mr Murphy. “He isn’t in right now; shall I -have him call you? You’ll call back later? Thank you.” She cleared her -throat, cleared her professional telephone voice away. - -She moved the blotter to one end of the desk. Then she lifted the front -of her desk and a typewriter appeared. She ran her fingers over the -keys, professionally, like a pianist before he begins to play. - -She opened the left-hand top drawer of the desk. This was her personal -drawer. Here were several compacts in various stages of use. A slightly -crushed box of pale green Kleenex, a carton of cigarettes, and a box of -fairly expensive candy. The lid of the candy box was off and Caroline -Lawson decided that, since her breakfast had been small, a little candy -wouldn’t hurt her. She picked the largest piece and put it in her mouth. - -“Good morning, Caroline. How’s the girl?” It was Mr Murphy. - -Caroline swallowed quickly. “Fine, fine, Mr Murphy. How’re you today?” - -“Me? I’m just fine today. Certainly is a wonderful day today. Makes -you feel like going out in the country somewhere. Out to Long Island -or some place like that. Go some place to get away from the city.” Mr -Murphy sighed. He had spent all his life in the city and he wanted to -go live in the country. He would not like the country, of course, but -then he would never leave the city and it made no difference. - -“Look what I brought you,” said Mr Murphy. He pulled a slightly rumpled -white carnation from his buttonhole. “We had a big blowout at the Astor -last night. It was quite a show we had.” - -“Thank you,” said Caroline, smiling at him. She smelled the white -flower; a strong odor of cigar smoke spoiled the scent. “Thank you,” -she said again and she put the white flower in the tall vase. - -“Any calls? Anything new?” - -“You had one call. No message, though. The man said he’d call back -later.” - -“Good.” Mr Murphy sat down at his desk. - -There was a pile of letters on his desk. Very precisely he cut the -letters open one by one. Caroline watched him with a mixture of -admiration and dislike. - -Oliver L. Murphy was a tall man. He was heavy but not in the usual -manner. His arms and legs and neck were long and thin and his hips were -narrow; his stomach and chest, however, were massive. He held himself -erect. His face was red as all Irishmen’s faces are supposed to be. His -eyes and hair were dark and he had a thick curved nose. Mr Murphy’s -clothes fitted him well. They were usually of a somber color and always -correct. His cuffs were beautifully starched. - -For five years Caroline Lawson had been his secretary. Her first job -had been as his secretary; her last job, too, she thought to herself: -she would be married soon and that would be the end of typing and -putting cigar-scented flowers in fake silver vases. Caroline Lawson was -not sure whom she would marry but she would certainly get married to -someone soon. - -Mr Murphy finished reading his letters. - -“Anything important?” asked Caroline. - -Mr Murphy shook his head. “Not much of anything. We got one letter here -I ought to answer.” - -“I’ll get my pad.” Caroline picked up a lightly ruled pad of paper -from her desk. Then she went over and sat down in a chair beside Mr -Murphy’s desk. She sat close to the window so that the morning sunlight -would warm her. As she sat down bits of dust vibrated up into the -sunlight from her chair seat. The motes of dust danced and glittered -and then slowly sank along the beams of light to the floor. - -“I’m ready,” said Caroline Lawson. - -Mr Murphy cleared his throat and looked helplessly about him. It was -his usual beginning. Then he picked up the letter he was to answer. He -waited a moment for the words to come to him. - -“Dear,” he began. She made the figure for the word. He paused, studying -the ceiling. He began again, “Dear Mr Lachum, In reply to your letter -of the 16th, etc., etc....” He stopped and closed his eyes; this seemed -to help. “I cannot, I fear, agree with you in your analysis of certain -trends now at work ... no, now abroad ... in the financial world.” His -voice became firm and concise, “Although I have the greatest personal -esteem for the opinions of yourself and associates, uh, in re to the -stock market, I must, in this instance, disagree with you, for I am of -the opinion that this is a rising market and will continue to be so. -All statistics at hand ... no, available, point to just that. Hoping to -hear from you again, and so on.” Mr Murphy stopped and opened his eyes. -He looked pleased and exhilarated. - -“That’s a very nice letter, Mr Murphy. Knowing Mr Lachum, I think you -were certainly nice to him.” - -“Well, it never does to offend people, Caroline. That’s a rule with me. -That’s something I’ve always followed. I wouldn’t be here today if I -hadn’t been that way.” He paused and they both thought of a world where -there was no Mr Murphy because he had offended people. - -“All right, let’s hear that letter back.” - -Caroline read the letter. Mr Murphy listened, pleased. - -“That’s fine,” he said when she had finished. “Type it up please.” - -Caroline went back to her desk. The sunlight and the glittering -dust were almost out of the room now. Soon they would turn on the -fluorescent lights over their desks. Caroline sometimes wished that the -morning would last all day. - -Caroline put a piece of paper in her typewriter. She started to type; -then she remembered that all letters must be done in triplicate. She -pulled the sheet of paper out of the machine. Wearily, enjoying her -weariness, she arranged more paper in the typewriter. - -Her fingers moved swiftly over the keys. She made rhythms as she typed, -as the keys clattered on the white paper. - -In a few minutes she was finished. - -“Very nice,” said Mr Murphy, looking over her shoulder. “Very nice, -indeed. I’ll sign that now.” - -“O.K.” Caroline took the papers out of the typewriter. She removed -the carbon. Mr Murphy signed the letter carefully. During the last -five years Caroline had watched Mr Murphy’s signature change. It was -becoming more original; the upstrokes were stronger and the “M” was -becoming regal. - -She blotted his signature. “What’ll I do next?” she asked. - -“I expect you’d better get on those reports for Mr Golden. He was -asking for them yesterday.” - -“What _does_ he think we are? We were only told to do those -reports last week. That takes a lot of time. I don’t see what he’s -always in such a rush for.” - -“Well, you know how some people are,” said Mr Murphy, meaning much more -than he said. - -Caroline nodded wisely. Mr Murphy was often opposed to Mr Golden’s -business ideas. Mr Heywood, who had inherited a lot of money and -never bothered much with business, was Mr Murphy’s friend. Mr Golden -was a promoter who had become a partner several years before. The -conservative element of the house stood firmly against him but his hold -over Mr Heywood was equally firm. - -“I’ll get to work on it right away,” said Caroline. - -“Good, I think I’ll go up to the front office. If there’re any calls -tell them I’ll call back.” - -“Yes, Mr Murphy.” - -Smoothly Mr Murphy moved across the room. All of his movements were -smooth and swift. He opened the swinging gate that separated him from -his staff. They didn’t look up from their work as he walked between the -desks toward the hall. - -Caroline took more paper out of her desk and put it in her typewriter. -She opened a black notebook. Slowly she began to copy. After a minute -or so she stopped. She wasn’t concentrating and she didn’t know what -was wrong. - -Caroline Lawson leaned back in her swivel chair and her arms dropped -limply at her sides. The sunlight was gone out of the room and she -could no longer see the dust in the light. - -Far away she could hear the sounds of automobile horns blowing, of -newsboy shouts in the street; and, from time to time, their building -would rumble as a train passed underground. - -Closer to her were the sounds of the office. The clattering of -typewriters, the constant low buzz of voices; these were the sounds of -her days. Caroline was dissatisfied. - -Across the room she could see Robert Holton writing something in a -black book. She pitied him because he seemed to really like what he was -doing. But then it was better than being a soldier: probably anything -was better than that. But then Robert Holton wasn’t a woman. That made -a lot of difference, thought Caroline. He couldn’t be depressed by -things the way she was. Men were never sensitive about such things. She -had a _malaise_. Having thought of this word, she was pleased with -it. The word described her sudden fits of depression. - -Robert Holton closed the book on his desk. He looked about him -uncertainly. Then he stood up and walked toward her. He was -presentable, she thought. Certainly better looking than anyone else in -Heywood and Golden, but he was not what she wanted at all. Also, there -was some doubt in her mind that Robert Holton was interested in her. - -“How’s it going, Caroline?” - -“I’m slowed up.” She sighed loudly and wilted in her chair. - -“That’s too bad,” he said. She didn’t answer. She was quiet for a -moment. He watched her and she enjoyed his watching her. Finally he -said, “Murphy’s in a good mood today.” - -Caroline nodded. “He’s real happy today. He wants to go out in the -country. He always wants to do that when he’s feeling good.” - -“He’s some character,” said Robert Holton. He sat down on the railing. - -“It would be nice,” said Caroline thoughtfully, “to go out in the -country; have a picnic maybe.” - -“Sure, that would be nice, but you couldn’t do that.” - -“No, I guess _you_ couldn’t.” Caroline was contemptuous but -because she was a very pretty and popular girl she didn’t show it. She -was sensitive herself and that was what she wanted in life: a man who -was as sensitive as she, someone who would respond to her moods. She -looked at Robert Holton. He was sitting uneasily on the railing. No, -he could never understand her great sadness. Perhaps no one would ever -understand her. Caroline was sad, for it is a sad thing to be both -pretty and sensitive. - -“You’re going out tonight, aren’t you?” - -Robert Holton nodded. “I’m going to a cocktail party; I’m going to Mrs -Raymond Stevanson’s.” - -“Oh, is that so? You’re really going around in high circles. I guess -I shouldn’t be associating with high society like you.” She had meant -to speak lightly and humorously but somehow the words had come out all -wrong and there was a bitterness in her voice that embarrassed her. - -Robert Holton looked surprised; he smiled finally. “Well, it never -hurts to know these people. She was a friend of my mother’s,” he -explained, trying to explain these things, to make himself appear like -her; she hated him for his kindness. - -“Those people are O.K., I guess,” said Caroline. She started to say -something about her own family, some improbable but soothing lie, -something to prove to herself that she was the same as Mrs Stevanson -whose picture was so often in the papers. But she said nothing. She -played with the ribbon of her typewriter. - -“I hate staying in one place,” said Caroline, after a moment of silence. - -“It’s no fun traveling,” said Robert Holton. “Moving around all the -time; that’s what I didn’t like in the army. No, traveling’s pretty -lousy.” - -“That kind is, but I mean to go ... well, you know ... where you want -to go, that’s what I mean. I don’t like sitting around here day after -day. I want to go some place.” - -He shrugged. “A lot of people do, I guess. Marjorie, you know, the -waitress, she wants to go to Sicily.” - -“Well, that’s different. I mean she’s not ... well, you know what I -mean, she’s probably happy doing what she’s doing.” - -“I don’t see why,” said Robert Holton. They thought of Marjorie Ventusa -for a moment then they didn’t think of her again. - -Robert Holton shifted his position on the railing. Caroline looked -about the familiar room. The older women were typing and using their -adding machines; the younger women were watching Robert Holton; and the -younger men (there were three of them) looked up occasionally to see -what Caroline was doing. She posed a little for them. She didn’t pose -haughtily, though. Caroline was too clever for that. She just looked -girlish and rather innocent. None of them could understand her sadness -and her longing. It pleased her to think how well she hid herself. Not -even Robert Holton, talking to her now, could realize these things. - -“No,” said Robert Holton, “no, I want to stay in one place.” - -“You don’t want to be doing the same thing all the time, do you?” - -“I don’t know, I’d like to make more money.” - -“I think you’re crazy,” she said. She watched her fingers as they -tapped lightly on the keys of the typewriter. Her hands weren’t quite -what she wanted them to be. She thought of them as long and slender and -faintly exotic; actually her hands were short and square and not very -clean. The red enamel was beginning to chip off her thumbnails. - -“Why’m I crazy? Because I want to make more money?” - -“Not because of that, of course. Just because.” - -“Oh.” - -Robert Holton shifted his position on the railing. Caroline suddenly -didn’t want him to go. Then Richard Kuppelton got up from his desk near -the door and came over to them. - -“Why, hello, Dick,” said Caroline. - -“Good morning, good morning,” said Dick heartily. He was a very hearty -person and Caroline liked him. He was so different from Robert Holton. -Dick always seemed the same; he acted the same, anyway. Caroline could -almost always tell what he was going to say and that was a lot better -than being around a person who never said the right things. Dick wasn’t -sensitive, however. He and Robert Holton were the same that way but -then Caroline couldn’t have everything. - -“How’s every little thing?” asked Dick Kuppelton. - -“Fine,” said Robert Holton. Caroline only smiled; she smiled with her -eyes as well as her mouth. It was important to smile that way. - -“Been pretty slow today,” said Dick. “Not much business. I think the -market’s falling off.” Someone had told him that, thought Caroline, -delighted with her perception. - -“It may be,” said Robert Holton without much interest. - -“We should have a big rush soon. I’m doing a report now. Well, not -really a report; I’ve been getting some statistics on aircraft stock -ready for the front office. It’s been some job.” He shook his head to -show the largeness of the job. - -“I’ve got a report like that to do, too,” said Caroline. - -“Something for Golden?” - -“Yes.” - -Dick nodded knowingly. “Some report, I bet.” - -“It’s certainly long,” said Caroline, pointing to the notebook on her -desk. - -Robert Holton got off the railing and stretched. “I better get to -work,” he said. “Murphy might be back soon.” He went back to his desk. - -“He’s real eager,” said Dick unpleasantly. - -“What? Well, I don’t know about that. He’s sort of funny. He doesn’t -want to get anywhere but he doesn’t want to get in bad. I don’t know; -he’s awful funny.” - -“I’ve seen those guys before,” said Dick. “I know that type. They come -in a place and get in good with the top people. Then they get your job. -That’s just what he’s up to.” - -Caroline smiled and said nothing. She was pretty and popular and she -couldn’t always, therefore, say what she thought. She knew, though, -that Dick Kuppelton, who had been with Heywood and Golden for six -years, disliked Holton. Mr Murphy had never liked Kuppelton and at the -end of the year changes were always made and Robert Holton might take -Dick’s place. Things were very complicated, thought Caroline. - -“I don’t think he’s that smart,” said Caroline. - -“I think you’re wrong.” Dick started to straddle the railing, then he -changed his mind and leaned against it. He was a large man. He was -thirty and pink and blond. He wore large rimless glasses which made -his face look clean and blank. He enjoyed what he was doing, thought -Caroline. Everyone enjoyed working except herself. - -“I’ve got to do some typing,” said Caroline. She wanted him to go away. - -“Certainly; I suppose I’d better be getting back.” He stood up straight -and stretched. “Well, back to work,” he said. - -“See you,” said Caroline. Dick was so dependable: you always knew what -to expect. - -Caroline coughed. Her cough had a consumptive sound to it which rather -appealed to her. When she was a young girl she had seen a play about a -beautiful woman with white flowers and a cough. The beautiful woman had -been so interesting that Caroline had never forgotten her although she -had forgotten the play. Caroline coughed again, quietly, dramatically. - -“How’s that report coming?” Oliver L. Murphy had returned from the -front office. - -“Pretty well, Mr Murphy.” - -“Had quite a session with Mr Golden.” - -“I bet,” said Caroline with sympathy. “I’ll bet he was something.” - -“Well, I handled him O.K. today. He’s not so hard to get along with. Of -course, he’s got some queer ideas. Those people often have.” - -“Isn’t that the truth.” Caroline arranged the paper in her typewriter. -Mr Murphy leaned over and smelled the carnation in the imitation silver -vase. - -“Smells nice, don’t it?” - -“It certainly does, Mr Murphy.” She smiled. Mr Murphy went back to -his desk and Caroline typed. Several times as she worked she coughed, -quietly, almost to herself. - - - - - _Chapter Four_ - - -Richard Kuppelton left Caroline reluctantly. He liked her because she -was pretty and much more sensible than the other pretty girls he had -known. - -He stopped at his desk. It was a dull olive color. His different books -of statistics were piled neatly on one corner; notebooks and papers -were scattered over the top and it looked as if he were busy. - -Kuppelton decided not to work, not just now. From the top drawer of -his desk he took a magazine. It had a vivid cover of a large-breasted -young woman being carried into a machine by an octopus. He enjoyed this -magazine’s stories very much. - -He slipped the magazine under his arm, the cover toward his side; and -then, busily, he left the room for the lavatory. - -There was something cozy about a lavatory, he thought as he opened the -door marked “Men.” No one was inside and he would be able to sing. -The room was large, white and very clean. The urinals, four of them, -stood polished and shining, like soldiers on guard. A thin waterfall -constantly descended down their white enamel surfaces; the smell of -disinfectant was in the air, but not too strongly. - -Richard Kuppelton glanced at himself quickly in one of the four mirrors -which shone over the four wash basins. Then he walked to one of the -four black-doored stalls. He chose the one nearest the wall. There was -strategy in his choice as well as habit, for the light was over this -stall. - -With the feeling of having come home after a long journey, Richard -Kuppelton opened the black door and stepped inside. Then he closed the -door and locked it. He was completely alone now; no one could disturb -him and he was safe. - -Deliberately he hung up his coat and then, after some preparation, he -descended with a sigh upon the cool smooth seat. He relaxed happily. - -On the subway he had started a story called “The Mad Moon Maidens”; -unfortunately, it had been a little dull and he had decided not -to finish it. He thumbed through the rough pages of his magazine. -Grotesque black and white drawings decorated the pages. There were -monsters and ghouls, beautiful women (usually screaming) and lean young -men with pongee hats. The title “Satanic Underworld” appealed to him -and he started to read. - -After only a few minutes, however, he found himself studying the tile -floor. Black and white tile in neat one-two-three pattern across the -floor; he liked things that were black or white. The pattern was -familiar to him and gave him a further feeling of being home. - -Great ideas came to Richard Kuppelton enthroned. Here in this retreat -the entire world assumed a pattern of great simplicity. All problems -could be rendered answerable and in this world he was sovereign. The -lavatory was his study. He thought of Robert Holton: the person who -currently threatened his career. - -Robert Holton was deceitful; he knew that. On the surface he appeared -simple and a little shy but Kuppelton knew differently. Little things -that the others had not noticed he noticed. For instance, Holton -was always trying to get friendly with Mr Murphy. He always called -him “sir”; treated him as if he were a colonel or something in the -army. That was another thing: the army. Holton had been a soldier and -Kuppelton had not. Most of the others in the office had not been in -the war either. Both Mr Heywood and Mr Golden had declared that they -would do all that they could for the veteran. So far this hadn’t been -very much, but still it was their intention. Richard Kuppelton wished -suddenly that he could stay forever in this shiny black stall with the -tile floor. - -There was a noise in the lavatory. Someone had come in. Footsteps -clattered on the floor. The door to the stall next to his opened and -someone sat down. - -He wondered who it was. The person wore plain brown shoes: he could -see them through the foot-high space beneath the stall partition. -This person also wore brown trousers. Richard Kuppelton thought for a -moment, strained to remember who it could be. Then he remembered. - -“Hello, Bob,” said Richard Kuppelton. - -“What? That you, Dick?” - -“The same.” - -“You catching up on your reading?” - -Richard Kuppelton closed his magazine guiltily. “No, no. Just nature.” - -“It’s a good place to think.” - -“Well, I suppose it is.” - -“What’s wrong with Caroline today?” asked Robert Holton. - -“I haven’t the slightest idea. I didn’t notice anything wrong with her, -did you?” - -“Yes, I thought she was sort of irritable.” - -“I didn’t notice it.” Richard Kuppelton sighed. He was beginning to -get uncomfortable, sitting on the hard seat. He was, also, a little -surprised that Holton was as aware of Caroline as this. “Caroline’s a -lot of fun,” he said. - -“Yes.” - -“She’s a lot of fun to go out on a party with. She can be real funny.” - -“I suppose so.” - -“You ever go out with her?” - -“Not really.” - -“What do you mean?” - -“I never went to a party with her. We had dinner once.” - -“She didn’t want to go dancing?” - -“No.” - -“That’s funny.” Richard Kuppelton tried to remember whether he had ever -taken Caroline out and they had not danced. No, they had always gone to -a dance. He wondered whether she liked Robert Holton better than him. -This was a new thought and even more unpleasant than the suspicion that -Robert Holton was trying to get his job. “She just likes to talk?” - -“Yes, I guess everybody does.” - -“That’s right, I guess.” Richard Kuppelton studied Holton’s plain tan -shoes gloomily. One of the things he could not understand was why -Robert Holton had come to work in this office. It was rumored that he -was a friend of Mr Heywood’s but no one had ever been able to prove -that. He had gone to Harvard before the war and to Richard Kuppelton -that was the most important thing about him. It was also suspicious; -he could not understand why a person with that education would do -this job in Heywood and Golden unless--and Richard Kuppelton became -gloomier--unless he were to be promoted over everyone. - -“Looks like there’ll be a lot of changes after the first,” said -Kuppelton. - -“They tell me there usually are.” - -“I suppose you want to end up in the other office, being one of the -contact people.” - -“I don’t care much. Whatever they want to do. I’d like to move up, of -course.” - -“We all would.” - -Robert Holton mumbled something and stood up. Kuppelton watched the tan -shoes as they moved about the stall. There was a swirling of water and -Robert Holton left the lavatory, whistling. - -Richard Kuppelton studied the tile again. It seemed, somehow, less -comforting, less private since Holton had been here. He tried to read -again but “Satanic Underworld” had lost its attraction. The seat was -becoming harder every minute and he would have to leave soon. - -Then he remembered that the acoustics were unusually good in this -lavatory. In a low voice he sang an Irish ballad which he had learned -in school. His voice came to him pure and vibrant and like no other -voice that had ever sung. He finished with a low note, although, -strictly speaking, the ballad called for a high note. He sang a popular -song next. It was not as great a success as the first because he only -knew the chorus. The words that he made up, however, were quite good -enough. - -At last, his songs finished, Richard Kuppelton stood up. He ached -slightly from the strain of sitting on the narrow seat. Deliberately he -arranged his trousers, deploring slightly the heaviness of his waist as -he did. - -The sound of swirling water was in his ears as he crossed the lavatory -to the wash basin. Deliberately--he was a deliberate person--he washed -his hands. He dried his hands on a paper towel and then, like a king -abdicating, he moved slowly but deliberately to the door. With a sigh -Richard Kuppelton left the lavatory. - -The office had not changed. Mr Murphy was sitting behind his railing, -smoking a cigar and reading a letter. Caroline was typing. Robert -Holton was copying a row of figures into his notebook. The other men -and women in the office were working busily. - -Richard Kuppelton sat down at his desk. He enjoyed the sensation of -being a part of this great house. Neatly he arranged his books of -tables and statistics across the top of his desk. The various books -were open at aircraft stock. His statistics would form the basis of a -report which would be used in an overall survey of aircraft stock to be -used by the front office. His responsibilities were heavy. - -He took his fountain pen out of his pocket. It was leaking a little and -he had to handle it carefully. Slowly, with pleasure, he copied the -figures from the books. He wrote the numbers carefully, making them -round and legible. When he had finished copying all his numbers they -would be typed up by one of the stenographers in the office. - -A tall white-faced boy in a blue suit came into the room. He went to -Richard Kuppelton's desk and put some papers on it. - -“Good morning, Jim,” said Kuppelton heartily. “How’s the boy?” - -“Fine. I think Golden’s coming this way.” - -“Really? Wonder what he wants.” - -“Hard to say. He always wants something.” - -“That’s his privilege,” said Kuppelton righteously. - -“I suppose so,” said Jim. - -The white-faced boy went on to the next desk, handing out letters and -inter-office memoranda. - -Richard Kuppelton put his fountain pen down carefully. There were -several letters for him. He opened one of them and started to read. - -He had read only a few lines when Mr Golden came into the office. -Even without looking up from his letter Richard Kuppelton could have -told that someone from the front office had arrived. The typewriters -clattered more loudly. The usual low buzz of voices died away, and he -could hear Mr Murphy’s swivel chair being pushed back from his desk as -he stood up to welcome the visitor from the front office. Kuppelton put -his letter under the blotter and then he looked up casually. - -Benjamin Franklin Golden stood behind Mr Murphy’s railing. He stood -very erect, his eyes moving from desk to desk as he studied the office. -He was a short man and plump. His eyes were small and black and shiny. -Mr Golden had iron-gray hair which he allowed to grow a little longer -than necessary. He was proud to have kept his hair. He had a small nose -and a rather foolish little mouth and he looked more like a South -American or Italian or something like that, thought Kuppelton. - -He pretended to write figures in his notebook, while he listened -carefully to what Mr Golden was saying to Mr Murphy. - -“Everything all right here, Murphy?” Mr Golden had a high thin voice. - -“Yes, sir, we’re getting your reports out. I’ll have the special one -for you this afternoon.” - -“That’s good. I really need that report. That’s an important one. Some -of our big steel clients are interested in it. I know you’ve done a -good job on it.” There was almost a threat in his voice. It was well -known that the two did not like each other. - -“Well, I’ve got our best girl, I’ve got Caroline here typing it.” He -waved at Caroline who looked up and smiled at Mr Golden who smiled back -at her. Richard Kuppelton wondered what Mrs Golden was like. - -“I’m sure she’ll do a good job. How’s that aircraft stock report -coming?” - -“Kuppelton’s doing it.” Mr Murphy pointed to him. - -Mr Golden nodded. “I’ll be interested to see it.” Richard Kuppelton -copied figures quickly. - -“Should be a good survey,” said Mr Murphy. “Is there going to be a -board meeting this morning? You said they hadn’t decided earlier.” - -“Oh, yes, I almost forgot; there’ll be a meeting at eleven-thirty.” Mr -Golden had an irritatingly brusque manner. - -“Fine,” said Mr Murphy and he made a note of it on the pad on his desk. - -Mr Golden didn’t seem to want to go. He looked around the room again. -He looked at Robert Holton and said something to Mr Murphy which -Kuppelton couldn’t hear. Mr Murphy smiled and nodded. - -Mr Golden finally opened the door of the railing. “See you at the -meeting, Murphy.” - -“Yes, sir.” - -Mr Golden hurried out of the office. There was an immediate change -in the sounds of the room after he had left. The hum of voices began -again. Richard Kuppelton put down his fountain pen. - -Caroline and Mr Murphy were talking together and laughing. Robert -Holton was still working quietly at his desk. The women of the office -talked about Mr Golden in low voices. - -Richard Kuppelton wondered what Mr Golden had said to Mr Murphy about -Robert Holton. He looked at Robert Holton with dislike. - -“O.K.,” said Kuppelton, “Mr Golden’s gone, you can stop working.” - -Robert Holton put down his notebook and smiled. “It doesn’t hurt,” he -said. “It doesn’t hurt to look busy.” - -“Oh, no, I wasn’t meaning to criticize.” - -“I didn’t think you were. Did you hear what they were talking about?” - -This was malicious, Richard Kuppelton knew; it would have been very -hard for Holton not to have heard. “Oh, they were just talking about -reports.” - -“That’s what I guessed.” He started to work again. - -“You live uptown, don’t you?” remarked Kuppelton. - -“Yes. I’ve got a room in a hotel.” - -“That’s funny, I thought you lived with your family or something. I -thought Caroline said something about it.” - -“My father used to live here. He lives in Boston now. He used to work -here but he retired when I got out of the army.” - -Richard Kuppelton nodded. “That’s right, I remember your telling me -that once. Me, I live with all my family in Queens. We all live there. -I wish sometimes that I lived alone.” - -“It’s not much fun, living alone,” said Robert Holton. - -“Think you’ll get married soon?” - -“I don’t think so.” - -“I think _I_ might,” said Richard Kuppelton weightily; he had no -one in mind, though; except possibly Caroline. - -“I guess it’s a good idea if you’ve got the right person,” said Robert -Holton. - -“That’s very true.” They thought of this a moment. Each thought of it -seriously and each regarded it distantly. Richard Kuppelton had no real -desire to be married. He supposed that Robert Holton felt the same. - -“I wonder,” said Kuppelton subtly, “what the conference is going to -be about this afternoon. I wonder if it’s about promotions in the -departments.” - -“I haven’t any idea.” - -“Since the war, seniority doesn’t make much difference.” - -“I thought it did.” - -Kuppelton shook his head, convinced of Holton’s insincerity. For weeks -now everyone had discussed the new policy and everyone had watched the -veterans in the different offices, especially Holton; it was expected -that they would all be promoted: in any event Holton would be. - -“No, it doesn’t make a bit of difference.” - -Robert Holton smiled. He had small white teeth and an agreeable smile -which Kuppelton resented. “That’s good news for me. I haven’t been here -very long you know.” - -“Oh, yes, I know,” and Kuppelton laughed loudly to show that he was -friendly and that it made no difference to him who was promoted. - -He glanced toward the windows. Mr Murphy caught his eye and motioned to -him. Quickly Richard Kuppelton got to his feet and walked across the -room to the railing. He was careful not to let the gate slam when he -came into Mr Murphy’s presence. - -“Yes, sir?” - -“I just wanted to check with you on that aircraft stock report. I just -wanted to make sure it was coming along well.” - -“I’ve been working on it right along, Mr Murphy. They’ll start typing -it up tomorrow.” - -Murphy compressed his lips and nodded slowly. “Mr Golden was asking for -it. I wanted to be sure, Dick.” - -Kuppelton was suddenly glad that Mr Murphy had called him by his first -name. He did this only when he was well pleased or when he wanted -something. - -“It’s been quite a job getting those things together but I finally ... -got them together.” - -“I know how it is. How’s your family these days?” - -“They’re pretty well. My mother’s been better. Her legs don’t bother -her so much now.” - -“That’s good. Arthritis is pretty bad. I had a grandmother who had it -once.” - -“It’s pretty bad,” agreed Richard Kuppelton. - -They both paused and wondered what to say next. Kuppelton began to -edge toward the gate. Murphy stood up. “Let me see that thing as soon -as you get it done.” - -“I certainly will.” - -Mr Murphy turned to Caroline who was typing at her desk. “I’m going to -be in conference for a while,” he said. “Take care of the calls, will -you?” - -“Yes, Mr Murphy.” - -“Big conference?” asked Kuppelton when Murphy had gone. - -“I don’t know,” said Caroline and she stopped typing. “They were -talking about it. Something to do with policy, I think.” - -Caroline got up from her desk and stretched. She had nice slim legs, -Kuppelton noticed. He wondered if his mother would like her. It was -important to him to have his mother like his future wife--if he ever -had one. She had been wonderful about the other girls he had liked but -somehow they had never been quite what she thought his wife should be. -He was her favorite son and he could not disappoint her, naturally. - -“I guess that leaves me out,” he said wearily, hoping she would give -him some good news. - -“Well, I wouldn’t worry too much,” she said, a little coldly he -thought, “you’ve got a good job now.” - -“Well, you’re right about that,” he said emphatically. - -“Oh, I know I am. Bob’s the fair-haired boy these days,” she added. - -“I expect he is.” - -Caroline walked to the window and looked down at the crowded street. -“There really are a lot of people in this town,” she said in a distant -voice. - -“There sure are.” - -“Do you ever wonder about all those people ... down there?” - -This was the sort of talk that made Richard Kuppelton nervous. He hated -it when people started asking him vague questions to which there were -no sensible answers. “No, I can’t say that I do.” - -She turned around and looked at him then, looked at him rather sadly, -he thought. “I’ve got work to do,” was all she said. - -“See you, Caroline.” - -Robert Holton was leaning back in his chair. - -“Pretty dull, isn’t it?” commented Dick. - -“The army was a lot duller.” - -“I thought that was one thing that it wasn’t ... dull.” - -Robert Holton chuckled. “This is a lot better.” - -“Don’t you miss moving around?” - -He paused before he replied and Kuppelton wondered what the truth -really was; however, Robert Holton only said, “No, no, I like staying -in one place.” - -Richard Kuppelton turned back to his books of figures. He wondered -helplessly, as he wrote, how anyone could be as deceitful as Robert -Holton. It was obvious to him that Holton would get the job he was -to have gotten and he certainly could not get this job without being -deceitful. Richard Kuppelton was worried about this. He was also -worried because he found himself hating Robert Holton and his mother -would never have approved of that. - - - - - _Chapter Five_ - - -The ulcer was the most important thing. - -After the ulcer his wife, and then his job, and finally his children. -These were Mr Murphy’s interests. At the moment the ulcer was more -important to him than all the others together. - -Ever since Mr Murphy could remember, he had had pains in his stomach. -Not really bad pains: just unpleasant sensations. In recent years this -had gotten worse. A month before, a doctor examined him and said that -he had an ulcer. The doctor was very serious and there was talk of -further tests. Then Mr Murphy read a picture magazine article on cancer. - -He did not suspect cancer: he knew. The doctor, although he had -been rather grave, had said nothing about cancer, but Mr Murphy was -confident he had it. He had tried to do everything right, to cure -himself with bicarbonate of soda and other medicines but the pains not -only didn’t go away but they got worse when he thought about them. - -He pushed his fist into his stomach for a moment and felt the pain -under his fingers. He cursed himself for having gone to the party the -night before. - -As he walked through his office he wished that he were home in bed. It -would have been harder, of course, to stay home, because his wife was -not very good with an illness. She had a tendency to become hysterical -if she had to do anything unusual. No, it was better to be here at the -office. To be here even if he was dying. This last thought made him -uncomfortable and he put it out of his mind. - -He looked at his watch--eleven-fifteen. The meeting would begin soon. -Mr Golden insisted that all meetings begin on time. - -Mr Murphy left his office. As he walked through the rooms he was -pleased to have everyone speak to him politely. He was a person of -importance here and he had become this all by himself with no help from -anyone; practically no help. - -The executive offices were larger and better decorated than the other -offices. There were several uniform rooms where the vice-presidents -(they used to be partners but Mr Golden had changed that) sat at big -desks and received clients and dictated letters and did other things. -Then there was the anteroom. This was a small room with red leather -couches, a receptionist, some modern lamps and two portraits on the -walls. These paintings were of Mr Heywood and Mr Golden. Beyond the -anteroom was the boardroom. - -The receptionist smiled at Mr Murphy. He smiled back at her and sat -down in one of the red leather couches. Two minor vice-presidents were -also seated and waiting. They greeted him soberly. - -“Nice morning,” said the younger of the vice-presidents; he had been a -lieutenant commander in the navy. - -“Certainly is,” said Mr Murphy. - -“I understood we’re in for a cold winter,” commented the older of the -two vice-presidents; he had been a commander in the navy. - -“Nothing like a real old-fashioned Christmas,” said Mr Murphy in a -smooth low voice. He was conscious of a difference in their voices. His -own voice sounded rough to him while their voices were always smooth -and almost British. He had noticed these differences before but there -was nothing much he could do about them. In the front office he always -felt less important because of this difference, and because of this and -other things, too, he was made to feel an outsider. - -The vice-presidents then talked in their cultured near-British voices -about a certain college football game. Mr Murphy lay back in his red -couch and wondered if perhaps he should drink more milk. That was good -for ulcers; but nothing was good for cancer. He shuddered. - -A few more vice-presidents and section heads came into the anteroom. -They talked and laughed together and Oliver L. Murphy talked and -laughed with them. - -There was a buzz and everyone stopped talking. The receptionist looked -up from her desk. “They’re ready,” she said. - -The men walked into the boardroom of Heywood and Golden. - -A long room, with indirect lighting, thick carpets, and a long table -with armchairs around it: this was the boardroom. On the walls were -charts of stocks and trends. - -Mr Heywood was sitting at one end of the table and Mr Golden was -sitting at the other end of the table. Murphy sat down on the left of -Mr Heywood. This was his usual seat. - -“Hello, Oliver,” said Mr Heywood cheerily. - -“Hello, Mr Heywood.” Murphy was suddenly glad, glad that Mr Heywood -had called him by his first name; he did this only when he was -well-pleased, or wanted something. - -Oliver L. Murphy leaned back in his leather armchair. Mr Heywood sat -rather limply in his own chair at the head of the table. He waited for -the others to be seated. - -Lawrence Heywood was a gentleman. He had a large estate in Maryland and -he collected prints; he had had three wives and a number of children -and, generally, he had managed to do everything in a large but tasteful -manner. - -He was a tall man in his late forties. Completely bald, his neat round -head shone pinkly under the indirect lights. His face was smooth and -neat and looked as if he had never worried in his life. His voice was -not near-British like his vice-presidents: it was British. He had gone -to school in Massachusetts which explained a lot of it, thought Murphy. - -Mr Heywood did everything properly. He had inherited a lot of money. It -seemed as if every year a new relative would die and leave more money -to him. His three wives had all been beautiful and that was another -thing to be said for him--he knew how to choose women. Mr Murphy -wondered what it would be like to marry a beautiful woman. - -“How’s that new man in your office?” asked Mr Heywood suddenly. - -“You mean Holton? He’s doing very well.” - -“I’m glad to hear it. We have a mutual friend,” and Mr Heywood laughed -gently at the thought. - -“Is that right? He’s got a good background, I guess,” said Murphy. - -“I expect so. I used to know his mother. She was a very attractive -woman twenty years ago. She married ...” Mr Heywood decided not to -reminisce in front of Murphy. - -“He’s worked in my section, in the office, just fine.” - -“That’s good. I don’t know him myself but I have some plans for him. -We’re going to the same party tonight.” Mr Heywood laughed gently -again. “Perhaps we’ll get to know each other. It’s so hard ever getting -to know employees in the office,” sighed Mr Heywood. “I rather wish -there weren’t so many of them sometimes.” - -“I know just how it is.” - -“We going to call this meeting together?” It was Mr Golden’s high voice -from the other end of the table. - -“Certainly, Ben,” said Mr Heywood. “We’ll start right now.” He picked -up a black ebony gavel and tapped lightly, apologetically with it. The -men stopped talking. “Now, let’s see,” began Mr Heywood. - -“The Steel account, that’s the big thing we’re going to talk about,” -said Mr Golden. - -“That’s right.” Mr Heywood sounded bored. “That’s right. Well, -gentlemen, it seems that we have a problem.” - -Mr Murphy relaxed in his chair. Mr Heywood’s voice, gentle and -cultured, came to him soothingly. The Steel account was of no interest -to Mr Murphy; in fact, these conferences were generally of no interest -to him. He was just there to talk about Statistics. - -He played with papers in front of him. The voice of Mr Heywood flowed -about him. He was lost in a slow current of polite vowels. The pain in -his stomach was, for the time, gone. - -Mr Heywood spoke of the market, of stocks and shares, of the state of -the Union. He spoke convincingly because his manner was convincing -and, also, because his ideas and facts had been given him by many -clever men. - -Mr Golden sat at his end of the table and listened. He sat there very -straight, his little mouth set in a soft line of pseudo-firmness. His -small hands drummed on the table and his eyes glanced about the room. -His eyes were always in motion. The fear of a thousand years was in Mr -Golden’s eyes. - -From time to time he interrupted. Mr Heywood would pause and listen; -then, when the other had finished, he would continue in his gentle -voice to tell the others what clever men had told him about Steel, and -the men, whose livings depended upon him, listened respectfully to -their ideas. - -Mr Murphy observed these things as he sat in his chair. He felt -less important in these conferences but he did feel secure. Here in -the boardroom he felt himself to be a part of something large and -opulent--of American Business. This thought was comforting as well -as sobering. There was no security in the world to equal that of -belonging. It made no difference to what one belonged just as long as -one was a part of something big and secure. And what, Oliver Murphy -asked himself, could be bigger or more secure than Business? He saw -these things clearly because he had a philosopher’s mind and the Celt’s -ability to envisage life in a clear perspective. He could, he knew, see -the trees as well as the forest. That was what made him different from -the others. They felt, perhaps, that they belonged, but he _knew_. - -Then the ulcer began to bother him. - -He no longer was conscious of Mr Heywood’s voice. The only thing of -importance now was the dull pain in his stomach. He moved uneasily in -his chair. He pushed a hand into his stomach. This helped a little. -The pain shifted slightly. He followed it with his hand, his fingers -pressing gently into the pain. - -“We’ll want complete figures on the rise and fall of Arizona Zinc -during the past five years.” - -This was said by Mr Heywood. It registered in Mr Murphy’s mind but he -didn’t respond for a moment. - -“You’ll have those figures for us next meeting, won’t you?” Heywood -asked, irritation in his voice. - -“Certainly, Mr Heywood,” said Murphy. He sat up straight and Mr Heywood -nodded to him and then continued to talk. - -Oliver Murphy listened carefully to everything said. He was beginning -to sweat from the pain and the fear (more fear than pain, he told -himself) but still he strained to hear every word and, slowly, as he -listened, magic took place and the pain went away. - -At last, when certain decisions had been made, Mr Heywood adjourned the -meeting. - -Murphy stood up. He felt better now. He wondered if perhaps he might -not be mistaken about the cancer. - -“Oh, Murphy.” - -“Yes, Mr Heywood?” - -“That fellow in your office, that Holton, you think he’s quite -efficient?” - -“I do.” - -“I wonder,” said Mr Heywood hesitantly, “I wonder how he might work out -as one of our customers’ men. Dealing with the public, all that sort of -thing.” - -“He’d probably do that very well.” - -“You could afford to lose him?” - -“Oh, yes, I think so.” - -“I wish,” said Mr Heywood petulantly, “that I knew him better. It’s -terrible having so little contact with the office people.” - -“I could send him in to see you.” - -“Good Lord, no! I wouldn’t know what to say. I’ll wait and see him -tonight at Mrs Stevanson’s.” - -“When do you think you’ll change him over?” - -“Oh, I don’t know. If I think he has the suitable, ah, temperament, we -might change him this week.” - -“I know he’ll be really tickled to hear this.” - -“I expect so.” - -“How is Mrs Heywood?” asked Murphy politely. - -“She’s fine, thank you,” said Mr Heywood blankly. Trouble, decided -Murphy. The third Mrs Heywood seemed to be following the previous Mrs -Heywoods. - -“Well ...” said Murphy and he mumbled words to himself as he walked -toward the door. Mr Heywood stared vacantly at him as he left. - -Mr Murphy felt well when he was in motion. Walking with great dignity -from office to office, conscious of the eyes of others upon him, was -good for him. Aware of being a symbol of success he forgot his pains -and some of his worries. - -As he went into the Statistical office he could feel the atmosphere -change. The clerks and typists became busy. - -Mr Murphy went to his desk. “Any calls?” he asked. - -Caroline shook her head. When she shook, her breasts quivered slightly. -Mr Murphy noticed this and his stomach constricted with pain. Emotion -was bad for him, according to the doctors. He looked away and tried to -think of something else. - -“No, there weren’t any calls. Some memorandums came in from the other -sections but that was all.” - -“Any letters?” He thought of his family. - -“Yes.” Caroline sounded surprised. “Right there on your desk. Right -where I always put them.” - -“Oh, yes.” Mr Murphy sat down at his desk and looked at the pile of -neat businesslike envelopes. He had no desire to open them. - -Caroline typed rhythmically at her desk. - -“Say, Caroline....” - -She stopped and looked at him. - -“Tell Holton to step over here, will you?” - -“Sure, Mr Murphy.” She got up and went through the gate and out into -the office. He watched her legs as she walked determinedly to the other -end of the room. He was almost pleased to feel the pain come flooding -into his stomach. That would teach his stomach, he thought viciously. - -The gate creaked and Robert Holton stood before him. - -“You want to see me, sir?” - -“Yes, yes, Holton. Sit down here. Over here on my left.” - -Robert Holton sat down and looked expectant. Mr Murphy wondered for -a moment why he had asked to see Holton. Then he remembered what Mr -Heywood had said. - -“How’s everything coming, Holton?” - -“Just fine, Mr Murphy.” - -“Well, that’s good. Things _have_ been going pretty well here. But -I suppose you find things pretty dull after the army?” - -“No, no. I like this sort of work. I had enough moving around.” - -“I should think so. Well, that’s what most of us want, I guess,” said -Mr Murphy. “We want to settle down. A lot of people say they don’t like -routine but I think everybody does. It’s an important thing.” - -“Yes, sir. I think it is.” - -“There is,” said Mr Murphy, shutting his eyes for a moment to give the -illusion of pondering, “there is security in working for a big house -like Heywood and Golden.” He opened his eyes and looked directly at -Holton. “Don’t you feel that’s true?” - -“Yes, I hope so.” - -“Yes, it’s true.” Mr Murphy sighed and thought about going out to the -country for a rest. A place that would have neither telephones nor -mosquitoes. Most places had one or the other. - -He looked at Robert Holton and wondered what he was thinking. He seemed -a likeable young man. He was quiet and reserved and didn’t seem too -aggressive. In fact that was probably a fault that Mr Murphy had not -thought of. Holton was not a go-getter. He might lack initiative. That -was why he was quiet and reserved. Or, as Mr Murphy finally thought, -that might be a reason for his reserve. - -“Tell me, Holton,” said Murphy, “have you had any ideas about, ah, -your place here? I mean, what you would like to do. Naturally you -wouldn’t be interested in staying here, in this department. With your -education....” He permitted his voice to fade. - -“No, I haven’t had any ideas; in fact, I haven’t thought too much about -it. You see this is all pretty different from what it was like where I -was in the army. I don’t suppose I’m quite used to the idea ... well, -you know....” - -“I think I do. You would like to work in another department perhaps?” - -Robert Holton looked at him. Mr Murphy could not tell what he was -thinking for his face was relaxed and calm. “Well,” said Holton, “I -don’t know. I don’t want to be out of my depth. I’d like to make more -money. I like the idea of buying and selling stocks. I like that idea -very much. In fact, that’s one of the reasons I came here.” - -“Of course, there’s a lot of work to knowing about stocks and bonds. -You realize all the work that’s involved.” - -“Yes.” - -“Perhaps a place will be found for you in that department. It’s hard to -say, though. With your, ah, background it shouldn’t be too hard. That -is, if you have the _stuff_.” - -“I hope so.” - -“Good.” Mr Murphy watched Caroline typing. “I understand,” said Mr -Murphy finally in a changed voice, “that you’re going out tonight.” - -Robert Holton looked surprised. “What do you mean?” - -“Mr Heywood said you and he were going to the same party.” - -Holton smiled. “That’s right, I’d forgotten. Mrs Stevanson’s giving a -cocktail party. I guess that’s what he means.” - -“It won’t hurt to be nice to him there,” said Mr Murphy with a laugh. - -“No, I don’t suppose so.” - -Mr Murphy looked at Holton and wondered what would become of him. If he -had more initiative he might be a wealthy man because of his background -(the important thing was background), but he would probably not go -very far. He might not even go as far as Mr Murphy had and Mr Murphy -had been a success without background. Robert Holton didn’t look as -though he cared to be a success. - -“Well, don’t let your night life interfere with business,” said Mr -Murphy lightly. - -“No,” said Holton rising, “I won’t.” - -With a nod Mr Murphy dismissed him. - -Mr Murphy watched Caroline absently as she typed. Her hair was rather -long. It must be a nuisance to help her into a coat, he thought -suddenly. That was something he hated to do. Whenever he helped a woman -into a coat there was, first, a certain struggle to get her arms into -the sleeves. Some women were better than others at this. And then, -second, there was the problem of hair. If the woman had long hair it -was inevitably caught inside the coat. This meant that her first motion -was usually to free her hair and that involved a wild freeing and -flinging of the hair which for anyone still posted behind her meant -running a risk of becoming entangled. Mr Murphy wondered about these -problems as he looked at Caroline’s long dark hair. - -He had started to work on his letters (the ones in the business -envelopes) when Richard Kuppelton appeared. - -“Yes?” - -“I’ve got the first part of that report here, the one on aircraft,” -said Kuppelton. - -“Yes?” Mr Murphy made himself sound cold and official. - -“Well, I wondered if you cared to look at them ... what I’ve done so -far, I mean.” - -Mr Murphy looked at him for a moment without speaking. When Mr Murphy -had first come to work for Heywood and Golden his then immediate boss -had impressed him greatly by just looking at him for several seconds -at a time without speaking. Mr Murphy had adopted the mannerism and -over the years had improved it until now he could be very frightening. -He was that way now. - -“You want me to do it for you?” he asked finally. - -“No ... no, sir, I didn’t mean that. I just thought you would like to -see what I got done.” Kuppelton was uncomfortable and Mr Murphy decided -that he had done enough. - -“Why, I’d be glad to look at it,” he said. - -Kuppelton brightened. “Thank you. I only wanted you to see the form I -was using here. That was all. I’m making my conclusions in a slightly -different way from usual and I thought....” - -“Yes, I’ll take a look at it.” - -Kuppelton put a pile of papers down on Mr Murphy’s desk. - -Mr Murphy nodded at him and Kuppelton left quickly. Mr Murphy felt much -better after exercising his power. Poor Kuppelton was a good man in an -office but he would never go very far because he didn’t have assurance. -He would be promoted after the first of the year if Holton were moved -out. That would make Kuppelton happy, which was a good thing. It -wasn’t bad, thought Mr Murphy, to have contented people about you in a -discontented world. He relaxed in his chair and then the pains started -again. - -This time the ache was about an inch below his belt and slightly toward -the left (his appendix was on the right and, besides, his appendix was -in good shape). The pain began to move toward the center. Quickly he -pressed his fingers into the pain. - -His heart beat rapidly and sweat formed on his face. If the pain -didn’t go away by the count of ten he would get up and take the special -medicine his doctor had given him. - -Frightened, Mr Murphy counted and the pain, not subject to this magic, -did not go away. - - - - - _Chapter Six_ - - -“It’s twelve o’clock,” Caroline said to Mr Murphy. “I think I’ll go out -to lunch, if that’s O.K.” - -“Yes, yes, Caroline.” - -She thought he looked rather pale. She was about to ask him how he felt -but she stopped herself, remembering how he disliked talking about his -health. She had noticed that during the last year he had been taking a -lot of medicine. Perhaps he was going to die. Caroline began to compose -a little drama to herself. Mr Murphy had just collapsed across his desk -and she had been the only one to keep a clear head.... - -“You coming, Caroline?” It was Robert Holton. - -“Be right there.” She arranged the papers on her desk, shut the drawers -and joined Robert Holton outside the gate of the railing. - -“Where’ll we eat today?” asked Holton. - -“At _the_ restaurant, of course. Where did you think we would?” - -“Oh, I don’t know.” He was smiling now and she wondered if he could -have been trying to be funny; she could never be sure. - -“Sometimes you don’t make sense,” said Caroline. - -They were almost through the door when one of the secretaries called to -Holton. “Phone, Bob.” - -She waited for him at the door. He went over to his desk and answered -the phone. He seemed excited, she noticed, and he talked very quickly. -She wished she could hear what he was saying. Finally, he finished and -joined her. - -“Who was that?” - -“An old friend of mine.” - -“Man or woman?” - -“A guy I used to know. He just got in town. He comes from out West and -I haven’t seen him for a couple of years.” - -“You knew him in the army?” - -“Yes.” - -They walked through the offices to the elevator and Holton pressed the -button. - -“What’s he doing in town?” - -“He’s just visiting. I’m going to see him this afternoon. He’s coming -over here after lunch.” - -“That’ll be nice. What does he look like?” She asked this gaily, hoping -to have some effect on him. She didn’t, though. - -“I don’t know. He looks all right, I guess.” - -“You certainly are good at description. Be sure to let me meet him.” - -“I will.” - -The elevator stopped for them and they pushed into the lunch-going -crowd. With a rush they descended to the street floor. - -Outside the sun shone brightly above the street. The sky was a vivid -blue and the air smelt clean in spite of the exhaust fumes and the -people of the city. The day was warm. - -They walked along the crowded street. Men of affairs with brief cases -walked in and out of swinging glass doors. Younger men of affairs, -wearing bowler hats and dark coats with darker velvet lapels, marched -solemnly in the parade of business. The white-faced clerks squinted at -the bright sun. Women secretaries walked together, admiring themselves -in the windows. As they walked they talked to each other and to -themselves. - -“What a nice day,” said Caroline, breathing deeply and coughing as the -exhaust fumes tickled her throat. - -“Must be nice in the country,” commented Robert Holton. - -“Not you too?” Caroline laughed. “First Murphy and now you want to go -out in the country.” - -“I don’t want to go. I just said it must be pleasant there.” They -crossed a street and he looked carefully to left and right and when -they finally crossed the street the crowd had gone around them and the -light was beginning to change again. - -“Why do you take so long?” said Caroline disagreeably. - -“Just careful, that’s all.” - -They walked in silence then. She was very conscious of his being beside -her, of her arm being in his. This troubled Caroline, this awareness. -She looked at Holton’s face as they walked down the crowded street. -There was nothing in his face that she would like to have seen. This -made her feel better because he was not the right person. - -Over the high gray buildings was a narrow section of bright blue sky. -It was almost too bright and contrasted strangely with the dingy -buildings and the dark streets. Caroline watched the blue sky suspended -upon the buildings. No clouds were in the sky but from time to time -a bird would circle in it. And, as she watched the sky, a large air -liner, like a rigid bird, moved straightly eastward. - -Caroline breathed deeply again, careful this time not to get the -exhaust fumes too far down in her lungs. She coughed anyway. - - * * * * * - -Marjorie Ventusa looked through the plate-glass window at the street. -She had been watching off and on for half an hour, waiting for Robert -Holton to come. - -Some days he would come in at twelve and other days at twelve-thirty, -and then there had been certain days when he’d not come in at all and -those were bad days for Marjorie Ventusa. - -It was a few minutes after twelve when she saw him walking down the -street, pushing through the crowd, a man different from all the others -walking in the street. She frowned when she saw the pretty secretary -with him. Marjorie hated this girl but she was helpless and could only -hate all the others who seemed close to Robert Holton. - -She pretended to be busy cleaning a table when they came in. - -“Hello, Marjorie,” said Holton and he and Caroline came over to her -table. - -“Oh, hello, it’s you again.” She made herself sound matter-of-fact and -bored, but her throat was suddenly full and she had to clear it before -she could speak again. “What you going to eat today?” - -“I don’t know,” said Holton and he and Caroline sat down at the table, -across from each other. “What do you want, Caroline?” - -“I’d like to see a menu, I think,” said Caroline in a voice that -Marjorie Ventusa would like to have choked out of her. - -“Here,” said Marjorie and she handed them two white menus. - -They studied the menus. - -Many people were coming in and going out of the restaurant. All the -tables were full now and there were people standing and waiting for -tables. Some of her customers were beginning to look at her, waiting -for her to take their order. She hoped Mrs Merrin would not notice how -long she was taking with Robert Holton. - -“I think,” said Caroline, frowning a thin hair-wide frown, “I think I -will have some tomato juice, and a lamb chop....” - -“No more lamb chops,” said Marjorie, trying to keep the triumph from -her voice. - -The hair-wide frown became a scowl. “Then I’ll have the veal.” - -“Any vegetables?” - -“Yes, the spinach.” - -“You can have one other.” - -“That’s all.” - -And Marjorie thought, “the” spinach indeed. Why was it that when these -people wanted to sound elegant they would talk about everything as -“the”? - -“What do you want, Mr Holton?” She wished that she had the nerve to -call him Bob, the right to call him that. - -“Oh, I think I’ll take the same.” - -“Coffee, tea, or milk?” She said the words as though they were one word. - -They both asked for coffee and Marjorie went quickly out of the dining -room and into the kitchen. - -There was much more steam in the kitchen now than there had been at -breakfast; as the day passed the kitchen got hotter, and steamier, and -the cooks got more irritable and Mrs Merrin more nervous and Marjorie -Ventusa would become tired and sad. - -She called the new orders to the cook. Then she picked up two small -glasses of tomato juice and put them on her tray. She fingered one of -them a moment, thinking that soon he would be drinking from it. She -enjoyed thinking of this, though it only made her desire stronger and -her sadness greater. - -She didn’t want to go back yet. She hoped Mrs Merrin would not come -into the kitchen for a while. - -But one of the swinging doors opened and Mrs Merrin walked into the -kitchen. Quickly Marjorie picked up her tray and went back to the -dining room. - -Caroline and Robert Holton were talking seriously and Marjorie, because -of the noise of voices in the dining room, couldn’t hear what they were -saying. - -They stopped talking as she came up to them. - -“Here you are,” said Marjorie Ventusa brightly, putting the glasses of -tomato juice on the table. - -Robert Holton smiled at her, showing his white even teeth. - -“Have you got a date for tonight?” asked Robert Holton. - -“You know I always do.” - -“A sailor maybe?” - -“I’m not saying.” - -“Get one who’ll take you to Italy.” - -This was cruel but Marjorie smiled and forgave him. She had not been -joking when they spoke of Italy. She did not think it fair of him to -say this in front of the pretty girl, but Marjorie forgave him because -he was young and because she felt about him in a certain way. - -“Maybe we’ll go to Capri together,” she said. “Is it nice there?” - -Holton nodded. “Beautiful.” - -Caroline said, “I’m sure you don’t want to take up any more of her -time, Bob. She’s got a lot of things to do.” Caroline gave Marjorie a -brilliant smile. A man from the table next to theirs said loudly, “When -are you bringing me my soup?” - -“In just a minute, sir.” Marjorie looked at Robert Holton once again, -tried to catch his eye but he was talking now to Caroline and Marjorie -Ventusa had been put quietly from his mind. She went back to the -kitchen. - - * * * * * - -Outside the restaurant Richard Kuppelton and the receptionist Ruth -were wondering whether anybody they knew would be in the restaurant; -otherwise they would have to wait for a table. - -Kuppelton looked through the window. He blinked nearsightedly. Then he -saw Robert Holton and Caroline. - -“Caroline’s in there,” he said. - -“With Bob?” - -“Yes.” - -“Well, let’s go on in.” Ruth liked Robert Holton. - -“Hello, hello,” said Kuppelton heartily when they were inside. - -Caroline and Robert Holton appeared glad to see them. - -“My gracious, it certainly is crowded,” said Ruth, pointing to the -people standing. - -“Lucky you people were here,” said Kuppelton. - -“I don’t,” said Ruth, “see how the town stays so crowded all the time. -I could understand it during the war but now ... well, it’s just -impossible to go anywhere or do anything.” - -“I know,” said Holton. “Took me months to get a room.” - -“Is it nice?” asked Caroline. - -He shook his head. “It’s very depressing.” - -“I guess I’m lucky to be living with my family,” said Kuppelton. “It’s -real nice out where we are and there aren’t so many people. I’d hate to -have to live in the city.” - -They talked of the places where they lived and then they started to -talk of the places where they would like to live. - -Kuppelton watched Holton as he talked and he tried to learn, by -concentrating intensely, what he was thinking; to learn if Mr Murphy -had said he would promote him. Holton’s smooth forehead, however, was a -wall and Kuppelton could not pierce it, could not discover the dreams -behind it. - -Marjorie came over to their table and put two plates of veal in front -of Caroline and Robert. The veal was a uniform tan color, floating in a -sea of red sauce. Two saucers of dark-green spinach floating in water -were put beside the plates of veal. - -“Looks good, doesn’t it?” commented Marjorie. - -“Sure, sure,” said Holton, looking at his plate with distaste. - -Kuppelton ordered veal and Marjorie left. - -Kuppelton looked at Ruth. She was dark, with a big nose and with -self-pitying eyes. Her complexion was oily and she wore too much -make-up. Ruth liked all men; she was sitting very close to Robert -Holton now. - -“Any interesting people come into the office?” asked Holton, turning -to Ruth: as receptionist she was always able to tell them about -celebrities. - -Ruth nodded. “Laura Whitner was in to see Mr Heywood.” - -Caroline was interested. “She’s the movie star, isn’t she?” - -Ruth nodded again, a birdlike motion. “Why, she used to be one of the -biggest stars. I used to go see all her pictures. My gracious, they -were wonderful.” - -Marjorie Ventusa returned with veal for Kuppelton and the ham and eggs -for Ruth. - -“Oh, thank you,” said Ruth. “I love ham,” she added. - -Richard Kuppelton looked at Ruth with disapproval. She was an -aggressive woman and he was tired of aggressive women. His mother was -that way. Caroline was more what he wanted. She had spirit but was not -aggressive. There was a difference between spirit and aggressiveness. -He could not quite define it but still there was a difference. Caroline -could act irritated with him and he would not mind. And she always -smiled, even when she was angry; he could not feel that a woman who -always smiled was aggressive. She had a mind of her own but then he -could handle that. Eating veal, Richard Kuppelton felt he could handle -anything. - -Robert Holton finished eating. He sat back in his chair and yawned. - -“Bored?” asked Caroline. - -He shook his head. “No, not very. Just sleepy.” - -“Well, I like that!” exclaimed Ruth. “You’d think we weren’t good -enough for him.” She said this in a way to let him know she was being -humorous. - -Kuppelton decided, however, to develop what she’d said. “Sure, he’s a -good friend of Mr Heywood.” - -Ruth was impressed. “I certainly wish I had your contacts then. I sure -wouldn’t be working in this lousy job.” - -Robert Holton wanted to know what was wrong with her job. - -“Oh, you know how it is. Doing the same thing day after day. It makes -me sick. I’d like to do something exciting.” - -“Like what?” asked Richard Kuppelton. These were his secret wishes, -too, but he would never have put them into words. He was delighted to -hear someone else say them. - -Ruth was not sure just what she wanted. She decided she would like to -travel. Richard Kuppelton admitted, then, that he would like to travel. -Caroline thought a moment and agreed with them that to travel would be -the best thing anyone could do, the thing she wanted to do. - -Robert Holton, who had traveled, said that he didn’t care to leave New -York again: not for many years at least. - -“You’re not adventurous,” said Caroline sadly. - -Ruth protected him. “After all, he’s had some adventures. He was in the -war.” - -Richard Kuppelton was glad that Holton did not talk about the war. -It made too great a difference between them and the women might have -called attention to this difference. - -He disliked Robert Holton because he was afraid of him. It was more -than the threat to his job, much more than that. Caroline, whom -Kuppelton wanted, seemed interested in him. He flattered himself that -she was no more interested in Holton than she was in himself; still he -was a threat. - -Ruth was moving closer to Robert Holton now. Her thick curved lips, -heavily painted a dark red, looked unpleasantly moist. Kuppelton had -a desire to dry her mouth. He was amused, though, at the way she was -playing up to Holton. She liked him now because of his influence, not -because he was good-looking. Although Kuppelton, for one, couldn’t see -his handsomeness. Holton was well-built but not much better than he -was; of course, Kuppelton had a slight stomach and Holton didn’t, but a -few days of exercise and he could be as slim. He made a mental note to -do some exercise. - - * * * * * - -Marjorie Ventusa arranged her hair in front of the steamy mirror. It -didn’t look too bad when she wore it over her ears. She pinned it back -carefully. Perhaps she wouldn’t have to get a snood after all. - -She put some other people’s orders on her tray and left the kitchen. -The crowd waiting to be seated was beginning to thin and soon the lunch -rush would be over. - -She waited on the customers whose orders she had and then she moved -over to the table where Robert Holton was sitting. He was very -handsome, she thought. She looked at the others with him and she envied -them all. They didn’t understand what he was, how important he was. - -The girl with the blue eyes and slim legs she could not like. This -was her rival--one of her rivals, anyway. She was glad that he never -seemed particularly interested in this girl and, for that matter, the -girl didn’t seem interested in him. Still she was near, worked with him -probably: she was a danger. - -Then Marjorie Ventusa did not like the dark-haired girl with the big -nose who sat so close to him, but at least she was not a danger. She -almost pitied this girl who had moved her chair so close to his that -their legs were touching. - -The other man was dull-looking and obviously interested in the girl -with the blue eyes. Marjorie Ventusa wished him luck. Then, having -thought these things about her customers, she walked over to their -table. - -“Ready for dessert?” asked Marjorie Ventusa cheerfully, trying not to -look at Robert Holton. - -They were ready. - -Everyone decided to have vanilla ice cream. Slowly she cleared the -table. This was a hard thing to do, because she had to act as if she -were in a hurry. - -They talked at the table as though she weren’t there. She was, -naturally, used to that: she had been a waitress a long time, but today -she was almost angry at being treated like a piece of furniture. She -could do nothing about it, though. She picked up her tray and went into -the kitchen. - -Marjorie ordered the ice cream. As she waited she wondered if there -was any way she could ever see Robert Holton in his other life: the -mysterious important life he had in the brokerage firm. She tried to -think of some way she could get to know him in this other life. She -could think of nothing. - -The ice cream was ready and she took it back to the dining room. - -She gave them their dessert and only Holton said thank you. She tried -to expand this one phrase into a conversation but it was too difficult. -So she walked over to the next table which was now empty. Slowly she -placed dishes on her tray. She was near enough to them to hear what -they were saying. - -Robert Holton was talking about his job: “I don’t mind being in an -office all day. I can’t see why people mind that so much.” - -The dark girl with the big nose disagreed: “It’s much more natural to -be able to wander around like you want to do. It’s natural to travel, I -think.” - -He laughed. Marjorie liked his laugh. He said, “You should get married, -that’s what you should do.” - -The dark girl became coquettish. “But I haven’t had any offers yet. Of -course, I’m open to any.” - -The bitch, thought Marjorie Ventusa, disliking her now. - -“You shouldn’t have any trouble,” said Holton gallantly and Marjorie -liked him for saying this. - -“You’re just saying that.” - -Then the girl with the blue eyes and the dull man began to talk -together and their voices blended into the ocean-like sound of many -voices in the restaurant. - -They finished the ice cream. - -Marjorie walked over to the table. “Will there be anything else?” she -asked officially. - -There was nothing else. - -“We’ll have our check, please, Marjorie,” said Robert Holton and she -liked the way he said her name. - -“Certainly.” She went to the cashier and had the four checks totalled. -Then she came back. - -They paid her. - -“Back to work,” said the blue-eyed girl with a sigh. - - - - - _Chapter Seven_ - - -“Here we are,” said Caroline. - -Ruth went to her desk in the reception room. “I’ll see you all later,” -she said and she sat down and took out a large gold compact. Caroline -watched her a moment as she powdered her nose, watched her with a -certain pity because she was ugly. - -“Come on,” said Kuppelton and he and Robert Holton walked on either -side of her through the office. She was conscious of the envious stares -of the other girls and she smiled at them as nicely as she could, -knowing that they hated her for her smile. - -Mr Murphy was not in the Statistical office. Everyone else was back, -though. As she entered the room Caroline was conscious of a difference -in the atmosphere. The women were quieter than usual and the men were -watching. She looked and saw, sitting at Holton’s desk, an army officer. - -“Jim!” said Holton when he saw him; the other looked up. - -“Hi,” he said and he got to his feet. They shook hands with Anglo-Saxon -restraint, muttering monosyllables of greeting, each asking about the -other’s health. - -Kuppelton went to his own desk without speaking to the army officer. -Caroline stood expectantly beside Robert Holton, waiting to be -introduced. - -“This,” said Holton finally, “is Caroline. Caroline, meet Jim Trebling.” - -“How do you do,” said Trebling. - -“How do you do,” said Caroline and they shook hands. His hand, she -noticed, was rough and hard. - -“You live in New York?” asked Caroline. This was always a good -beginning because it could lead to all sorts of confessions. - -He shook his head. “No, I’m from California. I’m from Los Angeles.” - -She was impressed. “That’s where Hollywood is, isn’t it? You from -Hollywood?” - -No, he was not from Hollywood. He lived near by. - -“I’d certainly like to visit out there.” - -“It’s not as interesting as New York.” - -She gave a little laugh to show her scorn for New York, her laugh -leveling the buildings and cracking Grant’s Tomb. “It’s awful here,” -she said. “We have an awful climate.” - -He raised the buildings again. “Oh, I think it’s pretty exciting. -You’ve got so many things. This is really the first time I’ve seen New -York. Bob and I went overseas from here and we came back here but I -never really saw the town.” - -“Are you regular army?” she asked. Men in uniform were becoming rare. - -“No, I’m getting out soon. I signed up for a little while longer.” - -“Oh.” - -He and Robert Holton began to talk then about the army and she felt -shut out. She stood there wondering whether she should go or not. She -rather liked this young man. He was a lieutenant, at least he had one -bar on his shoulder and she thought that lieutenants wore a single bar: -the war had been such a long time ago and she had forgotten so many -things. - -He had dark eyes and bleached-looking hair which Caroline had always -found attractive in men. His skin was rather pale for a Californian; -all Californians had brown skin in her imagination. He was not -particularly handsome, though he looked rather distinguished, with -sharp features and circles under his eyes. - -“Are you in the East long?” she asked. - -He looked at her as if he had forgotten she was there; still, he was -very polite. “No, I’m only here for a week.” - -“Looking around?” - -“Yes, looking around.” - -“Caroline,” said Robert Holton, as though explaining an important -thing, “Caroline is the belle of the office.” - -“I can see that,” said Trebling without too much effort, saying it -almost naturally, a hard thing to do. - -“Oh, thank you,” said Caroline. Now she didn’t know what to say. She -looked at his ribbons. She counted them mechanically, the way she did -before the war ended: five ribbons. “You must’ve been around quite a -bit,” she said finally, speaking before the silence her last words had -made became another conversation. - -Trebling nodded seriously. “Yes, I saw quite a bit. No more than Bob -did, though.” - -“That must’ve been nice,” said Caroline, “your being able to serve -together everywhere.” - -“Yes, it was.” - -She knew that they were waiting for her to go but she wasn’t ready yet. -“Do you like being in the army in peacetime?” - -“No, not particularly.” - -“Well, you’ll be out soon, I suppose.” - -“Quite soon.” - -She had to go now. She couldn’t understand what kept her standing there -foolishly trying to make a conversation by herself. It was not as if -Lieutenant Trebling were handsome or unusual. - -Caroline made her great effort. “Well,” she said, “I guess I’ll see -you later, Mr Trebling.” Was that the right name? She wasn’t sure. She -hoped she hadn’t said it wrong. - -“Nice to have met you, Caroline.” She smiled at him, her face at a -three-quarter angle: her most flattering angle. Then, with great -nonchalance, she walked slowly back to her desk. - - * * * * * - -Trebling was surprised at the way Holton looked out of uniform. - -To have lived several years with a person who looked always one way -and then to see him later another way is startling. Jim Trebling had -always thought of Holton as a soldier: he could not get used to him as -a civilian in an office. - -“Sit down, Jim.” Holton pointed to a chair beside his desk. They both -sat down. Trebling felt a little awkward. The office was too formal for -him and he was not at ease. - -Jim looked at Holton, trying to get accustomed to him. “You’ve -certainly changed. I don’t know if I’d have recognized you.” - -Robert Holton laughed a little self-consciously. “These civilian -clothes _are_ different. They make you feel different.” - -“You’re really settling down, I guess.” - -“I’m afraid so.” - -“I wish I could. Maybe I will when I get out ... I don’t know.” - -“What do you think you’re going to do?” - -Jim shrugged. “I don’t know. I’ve been thinking of starting some kind -of a business. You know, what we used to talk about before you got out.” - -Holton nodded. “That’s a good idea, I guess. I thought of it, too, but -of course the odds are against you.” - -Trebling was surprised to hear Holton say this. “I know it,” he said. - -Holton saw then that he hadn’t said the right thing. He tried to -explain. “I don’t mean you shouldn’t start a business. I just mean -something might go wrong.” He was saying worse things now; he stopped. - -Jim changed the subject. “How do you like being out?” - -“Oh, it’s pretty wonderful. Just to be able to stay in one place....” - -“I guess it’s nice for a while.” - -Holton sighed. “I don’t think I’ll ever travel again.” - -Jim was surprised. “I thought you were going to go around the world. -Don’t you remember when we used to talk about seeing more of Italy?” - -“Well, maybe sometime. I hadn’t stopped moving for very long then.” - -“No, that’s right, you hadn’t.” As they talked Jim Trebling became more -uneasy. This was a person he had not met before and he was surprised -and sorry. Robert Holton had been different as a soldier. - -As they talked, the words forming conventional patterns and hiding -their real thoughts, Jim thought of the war. - -“You remember the time we were in Florence?” - -Holton said that he remembered it very well. - -They spoke then of Florence and as they talked Jim Trebling began to -remember many things. - - * * * * * - -The city had been liberated for several months. The war was almost over -and Holton and Trebling were able to take a week’s leave: they went to -Florence. - -Parts of the city had been badly damaged. The old buildings on the Arno -had been leveled in many places but the Ponte Vecchio was still there. -These things had not been very important, however, because they had not -gone to see antiques. They had gone to rest, to meet women, and to try -to find enough liquor to get drunk on. - -They stayed with a family outside of the town; they stayed in a place -called Fiesole. - -Trebling remembered the house clearly: long and rambling, dirty-white -stucco with small iron balconies beneath the larger windows. A rock -garden, dusty gray-green olive trees and an unearthly view of the -valley in which was Florence. - -The house belonged to a family named Bruno, friends of Robert Holton’s -mother. They had invited the two of them to stay as long as they liked: -in those days it was a good policy to have American soldiers in one’s -home. - -Robert Holton had liked a girl named Carla. Trebling had liked her too, -but not as much as Holton did. He remembered one night when the three -had sat on the terrace, watching the city. - -It was summer and the night was warm and vibrant. The city lights -glittered in the valley-cup; the lights were golden and flickering and -the river shone darkly. - -They sat on a stone ledge, their feet dangling above the rock garden. -Carla was between them; her hair was dark and her face pale. They sat -like this, watching the lights of the city and listening to the sound -of insects whirring in the night. - -And Jim had said, embarrassed by the long silence, “It’s so peaceful -here.” - -The other two acted as if they had not heard him. Holton, sitting close -beside Carla, touched her. - -And then she had said, “It seems like such a long time ago.” They -thought of this as they sat in the blue darkness. - -Holton finally spoke, saying, “Isn’t it a shame that this has to change -again?” - -They had been surprised to hear him say this; Trebling was more -surprised than Carla because, though he had known Holton longer, she -knew him better. Trebling was surprised to hear Holton speak seriously: -he was never serious at other times. He always tried to be funny. - -“Why _should_ this change again?” asked Carla, looking at him, -trying to tell his expression in the dark. - -Holton only sighed and said, “Because everything changes when you go -away.” - -“You can come back,” said Carla and Jim remembered now the exact way -she had said that and he was sorry for her. - -Holton didn’t answer for a moment and then he had said, “Yes, I suppose -you can.” They knew then that he would not come back and Trebling -could sense her sadness as they watched the lights flickering below -them. - - * * * * * - -“Do you remember Carla?” asked Jim suddenly, his mind adjusting to the -present. - -“The girl in Florence? Sure, I remember her. Was that her name ... -Carla?” - -“That’s right.” - -“She was very nice looking, wasn’t she?” - -“Yes.” - -“Sure, I remember her.” - -“I thought you liked her quite a bit,” said Trebling, not looking at -Holton. - -“I suppose I did. We ran into a lot of people, though. There were so -many people.” - -Trebling agreed that there had been a number of people in Europe, -people they had known. - -“That was a good town, Florence,” said Holton suddenly. - -“It was.” - -“We were there a week, weren’t we?” - -“About that.” - -Holton nodded, and Trebling watched him to see how he felt; Holton’s -face told him nothing, though. He was only remembering. - -“It’s certainly a nice feeling to be out,” said Holton finally. - -“I guess it must be.” - -“Not having to worry about being moved from place to place.” - - * * * * * - -They were standing in the Roman Forum. All around them were pieces -of shattered marble, shattered in earlier wars. Trebling and Holton -had looked at three slender columns of marble, all that was left of a -temple. - -Trebling had remarked, “I’ll bet those pillars are pretty old.” - -Holton agreed, “Maybe a thousand years old.” - -Together they had looked at the three columns of the ruined temple. - -Trebling asked, “Do you think you would’ve ever gotten here except in -the army?” - -“No. I don’t guess so.” - -“I probably wouldn’t have either.” - -“It’s sort of interesting.” - -And Trebling had said, “I like the traveling part of all this.” - -Robert Holton agreed to this and then they began to complain about -other things. - - * * * * * - -Trebling sat back in his chair and looked around the office. He didn’t -like offices and he didn’t like this one at all. The clear constant -light standardized the people in the room. - -“How do you like it here?” he asked. - -Holton shrugged. “O.K., I suppose. It’s something to do.” - -“You think you’ll stay in this sort of work?” - -“Probably, I don’t know yet.” - -“I had thought you might go into this new thing with me. - -“Well....” - -Neither spoke for a moment. - -Finally Trebling asked, “Can I smoke in here?” - -“I’m sorry, Jim, but....” - -“Sure, I know: rules.” - -“I’m sorry. These people are awful stiff about a lot of things.” - -Jim Trebling wished again that he hadn’t come. He had an impulse to run -away. “What’re you doing tonight?” he asked finally. - -“I’m going to a big cocktail party.” - -“Being social, eh?” - -“Well, you know you have to make contacts ...” he continued, explaining -himself carefully. - -Then Holton asked Jim about himself, and he listened as Jim talked. The -cataloguing of army camps, the different duties in each, the girl he -had decided to marry and then didn’t, his current leave of absence, the -trip across the country, the pleasure of seeing Robert Holton again. - -Trebling told this story automatically, as one always tells a much-told -personal story and as he told this he wondered what had happened to -Holton. - -In the war he had been considered wild. He had spent most of the time -laughing at things. He had been easily bored and now he was changed. - -“It must be nice to be out,” Trebling repeated, not knowing what else -to say. - -And Robert Holton explained to him in detail why it was so nice to be -free. - - * * * * * - -Paris had been the most interesting place of all. They had spent two -days there. Trebling had been very conscientious and had insisted that -they see palaces and landmarks and they had actually tried to see a -few but then Holton decided that there was not enough time for that. -They met two girls. Trebling could not remember their names; he could -remember nothing about them except that they were rather pretty and -claimed to be sisters. - -The girls had suggested they go on a picnic. Holton had liked this -idea and he managed to get some food from the mess officer of a -near-by company. They took bicycles and drove out of Paris. They rode -through Sèvres and some small towns on the outskirts. They approached -Versailles but the girls didn’t care to go into the town and so they -turned left from the main road. At a small town called Jouy-en-Josas -they stopped, and on the dark green lawn of a bombed-out château they -had their picnic. - -The sky was overcast that day. And the woods that surrounded the -château were blue and smoky and looked mysterious, like the pictures of -enchanted forests in children’s books. - -When they had finished lunch Holton wanted to go walk in the woods. -Only one of the girls spoke English. - -“Let’s take a walk in the woods,” Holton suggested. - -The two girls giggled and talked together very quickly in French. The -one who spoke English finally said, “Sure, we go walk in the woods with -you.” They walked in the woods. - -Hand in hand the two couples walked between the misty trees. There -was no underbrush here and the trees came up out of the stony, -grass-covered ground, free and straight. - -The two girls understood what was expected of them. His most vivid -memory was not of the one he had but of Holton’s: a stocky, pink-faced -girl. He remembered clearly the way her head lolled against the tree, -her eyes closed and her thick lips slightly ajar. He remembered that -her hair was almost the same color as the bark of the tree. - -“Say, Bob, do you remember those two girls from Paris?” - -“When was that?” - -“You know, the time we went on the picnic.” - -“I’m afraid I’ve forgotten.” That was that. - -A large important-looking man came into the office. When he saw -Trebling with Holton he stopped in the middle of the room, changed his -course with the unself-conscious dignity of a schooner under full sail, -and walked straight over to them. - -Holton got to his feet quickly and Trebling did the same, sensing that -this was a person of importance. - -“Jim Trebling, this is Mr Murphy, the Chief of our section.” - -“Glad to meet you, Lieutenant.” They shook hands vigorously, Mr Murphy -smiling with goodwill. - -“Well, Lieutenant, I suppose you’ll be getting out soon?” - -Mechanically Trebling explained what he was planning to do. - -“Think you’ll go into Business?” asked Mr Murphy. - -“Maybe, I don’t know.” - -“Lot of openings now for a young man who wants to get ahead.” - -“There probably are.” - -They talked for a while of Business as though it were a state of being. - -Trebling looked at Holton as Mr Murphy talked, looked at him, trying -to find something familiar in his face. For a moment as he looked he -thought he could see a tightness about the mouth, an effort at control -but Jim Trebling could not tell what Holton was controlling and the -mouth soon relaxed and he could tell nothing then. - -Coming back on the boat together they had talked of what they were -going to do when they got out. - -“I think I’d like to make money,” said Holton, looking at the white -wake of the ship. - -“That’s not a bad idea. How?” - -“Damned if I know.” - -“We could always start that pottery business I was telling you about, -back in California.” - -“That’s a thought.” - -“Of course there’re a lot of other things we could do.” - -“I suppose it’s all a matter of picking the right one.” - -They looked at the gray water and thought of new things, of works not -yet begun. Pensively Holton leaned out over the railing and spat. -Trebling, interested, did the same. For several moments they were in -serious contest to determine who could spit the farthest. Holton won, -although Trebling claimed he had been helped by a gust of wind. - -Then they walked about the decks of the transport. Soldiers were -everywhere. They sat in groups on the covered hatches, they leaned over -the railing to look at the sea and, also, to be sick. - -“I guess all these people are going to be trying the same thing,” said -Holton suddenly. - -“Try what? Starting a business?” - -Sure. - -“I don’t think so.” - -“A lot of them will.” - -“So what?” - -“I guess it could work.” They stopped amidships and looked out to -sea again. “I’d certainly like to have a lot of money,” said Holton -sincerely. - -“So would I,” said Trebling with casual sincerity. - -They had decided then to start in together when they got out of the -army. Holton had been discharged first, however, and he had immediately -joined Heywood and Golden. In his occasional letters Holton never -mentioned the business again. Trebling remembered that now and was -sorry so much had changed. - - * * * * * - -Mr Murphy was talking about Business. - -Holton was listening to him with what appeared to be interest. Trebling -shook himself and tried to act as if he had been following the lesson -Mr Murphy had been giving him. - -“Very nice to have met you, Lieutenant,” said Mr Murphy at last. - -“Nice to meet you.” They shook hands. Mr Murphy turned to Holton. “I’d -like to see you for a moment if your friend doesn’t mind.” - -“Certainly.” Holton gestured to Trebling to stay where he was. Then Mr -Murphy and Holton went over to the other end of the office where the -windows were. - -Jim Trebling sat in his uncomfortable chair beneath the fluorescent -lights. He wanted to leave this office, leave it now and not come back. -He couldn’t understand Holton any longer. He no longer knew him. - -Trebling was aware of someone standing beside him. He looked up: it was -the blue-eyed girl. He started to get to his feet. - -“Don’t move,” she said. “I’m just passing by. Mr Murphy and Bob seem to -be having some sort of conference. I thought I’d wait outside the gate -till they were through.” - -“Sit down,” said Trebling. - -“Thank you.” She sat down in the chair beside him. He wondered what to -say to her, what to talk about. - -“Have you been here long?” he asked. - -She told him that she had been there for several years. - -“It must be interesting working in a place like this.” - -She laughed. “It’s pretty awful, I think. As jobs go, of course, it’s -not bad.” - -“But you’d rather not work at all.” - -“That’s right.” - -“Well, you’ll probably be married soon.” This was a leading question. -There was a simple ritual to conversation with pretty girls who might -be had. - -She recognized this and answered according to the ritual, “Oh, maybe -someday, when I meet the right person.” - -This could mean a lot. He was interested now. “That’s important, -meeting the right person.” - -They were both silent, thinking how important it was to meet the right -person. - -Trebling began to think of this girl (was her name Caroline?) quite -seriously. It was such an important thing to discover: if she could be -had or not. For one night she might be very pleasant. He liked the way -she looked. But then he thought of certain other one-night stands and -of the phone calls and letters and emotion that often came of them. He -would be very careful about this. He resumed. - -“I suppose you can have a pretty good time in New York if you know the -right places to go.” - -“Yes, there are some nice places. You have to be very careful, though.” - -“A lot of them are clip joints, I guess.” - -She laughed. “I’ll say they are.” - -“Depends, I guess, on who you go out with.” - -“Well, you should know your way around.” - -They were drawing nearer and nearer to the act. Everything was going -well. She was returning all his signals. He began to breathe a little -hard as they approached the gateway. - -“I know so few people in New York,” he said. “Bob’s really the only -person I know well. I don’t know any girls.” - -“Well, there’re a lot of them around.” - -“I know.” He paused and then he began to speak carefully but casually. -“I was going out tonight but I don’t think I will now.” - -“Why?” - -“It’s not much fun alone.” This was said almost pathetically. - -“What about Bob?” - -“He’s going to that cocktail party.” - -“Oh, yes, I forgot.” A pause now, a silence with great meaning in it. - -“Maybe,” and he was saying it at last, “maybe _you_ might go out -with me tonight.” - -“Me!” Surprise, pleasure, a certain asperity, all these emotions -splendidly portrayed in that one word. “Well....” - -“Of course if you’re busy....” - -“Oh, no....” She spoke almost too quickly. “I’m not really certain,” -she added, regaining her dignity. “Perhaps you might call me back -around five. I’ll know then.” At that moment both of them knew. - -“That would be fine. I hope you don’t think it’s ...” - -“Certainly not.” Then she said that any friend of Bob’s was a friend of -hers. - -Trebling felt pleased with himself for having managed so well. It -might take a week but it would still be pleasant. He looked forward to -the final moment of yielding. He sighed and started to think of other -things. - -Caroline, seeing that Holton was on his way back, got up from her -chair. “Nice to have seen you, Lieutenant. I’ll be looking forward to -your call.” - -He also stood up. “I hope you can make it.” She said that she did, too, -and they both knew what was going to happen. Robert Holton came back -and Caroline left. - -“That’s a pretty girl,” said Trebling. - -“Caroline? Yes, she’s pretty nice.” - -They stood looking at each other awkwardly. “Shall we get together -tomorrow evening?” suggested Holton. - -“Sure, that’d be fine.” - -“Well, listen, Jim, it’s been wonderful seeing you....” - -“And I’ve enjoyed it....” Their voices intermingled into a single -sound. Neither of them listened to the words of the other. - -“See you tomorrow then, Bob?” - -“See you then.” They said good-bye and Jim Trebling left the office. -As he stood in the reception room waiting for the elevator he felt sad -at the way Holton had changed. It was such a shame because they had -once been very close. Then Jim Trebling thought of Caroline and he felt -happier. The Carolines were the important things. - -The elevator door opened and he stepped inside. - - - - - _Chapter Eight_ - - -At five-thirty the world ceased to be official and became private. - -Happily Robert Holton put away his books and figures and prepared to -leave. Monday was over and he wouldn’t let himself think of the other -days of his week. - -Caroline was putting on her hat and Mr Murphy sat at his desk behind -her, dreaming, his eyes fixed shrewdly upon nothing. - -Robert Holton walked over to Caroline. - -“Ready to go?” - -She nodded. “All ready.” Together they walked through the emptying -offices, rode down the crowded elevator, and stepped out into the more -crowded street. - -The sky was gray now and the sun had vanished behind buildings. The air -was cool and the smell of exhaust was strong as cars moved slowly in -the streets, trying to escape to less crowded places. They walked with -the stream of people toward the subway opening. They talked. - -“Guess what?” said Caroline. - -“What?” - -“I’m going out tonight.” - -“Well?” - -“I’m going out with Lieutenant Trebling.” - -He was surprised. “That was fast work. Did he do that while he was in -the office?” - -“We talked about it. He called me back later and I told him I’d go out -with him.” - -“Well, well.” Holton was admiring but Caroline was not sure whether he -was admiring her or Trebling. - -“I think he’s nice,” she said, not committing herself. - -“Yes, he’s a good guy.” - -They crossed a street nervously and in silence. On the other side they -went on talking. - -“Tell me something about him?” she asked. - -“There’s not much to tell. He’s from the West Coast. He went to UCLA, -I think, and his old man’s in the insurance business. He went into the -army about the same time I did and he’s still in.” - -“That’s not what I want to know.” - -“Well, what do you want to know?” - -She had trouble saying this. “Oh, you know ... the sort of person he -is. All that sort of thing.” - -Robert Holton, who hadn’t thought much about it, had a hard time -answering. “I guess he’s what you’d call a dreamer. He’s not very -practical. He always wants to start things ... businesses, you know. In -the war he was pretty good and other people liked him. He wasn’t very -wild then.” - -“Is he now?” - -“Just his ideas. In those days I used to be the wild one.” - -She laughed and thought he was joking with her and this made him angry -and sad but there was nothing he could do about it because he had -assumed a certain identity with her and it had to be maintained. - -“I’ll bet you were wild!” - -“We all change,” he said. - -She wasn’t interested in how he’d changed, though: she was interested -in Jim Trebling. “I don’t suppose he’s engaged or anything like that?” -She was casual. - -Holton laughed. “No, you can get him if you want to.” - -“I didn’t mean that at all. What do you mean by saying that?” - -“Not a thing.” - -She went on talking for several moments, trying to be indignant. Then -they crossed another street and she stopped talking. - -They walked with the current of people, walked uncomfortably but -deliberately over the sidewalk ventilators of the subway beneath. As -they walked they could feel the thunder of a subway train under their -feet, vibrating upward, like a great emotion, into their stomachs. - -Then they came to the opening of the subway. With a deep breath they -descended into the pit. Like lemmings dashing seaward the people pushed -down the steps and into already crowded trains. - -Caroline and Holton were separated. A sudden push of the crowd threw -her into the train just before the door closed. He caught a last -glimpse of her serene beauty being crushed between a large Negress and -a tall white man. The train gave a rumble and pulled away. - -Holton stood on the concrete platform with a hundred others who had -missed this train and were waiting for the next. - -He walked up and down between the concrete pillars, looking at the -broken machines which were supposed to sell gum and peanuts and, from -habit, he put his finger into one of the slots to see if anything was -there: nothing was there however. - -He admired the advertisements. His favorite one, the girl advertising -beer, was not in this station but there were others. Two very excellent -ones of movie actresses, young women hauntingly attractive with red -lips. He admired these even though the most beautiful actress of all -had had her front teeth blacked out and a crude phallic image drawn -over her passionate face. There were people in the world who would do -those things, of course, and he was not annoyed. - -The other advertisements were less interesting and he didn’t look at -them very long. - -Another train roared through the tunnel, stopping with great noise; the -doors opened and people flowed out; then another rush to get on the -train. Robert Holton allowed himself to be carried into the hot stale -car. - - * * * * * - -He liked to walk in the Park. In the evenings the Park was the most -peaceful place in the city. A few people would be sitting on the -benches and a few couples would be walking between trees but there were -never many people here in the early evening and the ones that were -there were always quiet. - -As Robert Holton walked the miracle of the street lamps took place, -white light filling the bulbs and changing the early evening, the -twilight period, to a premature night. - -He walked quickly now because it was almost six o’clock. Mrs Raymond -Stevanson’s cocktail parties often went on until nine or ten o’clock -and occasionally they lasted all night but he couldn’t know this for -certain and he didn’t want to be late. - -Robert Holton thought sadly about Jim Trebling as he walked, breathing -the cool air. A short time had made a lot of difference and he was -aware of this difference. - -Trebling was apt to be impractical. It was a likeable quality in the -army; he himself hadn’t made much sense in those days, but things had -changed now. This was the time to be practical and Jim Trebling was not. - -A couple were embracing beside a large rock. He watched them with -interest as he went by. - -He had tried to pretend to be the same but the effort, or the change, -had been too great. It made him unhappy to think that he and Trebling -had really been so different, had always been so different, even in -those days. He was shocked to think that Trebling remembered the army -as a pleasant period of his life. There had been times, of course.... - -Another couple came out of the woods, walked to the pathway and looked -uncertainly about them, as though unsure of themselves. When he glanced -at them they looked at him angrily, as if he had been spying. He walked -away. - -Robert Holton was not sure why he had changed toward Trebling. He -wanted to be the same. He wanted to take up the friendship where it had -been broken but he could not. He was not going to change again. - -A nurse with a baby carriage was hurrying streetward. It was late, -probably much too late for her to be out with the baby. As she passed -him he caught a glimpse of the child and saw that it was staring -vacantly ahead, concentrating upon growth. - -He followed the nurse and the carriage toward the street. Robert Holton -smiled to himself when he thought of Caroline and Jim Trebling going -out together. It was always interesting when people out of different -periods of his life came to know each other. He had never associated -Trebling with Caroline before. - -He took a last deep breath of air before he left the Park. He wished -vaguely that he might have more time to walk in the Park and straighten -out certain things. - -The uptown streets were not crowded. A few people were coming home from -work; most of the people were already home by now. Children played -together in the streets, shouting at one another in sharp hoarse -voices. A smell of cooking was in the streets. - - * * * * * - -There was no mail for him. - -This was not a good day. On the good days there was mail; days could -be bad when there wasn’t any. Not that there was anyone Robert Holton -wanted to hear from in particular but he was less alone when he had -letters to read. - -“Been a nice day,” said the person behind the desk. - -“It certainly has,” said Robert Holton. - -“Won’t be long until it’s winter,” said the person behind the desk. - -“It won’t be long,” said Holton. He turned then and walked through the -dingy lobby to the elevator. - -He and the elevator boy discussed the kind of day it had been. They -also decided that it would be winter soon. - -His room looked no more cheerful than usual. Robert Holton sat down on -the bed, leaving the room dark. It gave him a feeling of power to think -that, when he chose, he could turn on a light and dispel the darkness. - -He started to think of Trebling but stopped himself. There was nothing -to be done now. The old friendship was gone. - -Trebling had mentioned a girl named Carla. He remembered her well. She -had been pretty and intense and wealthy. He had not thought about her -for a long time. She had been a strange girl, gentle and understanding. -He had been greatly attracted to her and she to him. - -They had walked around Florence and Fiesole. She had taken him to old -palaces and churches although he hadn’t wanted to go. When he had -objected she told him that she was trying to show him something. He -never knew what it was she wanted to show him. When he left Florence he -told her that he would write: he didn’t, though, and he had not thought -of her again until today. - -The thing he had liked most about Carla, the thing he could remember -now, was her way of understanding him. She once told him that it wasn’t -necessary to finish sentences when they talked; that she knew what he -would say and that he should know what she would say. - -Sitting in the dark of his hotel room, Robert Holton thought of all -the women he had known and liked; some he had slept with and some he -hadn’t. Most of them he had forgotten. Now he only thought of them when -someone else recalled them to him. - -And he did remember about Paris. He remembered the picnic outside -Versailles, although he could not remember the faces of the two girls. - -In Europe there had been so many women. He often was surprised now -when he thought of how many he had known. There were periods when he -had been never satisfied. Both Trebling and he had gone about it like -hunters. Trebling was probably still hunting, thought Holton suddenly, -and he wondered if he was, too. No, that was behind him. He had to live -and act in a different way now. He had to be a different person. - -Robert Holton turned on the light beside his bed. He blinked in the -yellow light and suddenly he was dissatisfied with the room. He wished -for the first time that he were somewhere else; it didn’t matter where, -just somewhere else. He was a person of great logic, though, and he -asked himself what he would rather be doing and he couldn’t think of -anything else to do. He didn’t want to travel. He had no desire to -escape. There was no place to escape to anyway and Robert Holton who -had a kind of wisdom knew that. - -Then he took his clothes off and got under the shower. This was usually -the happiest part of his day. The warm water gave him a feeling of -security, relaxing him; the world fell into a genial perspective. He -finished bathing reluctantly and dressed quickly. - -Finally he stood in front of the mirror again and combed his hair. He -was glad to see that he wasn’t losing his hair. Sometimes he thought he -was; at other times he knew he wasn’t. - -He wasn’t displeased with himself. He wasn’t pleased either but he knew -that he was acceptable. There was no use in worrying, anyway. He wished -sometimes that his nose could have been more aquiline. He would like to -look more impressive. Perhaps his face would get that way as he grew -older. He turned away from the mirror. - -He looked at the picture on the wall and wondered for the hundredth -time why the painter had made everything look so blue. The painter had -made one of the apples almost sky-blue and Robert Holton had never seen -an apple that color before and he found it hard to believe that there -was much advantage in so misrepresenting things. Perhaps in certain -parts of France the apples were blue. - -He was dressed and ready now. He looked at his watch and saw that it -was a quarter to seven: he would have to hurry. Robert Holton looked -around the room to see if there was anything he wanted to take with -him. There wasn’t. He put on his trench coat, turned out the light, and -left the room. - -The elevator boy wanted to know if he was going to a party. - -“Sure, I’m going to a big party.” - -“Lots of girls, I bet.” The pale thin elevator boy was interested. - -“A whole lot of them.” - -“Boy, I wish I was going out to something like that. This night work is -getting me down. I ain’t getting much relaxation.” He winked to show -what he meant by relaxation and Holton smiled sympathetically. - -Robert Holton stopped by the desk. - -“I’ll be back pretty early,” he said to the clerk. He always told them -when to expect him, told them from force of habit because no one ever -wanted to know. - -“Yes, sir,” said the clerk. “Nice night tonight,” he added. - -“Nice fall night,” agreed Robert Holton. - -They discussed the evening politely. Then Robert Holton left the hotel. - -It was darker now and cooler. The night was refreshing and he felt -suddenly strong and contented. The depression of the office left him -and he was becoming alive. He prepared himself for the party and for -the evening ahead. He walked briskly down the street and, to emphasize -his mood of sudden power, he hailed a taxi and rode in it happily, -without regret for the money he was spending. - - - - - 2 - NIGHT - - - - - _Chapter Nine_ - - -The party seemed to be going well. Although Mrs. Raymond Stevanson -hated cocktail parties, finding her own almost as bad as other -people’s, she still felt she had to give them and she worked very hard -to make them outstanding. - -Several hundred well-dressed people wandered about her large apartment, -looking at the furniture, each other, and the five different paintings -of Mrs Stevanson. There were no traces of Mr Stevanson in the -apartment. He had died early in her career, leaving her his money and -four race horses. She had sold the horses and she had saved quite a bit -of the money. Now, at fifty-five, she was a famous hostess and somewhat -overweight. - -“Good evening, Helena.” Mrs Stevanson turned around and saw the thin -malicious face of Beatrice Jordan. They were contemporaries. - -“Beatrice! How marvelous!” They touched cheeks with slight frowns, then -came apart again with affectionate smiles. - -Beatrice stood back a moment and looked at Mrs Stevanson. Beatrice was -extremely nearsighted but much too vain to wear glasses. To see clearly -she was forced to tuck her chin down and look upward, a habit which had -given her an undeserved reputation as a coquette. She did this now. - -“Helena, you’ve lost weight! How?” - -Mrs Stevanson was pleased. “Does it really show?” She patted her -cement-hard corseted buttock. - -“Not so much around there,” said Beatrice, thinking for a moment. “More -around here.” She touched her own meager breasts. - -“You think so?” Mrs Stevanson was irritated and angry with herself -for allowing Beatrice Jordan to say such a thing. Mrs Stevanson was -proud of her breasts. Several of the famous painters had called her -voluptuous. - -“It’s been lovely seeing you, Helena darling. I’ve got to join my -escort now. I came with Clyde.” - -Beatrice said this triumphantly but gained no victory. - -“You came with Clyde. How wonderful! I’m dining with him tomorrow.” - -“Indeed?” - -“Is he here now?” - -“He’s in the other room.” - -“Do tell him to see me before he leaves. There are _so_ many -people here.” - -“I will, darling. Lovely to see you.” Beatrice smiled, showing her -artful white false teeth and Mrs Stevanson smiled back showing her own -artful white false teeth. The two women parted. - -Mrs Stevanson was annoyed but she had found that the older she got the -less interested she was in what people said. It was well known anyway -that Beatrice Jordan was a cat. - -Mrs Stevanson walked now from group to group. The groups unfolded for -her like flowers before the sun. She would disappear for a moment into -the heart of one and then it would unfold again, release her and -become tight and compact once more. - -Certain groups contained people more important than other groups. In -these she lingered longest, smiling the most attractively, saying her -superlatives. - -In the dining room a buffet had been set on a long table. Three footmen -(hired for the evening only) guarded it from the hungry-looking guests, -betrayed it to the superior ones who were not hungry. - -Twenty or thirty people were gathered here and they looked rather -self-conscious as she approached. Somehow everyone felt rather guilty -to be caught eating heavily (they _were_ eating heavily, she -noticed) at a cocktail party. - -She moved heartily about the dining room, demanding that they eat more, -suggesting they try something they had not already tried. And then, to -show she was mortal, she ate a piece of white bread with Virginia ham -on it. - -The dining room under control, Mrs Stevanson marched back through the -drawing room, accepted greetings and homage with a tiny smile that one -of her lovers (he was dead now) had said reminded him of La Gioconda. - -Mrs Stevanson, among other things, believed in art. Tonight she had -invited several writers, a few painters, one sculptor whose name she -couldn’t remember, and a half-dozen actors whose names everyone knew. - -She had also invited George _Robert_ Lewis. For some obscure -reason his middle name was always Gallicized, legitimatizing the Lewis. -He had been born and raised in Alabama. Unfortunately for his family -he had very early shown a passion for the artistic as well as a marked -tendency toward Socratic love. When he decided that the thing he most -wanted was to go to Paris and become an artist, his family did not -object; in fact, his father had suggested that if he wanted to live the -rest of his life in Paris it was all right with him. Lewis lived there -in the Nineteen-Thirties. He returned in the Forties. - -Mrs Stevanson thought him cute and she was in the habit of telling her -friends that, although his habits were shocking, he was still quite -charming and so _advanced_. And then he was marvelously decadent -and the decadent was becoming popular now that the artificial virility -of war was safely past. - -George _Robert_ Lewis was also an interesting person to know -because he was the editor of _Regarde_, a magazine which had been -called _avant garde_ before that phrase became old-fashioned. -Under his editorship the magazine had advanced all new things in the -hope that one of the new things thus championed would be a success. So -far none had but he still was championing and, though Mrs Stevanson -seldom understood a word he said, she felt he was awfully brave to say -the dreadful things he did about people and morals, especially people. - -Lewis was talking to a small brown man whom she didn’t remember -inviting. - -“Dear Helena,” said Lewis as she approached, “you look wonderfully -well-preserved.” - -“George, you’re a devil,” said Mrs Stevanson, secretly pleased. - -Lewis embraced her in much the same way Beatrice Jordan had. “What mad -things have you been doing, Helena? Something naughty, I’m sure.” His -innocent blue eyes sparkled as he spoke. He had the expressions of a -child. - -“Nothing that you couldn’t equal. It was delightful of you to come.” - -“I was so bored, darling, I felt that if I stayed home another moment I -should go completely out of my mind.” - -“Poor thing.” They talked this way with each other, talked with the -casual rudeness of people who have met each other at many parties. He -was an amazing person, thought Mrs Stevanson, looking at him carefully. -He was slim and not very tall, with a pretty feminine face and, except -for the small bitter lines about his mouth, he looked as if he were -still in his twenties. His actual age was unknown. Mrs Stevanson -thought he was forty. - -“And whom have we here?” asked Mrs Stevanson, turning to face the small -brown man beside him, a social smile on her face. - -“Why, don’t you know ... this is....” He said the name quickly. It was -something foreign and difficult. She would have to call Lewis up the -next day and ask him. She shook hands with the little man and saw that -he was impressed with her. She smiled as George _Robert_ Lewis -explained him. He was a Greek and a professor and he knew a lot about -poetry. - -“_But_ Helena, he has the most fabulous philosophy. I really think -it’s never been done before. What was it again, Timon?” Mrs Stevanson -knew his first name now. - -“I’m sure Mrs Stevanson wouldn’t be interested.” As a matter of fact -Mrs Stevanson wasn’t interested but she encouraged him. - -“I should love to know,” she said. How like an earthenware pot he -looks, she thought as he began to tell her his theory. - -“You see it is based on the legend of the Golden Fleece. I have -substituted the artistic ultimate in place of the fleece and, to carry -the myth to its final parallel, I envisage all artists as traveling -upon an Argosy....” She listened politely, carefully to the sound of -the words, ignoring their meanings. She glanced up and down the large -white-paneled room. No one was drunk. - -“Isn’t it stimulating?” asked Lewis when the Greek named Timon had -finished. - -“Wonderful,” murmured Mrs Stevanson. - -The Greek flushed happily. “I don’t think the Argosy’s ever been -interpreted quite that way before.” - -“I’m sure it hasn’t,” agreed Mrs Stevanson. She was becoming impatient -now. Her own Argosy would have to begin again. More guests were -arriving. - -“Have you seen the new ballet?” asked Lewis suddenly. - -“No, I haven’t seemed to have had the time.” - -“It’s dreadful. But the boy ...” Lewis made little motions with his -hand, with his mouth, with his body. His eyes glittered their blue -innocence, their cheerful pleasure. He described the boy to her and in -great detail he told her how he was going to arrange a meeting. - -“You’re too clever to stay alive, my pet,” said Mrs Stevanson. She -hoped that none of her other guests were overhearing this. Most of them -were quite worldly but a few weren’t and it would never do to have them -hear him. - -“I must ...” began Mrs Stevanson moving slowly away. - -“So nice to have met you,” said the small Greek named Timon. - -“The pleasure ...” murmured Mrs Stevanson. - -Lewis waved to her. “I shall see you later, Helena.” Mrs Stevanson -wondered irritably why fairies had to have such unpleasant voices. - -Several new arrivals were in the foyer. She recognized Mr Heywood -immediately. He was passively allowing one of the footmen to take his -overcoat away from him. - -“Heywood dear, it was so nice of you to come.” - -“It’s nice to be here, Helena.” He looked unhappily at the footman, -retreating with the overcoat. - -“And where is your lovely wife?” Mrs Stevanson knew perfectly well they -were no longer on speaking terms. - -“My wife?” Heywood became dreamy, vague and distant. “Oh, she’s not -well at all.” - -“Really? Do tell me what’s wrong. I’ve a very good doctor, you know.” - -“It’s nothing, really. She has trouble with her head. I think it’s her -head.” - -“Migraine,” said Mrs Stevanson firmly, leading Heywood now into the -drawing room. “I’ve been a martyr to it myself. You know,” and she -lowered her voice, “I think it’s due to change of life.” - -“Really, Helena!” Heywood was gently shocked. He made a restraining -motion with his white limp hairless hand. “I’m sure she’s much too -young for that.” - -“Well, you never can tell,” said Mrs Stevanson who knew Mrs Heywood’s -exact age. - -“What a lot of people,” sighed Heywood. “So many people.” - -“There _are_ a lot,” said Mrs Stevanson proudly. “As usual I don’t -know half of them.” - -Carefully she cut Mr Heywood away from her, allowed him to float -unprotected through the groups of people. He looked back at her sadly -but she had no pity for him and, finally, a group of Wall Street people -swallowed him up and she saw him no more. - -Several people were entering the drawing room. They walked slowly with -the carefully controlled uneasiness of people who didn’t know the -hostess well. - -She recognized one of the newcomers and she greeted him joyfully: -Ulysses returned to Ithaca, as the small Greek named Timon might have -said. - -The man she knew introduced her to the others. Most of them were -English and she had a great admiration for the English. It was not -particularly fashionable to like them now but she still was fascinated -by them because they could talk without moving their lips. It -_was_ rather wonderful. - -“And this,” said the man she knew, “is Mrs Bankton.” - -“How do you do,” said Mrs Bankton in a low voice. She was not English; -Mrs Stevanson could tell that right away. - -“We’ve met before, I think?” A hint of question was in Mrs Stevanson’s -voice. - -“I don’t think we have.” - -Mrs Bankton was definitely not English. Her accent was French or -Spanish or Italian. Mrs Stevanson could never tell one from the other. - -“Mrs Bankton’s husband is the artist,” said the man she knew slightly. - -“Of course,” said Mrs Stevanson wondering who Bankton was. “Certainly, -I know. But you’re not English, my dear?” - -“No, madame, I’m not English.” Mrs Bankton smiled at her and made no -further admissions. Mrs Stevanson looked at her with dislike. She -liked to find out about people quickly. Life was too short to have -them hold back important facts and, ultimately, confidences. People -always confided in Mrs Stevanson, knowing that she was not sufficiently -interested in them to repeat what she heard. - -“I do hope you’ll enjoy yourself,” said Mrs Stevanson more cordially -than she would have done had she liked the person. - -“Thank you,” murmured Mrs Bankton. They bowed slightly to each other -and parted. Mrs Stevanson watched Mrs Bankton as she walked across the -room with her party. She looked very exotic in a short black lace dress -and a red rose in her hair. What slim ankles, thought Mrs Stevanson -disagreeably, thinking of her own heavy legs, practical legs one artist -had told her, voluptuous legs an even better artist had said. - -Mrs Stevanson turned, setting a smile on her lips. She faced the -largest of all the groups: over twenty people talking all at once to -each other. Holding her breasts high she approached them and, as she -was recognized, their voices lowered and smiles appeared all about her -and she was accepted into the center of the group and there devoured. - - * * * * * - -Robert Holton was received by a butler. His coat was taken with -ceremony and he was moved easily out of the black marble foyer into the -drawing room. - -He had never visited Mrs Stevanson in her New York apartment. He was -greatly impressed and he tried to retain a mental image of what he -saw: he was constructing a dream world and such an apartment might be -material for it. - -The drawing room was large, formal and very light. Three chandeliers -hung from the high ceiling. The walls were paneled in white wood with -gold-leaf decorations, like the palace at Versailles. Paintings hung at -regular intervals about the room: portraits mostly, portraits of Mrs -Stevanson. There was one large painting of a countryside which Robert -Holton could tell immediately was done by Rembrandt or someone like him. - -The floor was thickly carpeted and tables and formal chairs furnished -the room. A few people sat; most of them, however, preferred to stand, -to move about gracefully, searching. - -He stood blinking in the light, drugged by the high noise of voices, -hypnotized by the odor of many flowers drenched over the women who -stood talking to men. - -He walked slowly, uncertainly toward the center of the room. He knew no -one in the room. He looked for familiar faces, though; there were none. -Then he saw Mrs Stevanson and he walked toward her. She looked at him -and he could tell she was puzzled. Then she recognized him; she came -toward him and they met beneath a portrait of her holding lilies. - -“You’re little Bob Holton, aren’t you?” A strange description, he -thought. - -“Yes, Mrs Stevanson, you remember we met last year and....” - -“Of course we did. How _is_ your father?” - -“Fine, just fine.” His father hated her. - -“I’m so glad to hear that. I think you look more like your mother, you -know. She was such a lovely woman.” - -He mumbled thank you. - -“Your mother was one of the most charming women I ever knew. She had -such a wonderful way of doing things, so original.” Like marrying my -father, thought Holton. “She was always full of surprises. I used to -enjoy her so much.” - -There was an awkward silence. Robert Holton never found it easy to talk -about his mother and Mrs Stevanson had decided, obviously, that it was -the only thing she could discuss with him. - -“It was very nice of you ...” began Holton. - -“Think nothing of it, my dear. I don’t know if there are many younger -people here. You might look round, though. I suppose you’ll know -everybody. There’s Laura Whitner over there.... You know her of -course.” He looked and saw a dark little woman wearing a skull cap. - -“I’ve seen her act,” he said accurately. - -“Oh, yes.” Mrs Stevanson looked around the room. He could see that she -was preparing to leave him alone. - -He was wrong. “You must,” she said, “meet some friends of mine. They’re -foreigners and they’ve only just arrived. They don’t know anyone....” -She was going to say “either” but did not. - -She led him over to a small group of men and women. Mrs Stevanson -didn’t know their names but she acted as if they were her dearest -friends. - -“This young man is Robert Holton. His mother was a great friend of mine -and you must be nice to him.” She was cute. “He’s just gotten out of -the navy.” She looked up suddenly with a magnificent gesture, looked -as if someone had hailed her from across the room. “Oh, I have to go! -Please excuse me.” She moved away in a swirl of silk, her bright blue -hair bouncing on the back of her thick white neck. - -“How do you do,” said Holton, shaking hands with a dark man. Then he -shook hands with a light man, with a short heavy one, with a thin -blonde girl and finally he shook hands with Mrs Bankton. - -“How do you do,” said Robert Holton. - -“How do _you_ do,” said Mrs Bankton. Her voice startled him. It -was deep and foreign and she had said the “you” as though she had -really meant him. - -“I’m very well,” he said and he looked at her. Her hair was dark. Her -eyes were greenish and bright and shining. He looked at her mouth, -red and curved, elfinly shaped. He stammered, “I know you. I know you -but....” - -“But who am I?” She laughed and gestured with her long white hands. - -“Yes, who are you?” - -“Carla.” - -“No!” - -“Yes.” - -“You’ve changed. I....” - -“And so have you. I think you look younger out of uniform.” - -“But....” - -“You’re surprised to see me? I’m just visiting this country. My -husband,” she paused, “my husband is in England and I think he’ll be -coming to join me soon.” - -“Then you’re married?” - -“But of course! And very well.” She smiled at him, smiled gently and -he felt embarrassed because she acknowledged an old relationship so -easily; that she was so unmoved, so unguilty. - -“I’m very happy to hear that.” He didn’t know what else to say. - -“Thank you. Let’s get out of this crowd.” She looked about her. She -pointed to a corner of the room, an alcove containing a window. “Let’s -go over there.” They walked through the crowd and sat down on the love -seat beneath the window. - -“You’re surprised, aren’t you?” She spoke softly. - -“A little, I guess. I don’t know. I have to get used to the idea. I -always associated you with ... with Florence and....” - -“You felt that was behind you?” - -He was surprised. She must have known him very well, he thought -suddenly; he had forgotten how well she had known him. “No, I didn’t -think that,” he lied. - -“I have very warm memories,” she said lightly. - -He blushed and hated himself but there was nothing he could do or say -that would make it better. “Mine were pleasant, too. I ... I liked -Florence quite a bit.” - -“Yes, I’m sure you did, and you liked Fiesole, and the nights and -summer days. I suppose you liked them all.” - -“I liked them all.” - -“And that was what you liked, all that you can remember?” - -“No, I _remember_ more. I ... I didn’t know if you’d want to talk -about that; being married and....” - -She was surprised. “But I knew you first, after all. That counts for -something and then I remembered, too. It hasn’t been so long.” - -“Several years.” - -“It doesn’t seem that long to me. You remember those nights at our -place in Fiesole? We used to go out and sit on the ledge and look at -the lights of the city.” They both looked out the window then, looked -at the glacier-bright squares of light. - -“It was very pretty.” - -“You Anglo-Saxon!” She laughed at him, not maliciously but gaily. “You -say it’s pretty. You say it’s nice. It was beautiful and you know it. -That was a beautiful time.” - -He felt her warmth suddenly, began to remember her warmth, began to -remember much that he had forgotten. “Yes,” said he, warmed by her, -“those nights _were_ beautiful.” - -“Good, I wanted to hear you say that. I wanted you to say,” her voice -became so low that he could barely hear her, “I wanted you to say much -more but I think you’ve forgotten.” She looked out at the towers of the -city, at the glittering webs of light. She was embarrassed now and he -was not. No, she was not embarrassed; he realized that with a sudden -vision; she was sad and he didn’t want her to be sad. - -“You know ... I can say more. I didn’t think you wanted to hear it. -That was so long ago. You’re married and....” - -She turned around and faced him, her face alive and gay; her moods -changed so quickly, he remembered: he had always been baffled by her -changes. “You got interested in someone else. I know what you soldiers -are like. Italians are just the same in Italy.” - -“No, there isn’t anyone else.” This was the wrong thing to say and he -tried to withdraw the words from the air but they were lost to him now. - -“No one else? No one...?” - -“Well....” - -“How strange.” She looked at a painting of Mrs Stevanson and at that -moment she looked as if this painting were the most important thing to -her. Finally she said, “I think I’d like to drink some whiskey. Shall -we go to the bar?” - -“Certainly, Carla.” He was glad that he had said her name naturally. - - * * * * * - -Carla felt uncertain. The cold glass that a footman had given her -was chilling her hand. She wondered if she should put it down on the -dining-room table. They were standing near it and Robert Holton was -looking hungrily at the food; she could see that in a moment he would -have enough courage to eat. - -“What a dreadful room,” said Carla. - -“What?” He looked at her as though she had not been there. “Oh, yes, -it’s sort of forbidding.” He glanced at the dark wood-paneled walls and -the ornate chandelier. - -“I don’t know why these people must have everything so heavy inside,” -said Carla. “The buildings in New York are so tall and light.” - -“Some places are more modern.” - -“I suppose they are.” The glass of whiskey in her hand was becoming -much too cold to hold. She put it down on the table. - -“You don’t like it?” - -“I think I’ve had enough for now. You remember how little I used to -drink.” - -“Yes, you never needed it.” He looked at her directly and smiled. She -was happy then because it was the first time he had looked at her eyes. -He was losing his fear of her, this strange and, to her, inexplicable -fear. - -“Let’s find some place to sit down,” she said. - -“I thought you wanted to walk around.” - -She laughed. “All right, we’ll do both.” They walked around. - -More people had arrived. Several hundred, thought Carla with distaste. -She liked smaller parties. She had only come tonight because friends of -her husband had insisted. They were keeping close watch over her for -they knew how jealous Bankton was. It was very amusing, she thought -as she and Holton walked from group to group. Her husband’s friends -watching her now would never suspect what had happened in Florence. - -They came to an especially large group, a dozen men surrounding Laura -Whitner. - -“Do you want to meet her?” asked Carla, looking at Holton, knowing that -he did. - -“You don’t know her?” - -“But of course. I know everyone.” - -They cut their way through the bewitched men, cut through to the -enchantress herself. - -Laura Whitner was dark and slight with full breasts. Her face was as -delicate as a carving in ivory; sallow, too, as old ivory. The lips -were brilliant red and she twisted her mouth in childlike expressions -and her sad dark eyes glittered from habit and not from fire. She -looked unwell, thought Carla. - -“Carla Bruno!” exclaimed Laura when she saw them. The two women -embraced with warmth and the enchantment was broken for the admirers -and they began to withdraw from the circle of her spell, smiling as -they departed, leaving her alone in her theater with only two admirers. - -“But my tiny Carla, what are you doing in New York? I haven’t seen you -for years, not since Paris.” - -“I’m here visiting.” - -“But I’m so happy to see you! You know, you’re the last person I’d -expect to run into here.” - -“I had to get away from Europe. I hadn’t been to America since I was a -child.” - -Laura Whitner looked at her hands. “You’re not married, are you?” Carla -wore no wedding ring. - -Carla smiled and nodded. - -Laura looked astonished, her scarlet mouth, like a wicked child’s, -twisted with all the emotions she felt and several that she did not. -“To whom? To the little one here?” She motioned to Robert Holton who -had been standing silently watching her. - -Carla laughed. “No, Laura, to Bankton in England.” - -“The painter?” - -“The painter. We’ve been married two years.” - -“Are you happy?” There was a dark note in her voice as she said this -and Carla could tell that it was something she wanted to know. - -“I am not unhappy,” said Carla, knowing that this was no answer but she -hoped that Holton would grasp her meaning. - -“I’m sorry,” said Laura Whitner almost undramatically. “I married -again, you know.” - -“I heard you did. Is he here tonight? I used to know him.” - -“He couldn’t come, he’s working on a show. Are you going to have -children?” - -“I don’t think so.” - -“I want one.” She sighed and touched the skullcap on her head with a -hand that was pale and like the claw of a bird, a hand that shook. “If -I’m not too old I’m going to make a child. I think that’s what I need.” - -“You must be very happy with him.” - -She nodded and said with great sincerity, “Yes, I’m very happy now. -After a long time I am.” And Carla looked into her sad dark eyes and -saw that they had not changed expression. - -“Who is this?” asked Laura Whitner, turning to Holton, making love to -him automatically with her face. - -“This,” said Carla, “is Robert Holton, an old friend of mine. We knew -each other in Florence during the war.” - -“Indeed!” She lifted her thin brows and made her mouth very round. -Holton blushed and Carla wanted to protect him. - -“I’m very pleased to meet you,” said Holton awkwardly. “I’ve liked you -in the movies.” Carla remembered then his honesty: the thing that had -attracted her to him. He had always been honest; she wondered if that -was so now. - -“Have you really, child? Thank you.” She made a gesture that was -intended for an entire audience but it was still very graceful. - -“You must,” said Carla, “call me up and we’ll get together. I’m staying -at the Mason.” - -“I shall, of course. Tell me....” At this moment Mrs Raymond Stevanson -appeared to capture Laura. - -“Laura, darling, I’ve got the most marvelous Estonian who wants to meet -you. I think he said he was an Estonian. I know you’ll love him. You’ll -excuse me, I know.” She said this last to Carla and Holton. - -“We’ll have lunch,” said Laura, calling back over her shoulder as she -was borne away by the conquering Mrs Stevanson. - -“What did you think of her, Bob?” asked Carla. - -“She’s not as pretty as I thought she’d be.” - -“They never are; you must learn that.” - -He looked at her and she tried to tell what he was thinking but for -once her intuition was not enough: she had first to examine the years -that had gone by. She had to find some trace of familiar emotion in -him. She had to rediscover the stranger. She had to make him remember -what she remembered. In Florence he had loved her, she was sure of -that. Now it was up to her to reconstruct a passion that had never been -wholly lost. She had cared more for him than he had known then; would -ever know, she hoped. There had been so many nights after he had left -when she had longed to be with him, nights when she could feel again -the warm summer about them as they lay together in the wide bed in her -room. She was determined now to find the lover in the stranger that -stood beside her, who stood looking seriously but remotely into her -face. - -“Shall we sit down now, Bob?” - - * * * * * - -People were beginning to leave. It was eight-thirty and Mrs Stevanson -was glad to see them go. The first two hours were interesting and then -she found herself bored. - -On the other hand George _Robert_ Lewis was not bored. He was -slightly drunk and enjoying himself very much. He was usually overcome -by a monstrous _ennui_ during the day which, as evening came, grew -less and less. In a few more hours he would have discovered a reason -for living and this would keep him happy until he woke up the next -morning with a hang-over. - -He was glad when he heard that the famous Bankton’s wife was at the -party. She had been pointed out to him but he hadn’t met her yet. -He stopped a waiter and took a cocktail from him. And, equipped for -conversation with a woman, he marched across the drawing room to where -Carla stood talking with a young man, a rather nice young man, thought -Lewis. - -“Mrs Bankton?” - -She turned and looked at him and he rather liked her brown-green eyes. - -“Yes?” She looked at him as though she wanted him to go away. Lewis was -sensitive to such things but not particularly nonplussed; in fact he -was accustomed to being asked to go away. - -“I’m George _Robert_ Lewis ... you know _Regarde_, the -_avant garde_ magazine, only it’s so trite now to call anything -_avant garde_. You must have seen it. We did the most splendid -article on Bankton last year. I’ve just loved his work because I can -feel what he’s trying to do: post-surrealism and all that sort of -thing. I’m all for it; in fact, we’re all for people like Bankton who -do things. I just felt I couldn’t help but come over and say hello.” - -She smiled at him very nicely. “I’ve heard of you, Mr Lewis. My husband -thinks very highly of what your magazine is doing.” - -“He does? Oh, but isn’t that simply marvelous! I always felt I would be -most sympathetic with the great Bankton. Tell me, darling, when do you -expect him in this country?” - -She took the “darling” quite well, he thought. - -“I’m not sure. I think in a month or so. He’s so busy in London.” “By -the way”, she said, “I want you to meet an old friend of mine, Robert -Holton.” - -“Very pleased to meet you, Mr Lewis,” said the young man as they shook -hands. - -“_Enchanté_,” said Lewis, bowing from the waist and allowing his -hand to stay too long in Holton’s. Such a nice young man, thought -Lewis, and wondered if.... - -“What,” said Carla, “is _Regarde_ espousing now?” She spoke -quickly and Lewis could see that she understood him and this pleased -him although, in a sense, they were rivals. - -“As always: the advanced, the revolutionary....” - -“And the honest?” - -“But of course, darling, we are never consciously dishonest, though it -_is_ hard sometimes not being.” - -“Perhaps in life but not in art.” She spoke severely. She was a Latin; -he could tell now from her accent. - -“You’re not English?” He changed the subject. - -“No, I’m a Florentine.” - -“But how charming! I have always loved Florence. I spent several -summers there when I was a boy. Let me see ... I was there last in -19.... It’s not important. How I loved those doors, though!” - -He saw that the young man named Robert Holton was beginning to look -bored and Lewis hated above all else to be thought a bore even by a -bore. - -“And _you_ have been to Florence?” - -Holton nodded. - -Carla said, “That was where we met the first time. He’s an old friend -of our family’s.” - -“How droll that must’ve been for you, finding this charming boy here -at Helena Stevanson’s who, though I love her dearly, gives the dullest -parties in New York.” - -“They _are_ dull. I wonder why people come. Why do you come?” - -“I’m a creature in constant need of companionship. I go to everything. -I _must_ see a lot of people or I become most dreadfully morbid -and then I write poems.” - -She smiled. “I remember you used to write some good poems.” - -He laughed, pleased. “You remember then? That was so long ago. I -somehow have gotten all out of the habit.” - -“Perhaps you see too many people.” - -“That may be right and, speaking of people, you lovely ones must have -dinner with me this evening, otherwise I must eat alone; I’ve been -deserted today by everyone.” - -“I’m afraid,” said Carla, “that we can’t....” - -“That’s not a bad idea,” said Holton much to Lewis’s surprise--to -Carla’s surprise, too. Lewis looked at her and saw she was surprised. -He was amused, wickedly amused. There was something between them. - -“You must really join me. I know of the most interesting place in the -Village. I know you’ll love it.” - -“Don’t you want to go?” asked Holton, looking at Carla. - -“Why....” She didn’t know what to say. - -“Certainly you’ll come; three is good company.” - -Carla gestured uncertainly with her hands. - -“Perhaps I’d better come back in a moment,” said Lewis, smiling -maliciously at Carla. “I so hope I’m not upsetting plans.” He made -bowing movements and retreated into the center of the party. - -As he withdrew he could see the long look Carla gave the young man. - - * * * * * - -The men from Wall Street bored Mr Heywood. He tried to act like them -but from time to time he could not help implying gently to them that he -was a broker through heredity, not inclination. It was so much easier -doing what his father had done than to do something else or nothing at -all. He had a puritanical horror of doing nothing. His family had made -him believe that it was necessary always to work and he rather liked -the work, too. It made him think less about his own uniquely miserable -life. - -His wives were a large part of the general dreariness of his life. He -never seemed to marry the right women. They either wanted his money -or wanted to dominate him. He was used to domination by now but it -made him uneasy sometimes to feel that his own will was so easily bent -by others. He was always making stands, erecting firm barriers, but -somehow the barriers usually collapsed. He wondered sometimes if he -shouldn’t collect stamps or have a hobby like that. - -Thinking of this, he began now to divorce himself from the group of -Wall Street people. He promised to have lunch with one, to call up -another; he bowed to a third, shook hands with a fourth and then he -floated softly away, a look of quiet happiness on his face: he was now -alone in the midst of a party. - -Mr Heywood looked about him to see if there was anyone he might like -to talk to. He would prefer some young woman who looked lonely. His -three wives had all looked lonely at one period of the courtship and -he had married them as much for this corresponding loneliness as for -anything else. He had been mistaken three times but he was, in general, -an optimist. - -There seemed to be no lonely-looking young women. He sighed and was -about to leave the party when he saw Robert Holton. He remembered him -clearly; he was proud of his memory. Now he would have to speak to him. -It would be difficult, but then he had always been taught that if a -thing was particularly unpleasant it should be done: character was made -in this fashion and character was more important than anything else. He -proceeded to mould his character. He walked toward Robert Holton. - -Mr Heywood approached Holton from behind and he could overhear his -conversation with a dark pretty woman. - -Holton was saying, “I think it might be interesting. After all, Carla, -I don’t get out much and if a person like Lewis wants us to go I think -we should.” - -“If you want to, Bob.” She was a foreigner, thought Mr Heywood with -interest. “I’d hoped we might have had dinner together and try to ... -to talk of.... I’m not saying this well, I’m sorry.” - -“No, Carla....” Mr Heywood drifted between them now. - -“Mr Holton?” he asked. - -“Oh, Mr Heywood! How do you do, sir?” Robert Holton was impressed as -always with Mr Heywood’s greatness and this both saddened and pleased -Mr Heywood. - -“I had thought ...” began Mr Heywood in a barely audible voice. - -“This,” said Holton quickly on top of Mr Heywood’s words, “is Mrs -Bankton, an old friend of mine. Mr Heywood.” - -The meeting was made and Mr Heywood was rather attracted to this pretty -girl who spoke English so beautifully and yet with an accent. - -“I thought I should find you here, Mr Holton. Mrs Stevanson was telling -me about you.” - -“That was nice of her.” - -“She is a charming woman,” said Mr Heywood, praising an absent person -about whom they all cared very little; it filled the first awkwardness -of a meeting such as this. “You enjoy being downtown?” He was careful -not to associate himself with Holton’s job. - -“Oh, very much,” said Holton. - -“By the way,” asked the dark pretty woman, “what are you doing now? You -haven’t told me.” - -Holton flushed and Mr Heywood was sorry for him. “I’m working in a -brokerage office.” - -She laughed. “But how dreadful that must be.” - -Holton looked miserable and Mr Heywood, who rather agreed with her, -laughed. “It’s not too terrible, Mrs Bankton. Some of us manage to -survive it. I think a sense of humor is the most important thing.” - -“I’m sorry,” she said. “I had no idea you were also in the same -situation.” - -How delightful she was, thought Mr Heywood. “We must all,” said Mr -Heywood in a voice that was like the sigh of a dying man, “do our -appointed tasks. Duty is of such great importance: it is the only -tangible thing in the chaos of living.” - -“But I don’t think that’s so at all,” said Carla as gently as he but -with less resignation. “One should always try to do what one wants to -do.” - -“In spite of one’s duty to others?” - -“People that you love?” - -“No, that I ... that one admires and respects.” - -“And this makes you happy?” - -“Are any of us happy?” asked Heywood in a voice of weary sadness; he -stopped, suddenly remembering that young Holton was there. It would -never do for him to hear these things. - -“I talked,” he said casually, “with Murphy about you today. He seemed -most enthusiastic.” - -“That’s nice. I like working with him.” - -“Perhaps,” said Mr Heywood, looking at a spot somewhere over Holton’s -head, “perhaps you would be interested in working in the jobs that, ah, -come in contact with the public.” He could not say selling: he tried -but he could not. He wondered if maybe a long trip to South America -would give him a new perspective. - -“I think that would be wonderful!” Holton was moved as he should be. -An affable young man, thought Mr Heywood who, as a rule, did not like -men at all, especially young men who seemed to be able to get all the -lonely young women they wanted. - -“Perhaps,” murmured Mr Heywood, “something can be arranged in the near -future.” He looked at the dark woman beside Holton and he thought her -an unusually real person to find in such a place as this. She was -probably not real, though: only an illusion with long white hands and -silvery nails. He was used to women vanishing. - -George _Robert_ Lewis appeared and Mr Heywood experienced a slight -spasm of nausea. He found Lewis hard to be with. Mr Heywood would not -have said that being a broker was a productive life but if, to be an -artist, it was necessary to be like Lewis he had no desire to be an -artist. - -“How do you do?” said Lewis, bowing very low and smirking at him. - -“And how are you?” inquired Mr Heywood politely, beginning to retreat -slowly. - -“Doing marvelously. These charming people here are dining with me, -aren’t you?” - -Carla looked uncertain and Holton nodded. Mr Heywood wondered where -Holton had run across Lewis. - -“I’m really,” said Lewis in a conspiratorial voice (an old woman’s -voice, thought Mr Heywood, frowning slightly), “just doing a job. Her -husband is one of our idols and I may get a perfectly marvelous essay -out of her. I knew his work so well.” Mr Heywood wondered vaguely why -Lewis was explaining so many things. - -“I see,” said Mr Heywood. He turned to Carla. “Delighted to have met -you.” He nodded to Holton. “I shall probably see you tomorrow.” - -“Yes, sir; good night, sir.” Mr Heywood glided away toward the door. - -Mrs Stevanson appeared beside him just as he had made up his mind to -leave. - -“Do cheer up, Heywood. You look so petulant!” - -“I’m not really, Helena, not really.” - -“I’m not so sure. Who’re you looking at?” He glanced away quickly but -she saw that he had been watching Carla. “Lovely, isn’t she? I’m afraid -she’s stuck with that Holton boy and, my Lord, George _Robert’s_ -got her, too. The poor child and ...” Mrs Stevanson was surprised. “I -do think they’re leaving!” - -“After all,” said Heywood soothingly, “it _is_ a cocktail party. -They probably weren’t able to find you.” - -“I suppose you’re right, Heywood. Manners change so. She looked rather -unhappy, I thought.” - -“Who?” - -“Mrs. Bankton.” - -“Really. I didn’t notice.” - -“I don’t suppose you did; men don’t notice very many things anyway,” -said Mrs Stevanson, suddenly exhibiting her bitterness. She controlled -herself quickly. “Except men like you, Heywood dear.” - -“Thank you, Helena.” He bowed without movement; he suggested a bow -without actually executing it. “Now I must really be going.” - -“So soon, Heywood, so soon?” - - - - - _Chapter Ten_ - - -Carla was angry with Robert Holton, angrier still with George -_Robert_ Lewis. She had hoped to have dinner alone with Holton. -She wanted time to recover a past emotion and now she would have very -little time. As they drove through the lighted streets she looked with -dislike at Lewis’s smooth boyish face. - -None of them spoke after they got into the cab outside Mrs Stevanson’s -place. Lewis had given the driver an address and they had relaxed, each -thinking of different things: Holton pleased to be seeing life; Lewis -pleased to have secured the wife of a great figure; Carla displeased -with the arrangement, Carla plotting murder. - -Robert Holton sat in the middle. Carla had decided that if she had to -spend an evening with Lewis she at least wouldn’t sit next to him. - -She looked at Holton as they drove down Seventh Avenue. He was looking -straight ahead. His well-formed, not very strong mouth was set in a -straight line; he was trying to be firm now; he was trying to convince -her that he was right in accepting Lewis’s invitation for them. - -She sighed loudly so that she would be heard and understood. Then -she looked out the window and examined the neon signs that broke the -darkness with many colors. She liked the lights. - -The taxicab stopped on a side street where a dozen or more signs -advertised night clubs. They got out and Lewis paid the driver. - -“Where is it?” asked Holton, looking about him. - -Lewis pointed to some steps. “Right down there. I suppose it’s open; -you know, there was some talk that the police might close it but I -don’t think they will. Shall we go in?” - -Carla could see that Holton was wondering what he meant when he said -that the police might close it. She understood herself and she was -rather pleased now: it would be a lesson for him, an experience that he -needed. - -Lewis led them down the steps and into the night club. - -There were two large rooms: one light and garish, with a long bar, many -mirrors and booths; the other was darker, with tables and, at one end, -a small band on a small stage. They went into the darker room. The -headwaiter recognized Lewis and was very polite to him; he showed them -to a table near the stage. - -“Isn’t this charming?” asked Lewis. “I think it has a wonderful -atmosphere.” He grinned at Carla. She nodded. - -“It’s not too garish,” she said. “So many American places are too -light.” - -“Do they have a floor show?” asked Holton. - -“A very unusual one,” said Lewis, giggling. “I’m sure you’ll think -it great fun. Hermes de Bianca is the star of the show and his dance -is perfectly magnificent. He is one of the great artists, great -interpretive artists, I mean.” - -“Is that right?” - -A waiter came to take their order. He was a curious-looking waiter, a -type which Carla recognized but Holton did not. He wore no uniform. She -looked around the room and found that none of the others wore uniforms. -They were dressed casually. This waiter’s hair was long, unpleasantly -long and the front of it had been carefully bleached. He was thin and -moved stiffly, self-consciously, like a woman thinking of rape. On one -of his fingers he wore a large ring with a bizarre stone in it. - -“What do you people want?” His voice was irritable and high. He was -looking interestedly at Holton who was looking just as interestedly at -him. - -“I’d love something to drink,” said Lewis. “How about the rest of you?” - -The waiter looked at Lewis for the first time. His face brightened. -“George, it’s you! How lovely to see you! You haven’t been here in such -a long time.” - -“I’ve been dreadfully busy,” said Lewis coldly, disengaging himself -from the waiter’s assumed relationship. - -“I think,” said Holton, “that I’d like a highball.” They all decided -to have the same thing and the waiter, with a slight toss of his head, -walked away. - -The small band was playing loudly and eagerly. One sentimental modern -song after another was catapulted into the room. Fortunately, after -several minutes the band stopped playing and the musicians departed. - -“I’m glad they’re gone,” said Carla. “They make too much music.” - -“They aren’t very delicate.” Lewis turned suddenly to Holton. “And you, -what do you do?” - -Holton flushed. “Well, I work in a brokerage house.” - -Lewis’s eyebrows went up and he elaborately showed surprise and -disbelief. “But how remarkable! You’re not an artist! Surely you must -do something wonderful. You have the hands of an artist. You’re just -working there because you have to. That’s it, isn’t it?” - -“No, that’s not it.” Carla admired his courage. “I don’t mind working -there and it’s probably going to be my career.” His jaw got very firm. -She liked him this way. - -“How marvelous!” exclaimed Lewis. “A contented Babbitt.” He stopped. -“What a dreadful thing to say: that’s such a Nineteen-Twenty phrase. -Really, I sometimes wonder if art is the answer to our problems.” - -“I think it might be to the artist,” said Carla softly. - -Lewis bowed. “_Touché_, my dear. Let’s say the dedication to art, -the freedom from conventions. Perhaps this young man’s view is the -saner: to accept the pattern.” He was mocking now but he did not show -it in his face. - -“Some things you have to accept,” said Holton, aware of Lewis’s -mockery. “Sometimes there is nothing else.” - -“There is always something else,” said Lewis decidedly. - -“I think that’s right,” said Carla. - -“What?” asked Holton. “What else can you do but that?” - -“Run away,” said Lewis. - -“Fall in love,” said Carla. - -But neither solution was convincing to Holton and Carla could think of -no way to explain herself. There seemed, at the moment, no words to -record her meaning, no bridge to reach him. They were all three quiet, -thinking of questions and answers. - -Finally their silence killed the problem and they began to notice the -room they were in and the other people. The people at the different -tables were not, generally, mixed. Several women would sit at one -table and several men would sit at another. Around the room were small -tables for two and here men sat with men and women with women. This was -puzzling to Holton, she could see. He said nothing, though, and she -had a great sudden ache of tenderness for him, a desire to protect his -innocence. But this she could not do. She was a stranger to him and he -had forgotten. - -Cigarette smoke veiled the room bluely and everything seemed tenuous -and unreal. The sound of voices and ice clattering, of forks striking -plates and of many people moving and breathing together made an -ocean-like roar in Carla’s ears. The room was hot and the smell of -perfume was strong. - -The band returned and began to play. They played much more softly than -they had before and she was grateful. Conversation was not difficult -when the music was soft. In fact, the music seemed to underline many -things, made emotional statements dramatic. Unfortunately, with George -_Robert_ Lewis sitting at the table there was no opportunity -to make emotional statements. He would have to leave. She began to -concentrate on this as they talked now of trivial things. Finally he -received her subconscious message. He stood up. - -“I hope you’ll excuse me a moment but I have to go backstage. I’ll only -be gone a minute.” He left quickly, going around the stage and behind -the crimson curtain. - -“He’s a funny little queer, isn’t he?” commented Holton. - -“He’s one of the great aesthetes. You’re glad you came tonight?” - -“It’s interesting,” he said. He was defending himself now. - -“This is a very ...” she paused, trying to think of the right word, -“trivial world. I don’t think you’ll like it.” - -“Perhaps I will. I used to be something of a sculptor.” He said this -laughing, and she could see that he was quite serious. - -“Then why don’t you do it?” - -“I wasn’t good enough. I haven’t done any since I was in college.” - -“Would you like to do it?” - -“I don’t think so.” She couldn’t tell whether he meant this or not. - -The waiter came and put their glasses down on the table with a look of -boredom; in fact, he yawned slightly as he did it. He tried to catch -Holton’s eye but failed. Sulkily he walked away. - -“I don’t want this,” said Carla, pointing to the glass. - -“I’ll take it,” said Holton and he began to drink his own, his teeth -making clicking sounds as the ice bobbed against them. - -“You like what you’re doing now?” asked Carla. - -He put the glass down and frowned. “I suppose I do. I have to do it and -so I figure I might as well like it.” - -“Perhaps you might find something you like better.” - -“What?” - -“You might be a sculptor again.” - -He laughed. “I’m really no good. I can’t do anything else but this. I -don’t see anything wrong with what I’m doing, anyway.” - -“There’s nothing wrong with it if you’re happy; are you?” He didn’t -answer for a moment. Then he said, “I suppose I am.” - -“But you’re not in love?” - -“What has that to do with it?” - -“So many things,” said Carla, and she did not look at him; she avoided -his eyes. He did not understand. She could see that now. The desire, -however, to make him destroy his barriers, to come alive, was becoming -an obsession with her. And then, of course, he had been the first man -she had known and that made him important to her. She had never lost -her feeling for him and she was sad to see him confused; Carla thought -of herself as Joan of Arc: helping the king to his throne. She was not -yet sure, however, that the king wished to reign. - -The music was becoming soft and sentimental. Full round chords gushed -around them and people danced on the stage. Men danced with women and -women with men for there was not really much courage among these people. - -“Would you like to dance?” asked Holton. - -“Not right now.” - -He was not disappointed. She watched him as he watched the other people -in the room. This was something new for him. She guessed that he was -shocked by the people he saw at the different tables. He showed nothing -in his face, though. Perhaps he did not recognize them, did not know -them the way she did: she who had married one of them. - -“It’s been quite a while, hasn’t it?” said Holton finally. - -“Yes, but I haven’t forgotten any of it, have you?” - -“Of course not. Naturally I didn’t know whether you wanted to talk -about it. I figured that ... well, after you married Bankton you -wouldn’t want to think about what we did.” - -“I don’t,” said Carla, “love Bankton.” - -He was shocked and she knew that she had said the right thing if in the -wrong manner. - -“But you got married,” said Holton. - -She nodded. “I’m afraid I didn’t know very much about him then. I went -to London after the war was over and I stayed with some artists there. -I met him and he made love to me. I thought he was very wonderful. I -had heard stories about him: that he was ... was like these people -here.” She gestured to include the room. “I didn’t believe the stories. -I married him. I found he wanted me for camouflage.” - -“Why don’t you divorce him then?” - -“Perhaps I shall someday. It seems so much trouble, though. He’s really -a very nice person.” - -Holton shook his head, confused. “I don’t see ... I don’t see why he -married you in the first place if he was....” - -“He could still like me, Bob.” - -“I don’t see how.” - -She smiled. “It _is_ hard to explain but anyway you know now that -I don’t feel too deeply about him. You understand this?” - -“I suppose so,” said Robert Holton. He _is_ beginning to -understand, thought Carla, happy now: her words had begun to build the -bridge between them. Soon they would meet again. - -“You’ve certainly had a funny life,” said Holton, smiling. - -“Sometimes I think so but then the most important thing is making -a freedom for oneself. When that’s done nothing is strange because -everything is natural. You know what I mean?” - -He nodded. “Sometimes I know.” - -She picked up a fork and drew pictures on the white tablecloth. “I want -you to be free,” she said. - -“Free from what?” - -“You know. From your routine and morals: the things you don’t want.” - -He laughed. “You know pretty well what my set of morals is and I don’t -mind the routine so much.” - -“I think you do.” - -“Why?” - -“Why did you want to come here with Lewis tonight? Why are you with me -now?” - -He smiled. “Perhaps you’re partly right. I was curious and I do get -bored and....” - -“And you’re alone.” She spoke for him. - -He finished his drink and did not answer her; there was no need to -answer her. - -“Are you glad,” she asked at last, “are you glad to see me again?” - -He said that he was. He declared that he was. He made an issue of -it. He was still not at ease with her and she felt desperate. It was -like a battle between them; first one side retreating and the other -advancing.... Or perhaps a hunt. She was the hunter and her memories -the pursued. She knew that beneath his many assumed faces there was the -person she had known in Florence. Deliberately Carla began to smash the -faces. - - * * * * * - -George _Robert_ Lewis had a very pleasant interview with de -Bianca, the star; after a half-hour, though, he was beginning to get -restless. Dancers seldom talked about anything interesting. Finally he -excused himself, saying that his guests were waiting for him. - -They were talking quietly and intimately when he got back to the table. -He took a secret pleasure in interrupting them. Lewis had already -decided that they were lovers. - -“I’m so dreadfully sorry that I went off and left you the way I did. It -was stupid of me but I got so involved with Hermes and his amours: he -tells me all about them and though they’re really quite dull I have to -be polite and listen. Have you ordered yet?” - -They said that they had not. Lewis immediately became noisily -efficient. He ordered the languid waiter about, gave him careful -instructions and ignored his glances and meaningful gestures. Lewis -never had liked this type at all. The ones like this waiter never -seemed to have any respect for him. They couldn’t understand the -principles for which he stood. They were not artists. - -The dinner finally ordered, he turned toward his guests, a -white-toothed smile on his slightly rouged lips (Hermes had lent him -rouge). - -“Are you adoring the atmosphere, my dear Mrs Bankton? It’s nothing to -compare with Paris, of course, but you must admit that it’s a lot gayer -than Rome. I love Rome and usually have a marvelous time there but -somehow one never seems to find the same easy atmosphere that we have -here.” - -“No, it is not like Rome,” agreed Carla. What wonderful golden skin she -has, thought Lewis, enjoying her aesthetically. He didn’t dislike women -the way many of his friends did. He felt, in fact, most compatible with -them. - -“Are there many places like this in New York?” asked Holton. Lewis was -pleased that he had caught on. Lewis, always optimistic, wondered if it -might not be possible to make some sort of an arrangement.... It was -not impossible, certainly. - -“Oh, quite a few, quite a few. They _are_ rather charming from -time to time. I enjoy visiting them and I do feel that the atmosphere -is not uncongenial.” He wondered if perhaps he hadn’t been using the -word “atmosphere” too much. - -“I’ve heard about these places,” said Holton without much expression. - -“Surely you don’t disapprove?” Lewis was intent on discovering this -now. He could see that Carla was uneasy. Holton was unsatisfactory, -though. - -“I don’t care much one way or the other,” he said and he turned to -Carla and began to talk to her again. Lewis, disappointed, listened to -them as they talked of Fiesole. - -Lewis was not quite sure what their relationship was. As they talked he -gathered that she was more interested than he in continuing it. That -was usually the case, however. Young men like Holton were apt to be a -little unfeeling, a little stuffy. George _Robert_ Lewis thought -pleasantly of young men. - -When he felt that they had talked too long without him, he interrupted. -“When were you last in Fiesole?” He looked at Carla, intending the -question for her; it was difficult not having a name to call her. - -She looked at him as though she had forgotten him completely. “In -Fiesole? I was there just a year ago.” - -“I suppose it’s pretty well recovered from the war. I told you how I -used to love visiting there before the war. I hope it will always be -pleasant.” - -“I think it will,” said Carla. - -“Europe must’ve been very nice before the war,” said Holton. - -George _Robert_ Lewis made an elaborate motion to show just what -it had been before the war; as he was finishing his movement the waiter -brought them their dinner: a number of dishes with filet of sole at the -center. - -“I hope you enjoy it,” said the waiter spitefully, putting the dishes -down loudly and angrily. He walked away, his duty done. - -Lewis sighed. “These dreadful waiters, they presume so. I suppose that -it’s all a part of the American dream. Shall we begin?” Like a priest -of a pagan cult he began to perform the ritual of arranging plates, of -removing covers, of neatly moving food from plate to plate, and finally -of eating. The others imitated him. - -“When,” asked Robert Holton, after the main part of the dinner had been -eaten, “will the show start?” - -Lewis put down his fork carefully, swallowed, and said, “Very soon, -I think. What time is it?” There was an examination of watches: -ten-fifteen. “The show starts at ten-thirty. I hope you’re not -impatient. The audience is very often as interesting as the show. But I -must say that de Bianca’s dance is in another world and that we mustn’t -miss it. I’ll be very curious to know how you react.” - -“There used to be a place in Paris like this where they had a wonderful -dancer of the same type. I suppose he’s the type of dancer I think he -is?” said Carla. - -“He is quite probably the sort of dancer you think he is,” said Lewis, -smiling, excluding Holton from his words. “The only difference is -that he is a great artist, interpretive artist, I mean. I know you’ll -appreciate him.” - -A group of people who knew Lewis came over to their table. They acted -most respectfully and he hoped that Carla and Holton were noticing what -an important person he was. He spoke nicely to them, shook hands with -them, and let them know that he was busy. They left him then, smiling. -Smiling himself, he turned to Carla and Holton and he was disappointed -to find them talking together again. Holton had taken Carla’s hand in -his and Lewis felt a strange anguish, felt an inward betrayal. He did -not know what had been betrayed, however. - -“I’m sorry, my dear, that I didn’t introduce you to those people. It -was rude of me because they _all_ admire your husband’s work.” - -“That’s perfectly all right,” said Carla. “I know so little about his -work. I’m only a layman, you know.” - -“I can hardly believe that. You must’ve been an artist yourself at one -time.” - -She shook her head. “No, I was never an artist at anything. Except at -living, perhaps.” Trumpets sounded loudly from the band, giving her -statement an absurd grandeur. She sensed this and laughed. “I wish to -say that I try to make my life a complete thing.” - -“But what a marvelous thing to want to do! All of us try that but when -we fail at it (and alas we most of us fail) then we must find ourselves -a medium to guard our egos, to protect our fears.” - -“That’s for the talented, Mr Lewis, but for the rest of us, the -majority, only our lives count. We must make them natural.” - -“And that,” said Robert Holton suddenly, “is for the rich to do. The -rest of us can’t even do that.” - -“How delightful!” exclaimed Lewis. “We have here the three -representatives of humanity: the rich and ... free? the poor and -trapped, and the artist who is finding both freedom and an opiate. But -how wonderfully symbolic! We’re practically an allegory. I suppose we -can reach some understanding.” - -“How?” asked Holton and Lewis could see that he was asking Carla, not -him. “How can you get what you want without money? I don’t see how you -can ever do what you want if you aren’t free.” - -“I think,” said Carla, “that you can become free. You can get free in -art and you can get free in love. Money hasn’t much to do with it. You -can’t go anywhere alone. I don’t think it’s possible to be sane alone, -without love.” - -“I think you’re right,” said Lewis sincerely and sadly, allowing -the now soft music to dissolve his mind into an emotional waste out -of which, of course, came art. “I think you have explained all the -tragedies in the world.” - -“And all the happiness,” murmured Carla, looking at Holton. Holton -smiled then. It was the first time that Lewis had seen him smile and he -was struck by the gentleness and beauty of his face. He was beginning -to see the person under the rather rigid mask and he understood now -why this quite wonderful woman was in love. Holton was about to say -something when the band made a crescendo and the lights on the stage -went up. The show was about to begin. - - * * * * * - -A slender little man, ineptly painted, appeared on the stage and -welcomed the audience to the night club. - -He then motioned and the lights in the room went out leaving only the -stage with its curtain backdrop lighted. The band began to play a -current song and the master of ceremonies proceeded to sing, using new -dirty lyrics which made the audience laugh. He then told a joke about -fairies. The audience laughed loudly at this, reveling in exposure; -often their masks became too tight, too heavy. He removed them. - -Finished with his joke, he bowed and several persons came onto the -stage. They were probably men. They wore dresses and several of them -had faces of great beauty. They danced, parodying women, transcending -the single sex. And in the audience people looked at one another and -nodded and looked again at the stage, smiles on their faces. - -When their dance was finished they left. There was much noise from the -audience. - -Then a thin young man swayed onto the stage, took the microphone in his -hands and sang a sexual funny song. - -“Who is that?” asked Carla, turning to Lewis. - -“Our waiter, darling,” whispered Lewis; “all the performers are -waiters, too. Isn’t it exciting?” - -Carla said nothing. Lewis looked at Holton. There was little light in -the room and he couldn’t make out his expression. Holton was sitting -motionless, one hand on the table, one hand touching Carla’s. - -Their waiter was so well received that he sang another song. - -More dancers appeared. This time they were real women and the men who -came out with them were dressed as men. They did a serious near-ballet -but, because they didn’t know how to dance very well and because they -didn’t particularly care, the dance was funny and Holton laughed. Lewis -and Carla didn’t laugh: for different reasons. - -Suddenly in the middle of the dance a voice off stage announced loudly, -“Jerry!” and a girl dressed in a fake tiger skin ran onto the stage. -The audience whistled and stamped and a table of girls near the stage -applauded hysterically. The girl’s face was square and smooth and hard, -without expression. Her body was strong and slim and startlingly white. -One shoulder and most of one breast were bare. - -She moved in a stylized jungle fashion among the other dancers who -ran from her, simulating fear as they did. Finally she was left alone -on the stage. She danced then, showing as much of her hard white body -as she could. Her face never changed expression, however. She always -looked straight ahead without smiling, her square face rigid. - -And, at last, as a climax, she unfastened the tiger skin and with a -quick gesture pulled it off and for a moment let the audience see her -white hard body. Then the lights went off and she disappeared as the -women in the audience shrieked their delight and the men, catching some -of the hysteria, applauded loudly. - -The lights came on again and the stage was empty. The band played -uncompelling music. “What,” asked Lewis, turning to Holton, “did you -think of her? Isn’t she a perfect savage?” - -“No, I don’t think she is,” said Holton seriously. “I don’t think she -was good at all, did you?” - -“Why, yes, I thought she had something. A certain ... how shall I say -... banked fire?” - -“I agree with Bob,” said Carla. “I don’t think she’s a savage; I don’t -think she’s natural.” - -“Just prejudice,” said Lewis lightly, gesturing with his hand. “Just -prejudice; anyway, the girls here love her.” He pointed to a table of -women. The dancer, wearing a dressing gown now, was sitting on the lap -of one. - -Holton chuckled. - -“What amuses you?” asked Lewis but Holton wouldn’t answer him. - -Carla told them of a dancer in Paris, like this dancer, and as she -talked the lights went off in the room and the band began to play. -Suddenly a spotlight was turned upon the stage and the room became -quiet as the people waited to see the thing they had heard of, the -thing they had come to see. - -Softly the orchestra played. - -A boy with blond curling hair and a smooth white face walked onto -the stage, turned his back to the audience, and hung a round silver -moon from a hook attached to the low ceiling. He stood back a moment, -looking at the moon, and then, satisfied that it was right, he stepped -off the small stage and sat down on a bench near the wings. - -The silver moon shone dully, dominating the stage and the room. In the -middle of the moon there was a mask: a painted mask, enticing, sexual, -ambiguous, a youth or a woman. From this mask long veils of pink and -blue silk quivered gently, stirred by the now-excited breathing of the -audience. They watched this mask and, watching, waited for the dance to -begin. - -A voice came startlingly into the room from a loud-speaker. Said the -voice: “We take great pride in introducing the star of our show, the -one and only Hermes de Bianca. To the music of a Tschaikovsky concerto -he will do a dance symbolic of the struggle between the material and -the spiritual natures of man. Introducing MR HERMES DE BIANCA!” - -The band began to play the concerto. More lights, multicolored lights, -were turned upon the stage. The veils of the moon fluttered and Hermes -de Bianca entered. - -A long sigh came from the audience as he appeared and began to dance. - -He wore a thin silk costume, mysterious and black, with flowing -sleeves. He was fat, not grossly fat like a man, but rather the plump -voluptuousness of an old belle; his skin shone white through the -semi-transparent costume. - -His hips were heavy and feminine. His hands and feet were tiny; he was -very proud of them, for he gestured with his hands and pirouetted on -the tips of his dainty feet. His breasts were the breasts of a woman. - -Methodically he danced. With an obscene grace he moved about the stage, -moved like a yielding woman exulting in her passivity. - -His face: - -There are the faces of men and there are the faces of women and there -are also the faces of children, but this was yet another face. - -The skin was smooth and silken-looking. The face was beautiful; -his eyes were widened with paint and across the upper eyelids rows -of shining, diamond-like stones were glued, making his slightest -expression glitter in the light. - -As he danced he would touch his hair from time to time, using the most -common of feminine gestures. His hair was dark and oiled, with an -artificial peak over the forehead. And, most striking of all, streaks -of gray had been painted at the temples. - -The music then became sad and, as it did, his dance became slower, -more sensual. His wide painted mouth was never still, always working, -always moist, the lips never without expression; now parted, showing -desire, now petulant, now commanding, always enticing young men to love. - -He moved with great lightness, handling his heaviness gracefully as he -advanced upon the moon, making love to the mask. - -Then, as the music became louder, more compelling, he whirled and -twisted among the veils of the moon, wrapping himself in them, -surrendering to the mask, approaching and retreating, always attracted -to the painted mask. - -But, finally, he was the one conquered, the one who surrendered, the -passive one. And he stood there, the sounds of music all about him, -engulfing him, his back arched, his head thrown back and his plump -white stomach shuddering beneath the dark material of his costume. - -And then, as the music reached a climax, he whirled in the center of -the stage, violent, obscene in a desire to be possessed. - -The music stopped. - -There was silence in the room--no sound save the unheard thundering -of many quick-beating hearts. The ones who understood were too moved -to speak and the ones who did not understand were embarrassed and -sickened, aware of their danger, and afraid. - -He bowed to the audience now, his moist red mouth smiling brilliantly, -the mouth of an actress awaiting applause. The applause came, -destroying the silence in the room, creating another less frightening -mood, replenishing his ego. - -Smiling, he walked in triumph off the stage. - -The lights were turned on at last and the orchestra played a popular -song. - -The boy took down the silver moon and the painted mask and as he walked -away he took the reality of the dream with him and couples began to -dance on the stage where Hermes de Bianca had danced. Yet as they -danced, close to one another, there was a certain fear within each of -them, an uncertainty and a dread. - - * * * * * - -“What do you think of that?” asked Lewis. - -He was breathing quickly, Carla noticed. His face was flushed and he -was excited, more excited than she had thought he could possibly be. - -“It is very ... erotic,” she said, knowing how inadequate that word was. - -Holton was sweating when she turned to ask him what he thought. He -looked angry. - -“Did you like it, Bob?” she asked. - -“No, I didn’t,” he said. He took out his handkerchief and dried his -face. “Christ, but it’s hot in here. Why don’t we go?” - -“In a moment,” said Lewis, now recovered. “You must meet dear Hermes. -I’ll go back stage and get him.” He stood up, looked around the room to -see if he were being watched; then, satisfied that he was, he went back -stage. - -“You don’t care for this?” Carla asked. - -“I guess I don’t. I never saw anything like this before. I used to hear -a lot of stories but I didn’t think there were really such places.” - -“There are many a lot worse, said Carla. Of course I’m used to it. You -see my husband is....” - -He smiled. “I guess you were right about not coming here.” - -“You don’t regret it?” - -“It’s interesting.” - -“I think it was a very good idea for you to see something of this -world. Perhaps you can understand me better now, knowing that I’m -living with people like these, married to a person like Lewis.” - -He frowned and looked very serious and she was happy to see him -concerned. “Can’t you leave him, can’t you leave Bankton?” - -“Where would I go? He’s a charming person and I like him. I’d have to -find someone else before I could leave.” - -“Yes,” he said, not understanding her, “I see what you mean.” - -George _Robert_ Lewis returned leading Hermes, still in costume, -by the hand. - -Everyone was polite. Hermes lisped that he was glad to meet them and he -shook hands squashily with both Holton and Carla. Then they sat down at -the table. - -Lewis was excited. “You know Hermes has made the most dreadfully big -decision? He’s going to Rome!” Trumpets did not blow at that moment in -the band; they should have, though. - -Carla was puzzled. “You mean he’s going to Italy?” - -“No, darling, he’s becoming a Roman Catholic. Isn’t it the most -thrilling thing!” - -“I suppose so,” she said. “I used to be a Catholic myself.” - -“What happened?” asked Hermes in a lisping little girl’s voice. - -“I seemed to’ve gotten out of the idea. I married a Protestant, of -course.” - -“What a pity,” murmured Hermes, looking at Holton admiringly; “I think -it’s the only answer, really the only answer. Almost everyone I know is -going over to Rome so there must be _something_ in it.” - -“Perhaps there is,” said Carla. “I think in Italy we take the Church -too much for granted.” - -“I do wish,” said Lewis, “that I could get interested in it. There -seems to be such a rush for rosaries today. But I’m dreadfully afraid -I’m just a hedonistic pagan.” He put his hand on Hermes’ plump little -hand. “I’ve always felt that somewhere there is a faith that I could -grasp onto.” With his other hand he took a drink out of his recently -filled glass. “Sometimes one feels so lost, so homeless. I think there -must always be a womb-longing in each of us, a desire to go back where -we came from. I used to think that art was enough but I suppose I was -wrong because I never had much real satisfaction from it. Carla here -will say it is love that gives us a reason, but I don’t think so. I’ve -always been in love. Occasionally with my own image, I must admit, -but there _have_ been others. No, I never got much out of love. -Hermes here has his dancing, but I don’t think that was enough for him -either....” - -“Perhaps you’ve never given enough of yourself to another person,” said -Carla. - -“Vampire,” chuckled Lewis. “Our identities are the only real things -we have in this shadowy world.” He was in good form now and he was -becoming drugged with his own facility. “No, we must try to obtain a -faith, or at least a medium, to carry out our search for immortality, -or should I say perpetuation? Women, normal women, seem to have less -fear of death because they have the function of child-bearing. They are -able to experience their own perpetuation; and in their primitive way -they feel a part of all mankind and there are no real mysteries for -them, no need of logic. But man is different. The act of procreation -is a pleasure and not painful and, therefore, he does not observe that -in that function his own image is mirrored through eternity. He turns -then to art (the sensitive talented man, I mean now) and in making -pictures or books, playing at creation, he hopes to survive death but -he is never really convinced: at best he is hypnotized, he is drugged -by his art and in desperation he tries to make meaning out of his own -creations: playthings, in reality. And so he finds himself in the end -with chisel and mallet in his hands making a statue and no nearer -perpetuation, closer only to death.” - -“How beautiful!” exclaimed Hermes. “But that’s why we all have to go to -Rome.” - -“Perhaps that’s the answer.” He began to speak again, his flat voice -rising and falling without emotion in it. Carla looked at Holton -questioningly. He nodded. - -“Bob and I have to go now,” she said. - -“Oh, you must stay a little longer,” he pleaded. - -“We really have to go,” said Holton, rising. They thanked him (Lewis -insisted on paying the bill) and said good-bye. George _Robert_ -Lewis was still talking to Hermes as they left. - - - - - _Chapter Eleven_ - - -“How cool it is!” said Carla, as they walked along the street. “I -couldn’t breathe in there.” - -“It was a crazy place,” said Holton, looking straight ahead as he -walked, following the traffic lights. Carla occasionally drew him off -the curb and into the street but he always managed to obey the green -lights. - -They decided to walk uptown, to walk to Times Square. - -Carla felt light and happy now that Lewis had been left behind. - -“I like the air in New York,” she said. - -“The air?” - -“It’s exciting and silly and everyone is busy doing things they don’t -want to do but still it’s stimulating.” - -“I suppose so.” - -She hadn’t decided yet whether he tried to be noncommittal or whether -he had nothing to say. No, he had something to say: she was sure of -that. He was shy and he felt things very much but he was afraid to say -them. She remembered now that he had told her things about himself in -Florence. He had told her about his parents and his life, though he -hadn’t told her what he wanted to do. He still would not tell her that -and, if he knew, she would have to discover it. - -“How long are you going to be in town?” he asked. - -“I don’t know. A month perhaps, I don’t know. I think Bankton will be -coming over soon. They’re going to give him a big show here.” - -“I’d like to see him.” - -“He’d like to meet you, too.” She laughed. “I might lose you to him” -She stopped herself quickly. She shouldn’t have said “lose” because -they were supposed to be just casual friends; at least, that was the -basis he seemed to want. She mustn’t frighten him. “I don’t think you’d -like him,” she said easily, in control now. “He’s rather jealous and -disagreeable.” - -They crossed more streets, dodged more cars, bumped into more and more -people and, finally, they came to Times Square. - -At Forty-second Street they stopped and Carla looked at the lights for -a long time. - -It seemed as if all the commercialism in the world had decided to -concentrate itself in one place, as if by blazing colored lights and -moving signs it could justify itself. - -At one end of the square a giant sign exploded colors, advertising -cigarettes. Another cigarette advertisement had a man puffing smoke; -it was most realistic because real smoke or something like smoke came -out of his mouth. Soft drinks and chewing gum and cigarettes--all the -small things--were displayed in the most magnificent manner. There -was an almost religious appeal in the brightness of the lights, the -cathedral-like splendor of the signs which supported countless colored -bulbs of light: everything was so large, so magnificent, so desperately -appealing. - -“Such wonderful strength,” murmured Carla, “so much misguided energy.” - -“It’s very nice to look at,” said Robert Holton, speaking -self-consciously for America. - -They stood pressed against a building while hundreds of people pushed -by them in a thick stream. Carla studied the lights, mesmerized by -their colors: red passionate ones and guttering greens, blue and yellow -glowing, and moving figures; they even had the lights turn on and off -in such a fashion that silhouetted men appeared to dance and animated -animals had adventures. The lights were most splendid and nowhere in -the world was so much grandeur hung against the sky. Carla watched the -lights. - -Yellow taxicabs clattered by them and everyone moved quickly. Everyone -had at least a destination and that was a hopeful sign. She didn’t care -to think what their destinations might be. - -She looked at the buildings and saw that they were not tall. They -looked like buildings in Paris or London. Squat and dirty and rather -Victorian: the buildings were most ordinary but there was so much -light over them, against them, all around them that they became as -insubstantial as theater props. - -The movie houses which filled the lower parts of most of the buildings -of the square had the most light. Their marquees rippled and glittered -with names. Large posters were hung wherever there was no electricity. -People moved in constant streams into the movies, while other people, -as constantly, came out, blinking their eyes, adjusting themselves to -reality. - -Then there was the noise. Not a really individual noise, not like an -Italian crowd, hoarse and insistent, but a roar with sharp breaks and -a rhythm like an automobile engine, a noise like a discordant piece of -music with the rumblings of a subway train as a bass. The conversations -of many people made a sound as soothing and as natural as the sea but -the mechanical things made sharp overtones, set the rhythm of Times -Square and of many lives. - -Slowly Carla and Robert Holton allowed themselves to become a part of -the current of people, gliding with them toward the north end of the -square. - -First of all were the young adventurers: boys with dark skins and dark -clever eyes, dressed in the spirit of the jazz they had made their own -without understanding. Looking for sex, they walked together in groups, -talking in whining voices, unpleasant nasal voices. - -Young girls with bleached blond hair that looked untidy and unclean -walked in twos together, looking for men. Their well-formed bodies with -tight breasts moved self-consciously as they walked on awkward high -heels. They laughed too loudly, giggled too much and stared at sailors. - -The couples were the happiest-looking of all. They always walked with -wonder in their faces, conscious of each other as they walked through -all the light and sound. - -Old men in dirty clothes moved slowly, looking for cigarette butts. -This was not new to them; they had known the square before and found it -good hunting though not as congenial as quiet places. They had stopped -looking for sex: only cigarette butts. - -Cripples and bums sang songs and rattled tin cups. It was hard to tell -what they were looking for besides charity. Perhaps they had stopped -their long search. Carla was sorry for them. - -Hot stale air rushed out of the theater lobbies and from the bars and -restaurants; stale air rushed upward from the subway ventilators in the -sidewalk. The cool night was defeated by the city, even the darkness -had been defeated for it was as light as day, as light as day and much -prettier and more exciting. - -“What a place!” said Carla. “So _much_ is here. Is this the dream -Lewis was talking about?” - -“Maybe.” - -“I think,” said Carla, laughing, “this is the peak of your -civilization.” - -“Probably; it’s the sign of the century.” - -“But there will be other centuries.” And they thought of other -centuries when they would not be alive and they tried to see the square -in future years--if the square survived with the dream. - - * * * * * - -Outside the Bijou Theater Marjorie Ventusa stood, trying to make up her -mind if she wanted to see her favorite actress suffer. Marjorie liked -pictures that made her cry. She wasn’t sure, however, if she wanted to -cry tonight. - -Mrs Merrin had been quite pleasant that evening when Marjorie left and -this made her feel good. She stood now, undecided, Times Square all -around her. She often faced the high prices of the square to see new -movies. She liked crowded places because she felt happy with a lot of -people around her. - -She stood beside the box office, warmed by the air from the theater. -The sight of all the people and lights made her feel secure as though -she were not really alone, for she identified herself with every couple -that passed by. She had no envy. - -Marjorie was about to go into the movie when she saw Robert Holton -crossing a street on the other side of the square. She had a sudden -impulse to call him, to make herself heard over the hundreds of people. -Then she saw that he was not alone. She saw that he was with a dark -pretty girl: a woman from the world where he lived. Marjorie Ventusa -watched him as he walked with this person across the street. Then, on -the other side, she lost him. He had disappeared with the dark woman. - -The square had changed now and the lights were cruel. The noises became -oppressive and she felt shut out of the lives of the people who passed -her. - -Marjorie Ventusa grabbed her black patent-leather handbag close to -her and, controlling herself, she walked along the square. She walked -slowly, allowing others to push by her. She passed in front of many -movie houses and many bars. There was a great noise all around her, -harsh voices and much laughing. She hated the laughing the most. Two -young girls were stopped by two sailors in front of her and they spoke -together in the light of a red neon sign. The sailors said something -and the girls laughed. Quickly Marjorie Ventusa walked by them. - -A group of boys were standing in a blue light and they were laughing -in their harsh changing voices. She wished they would stop. Looking -downward, she walked through the crowd, no longer with it. - -Marjorie Ventusa was the center now of laughing people and her eyes -were dazzled by changing lights. - -Finally, out of breath, and at the northern end of the square, she -stopped and pressed against a building. She looked back at the places -she had just left and she was tired. - -A stout little man was staring at her. He was trying to figure out what -she was and what he might dare do. She looked at him with disgust, but -he was not bothered by this and, thinking her a whore, he separated -himself from the crowd and came over to where she stood. He leaned -against the building a few feet from her. Slowly, calmly he took a -package of cigarettes out of his pocket. He turned to her now, offering -her a cigarette. - -“Want a smoke?” - -She shook her head. “No, thanks.” - -He took one himself and lighted it. He inhaled to show how calm he was -and then he said, “You want to walk maybe?” - -“No,” she said furiously, comparing him with Robert Holton. “I don’t -want to walk with you.” She turned away from him and went quickly -toward the nearest movie. Without once looking back she bought a -ticket. As she gave the ticket to the man at the door she heard the -stout man whistle as he walked past the theater. - -Setting her face, she walked into the marble and gold lobby. She -walked, conscious of a thousand nonexistent eyes watching her back. - -Then she entered the darkened hall of the movie. On the screen two -characters, simulating love, were laughing loudly. Marjorie Ventusa was -trapped. - -Caroline and Jim Trebling had been giggling all evening. Caroline had -never known anyone quite so amusing as Trebling. He had no respect for -anything; at least, no respect for the things most people did. He made -fun of her office and her job and he was pleasant as he did it; not -bitter as so many people were. - -He had suggested that they visit Times Square and go dancing in one of -the large dance halls there. She had tried to talk him into going some -place more expensive but he had said that he didn’t have the money and -that as long as you danced somewhere that was all that counted. - -From Fifth Avenue they walked along Forty-Seventh Street until, -finally, they came to the square. Trebling blinked. - -“It’s the damnedest sight! I don’t think it can compare with L.A. but -there really is something wonderful about it.” - -Caroline regarded the square without much emotion. She had seen it all -her life. “I think it’s too crowded,” she said finally, wishing that he -had decided to take her to a better place, a place with a big name, one -she could talk about later. - -He stood, however, staring at the lights; then he lowered his eyes from -the lights and looked at the people. She noticed now that he looked at -people a great deal. Even when they were talking he always stared at -people as though there was something wrong with them. - -“Why’re you looking around all the time?” asked Caroline. “I don’t -understand you at all. I don’t think they like being stared at.” - -“What?” He hadn’t been listening to her. “Why do I ... stare? I just -like to look at them and see what they’re so busy rushing around for.” - -“Don’t you know?” - -“No, do you?” - -“Well....” She hesitated, uncertain of her meaning, uncertain of what -they were talking about. - -He laughed. She admired his way of telling when she couldn’t understand -him; he never really embarrassed her by trying to talk over her head as -some men tried to do: not that they really could, of course. She was -an American woman and just as smart as any man. Caroline stood there -looking at the square with Trebling who had just laughed and saved her -from embarrassment; Caroline stood erect and sure of herself and her -emancipation, her arm in his. - -Then, without speaking, he led her across the middle of the square. -It was dazzling to cross between the many lights. Caroline liked the -colors. They seemed rather cozy to her. Times Square was in many ways -her symbol of home. It was no longer interesting because home is never -interesting but she liked it still. - -“Look at all the movie houses,” he said when they had gotten over on -the other side. “There’s so much of everything. But it’s dirty. It’s -all awfully dirty.” - -“Is it?” Caroline had not thought of that. Perhaps the square was not -very clean but how could it be? There were always so many people coming -to be impressed or depressed by it. - -“Bob used to talk a lot about this part of town, about Broadway. I -think he used to like it a lot,” said Trebling. - -“Is that right?” - -“Oh, sure. He was a playboy during the war.” - -Caroline was surprised but not very interested. “He sure’s changed a -lot,” she said. “He’s a nice fellow and I know you think a lot of him -but he’s a little dull ... now, anyway.” - -“I think,” said Trebling, “that people sometimes feel they have to -change to protect themselves. He’s just making a new life now.” - -“He’s certainly making a dull one.” - -“Not if it’s what he wants.” - -“Imagine working in an office if you could do something else!” - -“What about yourself?” - -Caroline flushed; she had found herself becoming so much involved with -Trebling’s personality that she had begun to lose her own in his: she -had begun to think that she was as free as he was or, rather, as he -felt he was. She had to retrace now; she must go back into herself. “I -can’t do anything else,” she said. “That’s all I know--working in an -office.” - -“You could get married.” - -“I suppose I could.” Purposely she left it at that. He didn’t ask her -anything else. They watched the square. - -Caroline was conscious of odors, too conscious of them. There were a -great many unpleasant odors in the square: beer and cigarette smoke and -exhaust; perfume and sweat and stale air from theaters and subways; -food cooking--hot dogs, hamburgers, popcorn and peanuts. She got a -little dizzy just breathing. - -“Come on, Jim,” she said, “let’s go find the dance hall.” - -They walked together along the crowded streets and as they walked he -told her wonderful stories of freedom that were not true but still very -interesting; and she thought him the most fascinating man she knew and -not at all like his dull friend Robert Holton. - -At last they came to a dance hall. As much as she liked the glitter -of the square it was a relief to go inside the red-upholstered, -mirror-walled dance hall where the only odors were of perfume and -cigarette smoke. - -“I haven’t been here for so long,” she said. - - * * * * * - -Mr Heywood came out of the theater. He had left in the middle of the -last act. It was his personal strategy to do this because it meant that -he missed the crowd and the long wait for his car to find him. - -The play had been dreary and he had seen it only because a friend of -his knew the girl in it. Besides, Mr Heywood did not like to go to -plays alone. His wife no longer went with him and he was afraid of -taking other women around with him because people talked. He did not -like any men at all. - -The street was almost deserted. The theaters still were full and their -chaste white light signs shone cleanly into the street. Two blocks away -was Times Square. He could just barely make out the colored sign of a -soft drink bottle. He shuddered as he thought of soft drinks. - -He stood in front of the theater, the light from the marquee shining -dramatically down upon him. He would stand here now without moving -until his waiting chauffeur saw him and took him away. To his left he -heard the sound of a motor starting. He did not look to his left. He -merely stood now, self-contained and passive, waiting. - -His car stopped in front of him. The chauffeur got out, opened the -door and said something to him and Mr Heywood said something to the -chauffeur and an understanding was reached. Mr Heywood got into the car -and the chauffeur drove down the street into the square and toward home. - -Mr Heywood shrank from the lights that suddenly made the inside of his -car as colorful as a rainbow. He tried not to look out the window at -the square but it was impossible not to look. His eyes were drawn by -the force of the lights and he looked out finally. - -All the cheapness he hated was in the square. The people of whom he was -terrified moved all about him now. The noises he hated to hear and the -lights he hated to see intruded. He shuddered and wondered if he was -going to be sick. - -Finally they left the square. - -He felt much better now that they were in the quieter darker places -of the city. Mr Heywood was lonely now. He had always been lonely and -that was his personal sadness. He wished that he were young. It was -impossible to be lonely when one was young. He wished that he were -Robert Holton. - - * * * * * - -Carla and Holton stopped to rest at the northern end of the square. -They stood upon a small island of concrete surrounded by avenues. A -red light shone across Holton’s face giving him a sinister expression. -Carla laughed. - -“What’s so funny?” - -“Your face ... you look like Mephisto.” He smiled and stepped out of -the red light and stood beside her. - -“What do you think of it now?” asked Holton as they stood on their -island, watching. - -“The things I’ve always thought. It’s very brilliant. It is a ... -production.” - -“Everyone comes to see it.” - -“And I think it means something different to each one. It’s like a work -of art that way.” She paused and added, “It is a work of art.” - -“An unfriendly one, though.” - -She shrugged. “Art doesn’t have to be friendly. To me all this bad -taste is very alive and miraculous.” She was going to say more but she -was not sure of her English. The language she had learned had been -literary and she was occasionally conscious of not speaking ordinary -words. Holton had not been listening, though. Caught in the magic she -had performed upon the square, he was melting into it, his eyes fixed -on the effect and not the details. - -“What a place to make a decision,” he said firmly, turning to look at -her. - -“A decision?” She was not sure of him now; not sure of the magic. “What -sort of decision?” - -“I’ll tell you later.” - -“If you like.” She could see that he was not ready to talk to her yet. -The signs were good, though. He was returning. - -Arm in arm they deserted their concrete island. They crossed the street -and stood for a moment on the edge of the square, looking back at the -lights. - -“Where do you want to go?” asked Holton. - -“Back to my hotel,” she said, not looking at him. - -“Shall I go with you?” - -“Do you want to?” She noticed that one of the largest signs had several -dead lights in it. - -“Of course I want to,” he said. - -She was very happy then. The bridge was completed. - -“Shall we walk? It’s not far.” He nodded. They left the bright square -and walked northward, not speaking. The bridge was not yet strong. - - - - - _Chapter Twelve_ - - -They stood a moment in the gray heavily carpeted corridor. The hotel -was an expensive one and this was the first time Robert Holton had been -inside it. - -“I’m down here,” said Carla, taking a key out of her bag. She led him -down the corridor. - -She stopped, unlocked a door, and they went inside. - -“In America you always try to make everything look expensive,” she -said. “But I like this room.” - -“Looks like Hollywood,” said Holton. Carla looked about her and agreed. -The walls were dull green and the ceiling white. The furniture was -low and modern and there was much glass in the room: mirrors and -glass-topped tables. Two large windows looked out on Central Park. At -the left was the doorway to the bedroom. - -“Bankton must have a lot of money,” murmured Holton. - -Carla smiled. “No, I have, but that’s not important. Sit down over -there, Bob.” She motioned to a white couch by the window. “Would you -like something to drink?” - -“If you want one.” - -While she fixed his drink she would be able to think of the right thing -to say. She felt constrained still and her heart was beating rapidly. -She prepared the drink deliberately and, satisfied that it was right, -she turned and walked over to him. “Here you are.” Then she sat down -beside him. - -They looked out at the city. Carla sat straight on the edge of the -couch, her eyes fixed on the tall buildings. She was conscious of -Holton’s slow breathing beside her. The silence was becoming difficult; -then he picked up his glass and ice clattered and the silence broke. - -“Tell me,” she said, sitting back in the couch, “what do you do during -the days? What does a broker do?” - -He opened his coat and relaxed. “Not much, I’m afraid. I get all sorts -of statistical books and I make out reports from them. It’s pretty -dull.” - -“How long are you going to have to do that?” - -“I don’t know ... a year maybe. I think Mr Heywood--he was the fellow -we met at the party--I think he’s going to move me out in the selling -end.” - -“You would like that?” - -“It means more money and it’s going to be my career.” - -“That’s right; it’s going to be your career.” - -Holton crossed his legs, using the movement to give himself time to -think. Carla waited, watching him. - -“Are you going to live in Florence?” he asked finally. - -This was not going at all well, she thought. “I think I may live there -part of the year. I think I shall travel first.” - -“Where? Where do you want to go?” - -“Some place in the Near East, some place like the _Arabian -Nights_--you’ve read it, haven’t you?” - -“I read it once.” - -“I always wanted things to be like that, to be enchanted.” - -“And you’ve been disappointed?” - -She nodded. “Sometimes I’ve been very disappointed but, you see, sooner -or later it’s all right. I’ve great faith in things being right.” - -“You’re a curious girl,” he said. He looked at her and she could see -her own face twice reflected in his eyes. “You don’t,” he said, “really -like Bankton, do you?” - -The words were making the proper patterns now. She turned so that he -would see all her face when she spoke. “Yes, I like him very much but I -don’t love him. I can’t love anyone without having it complete, without -having ... the other thing.” - -“What we had.” - -“Yes, what we had.” She felt that now he was coming back again. - -“It was so long ago, wasn’t it?” She wasn’t sure now that he was coming -back: “so long ago.” - -“I’ve remembered it,” she said. “It doesn’t seem long ago to me.” - -“I don’t mean that,” he said. “I meant that ... well ... so much has -happened to us since then. You’ve been married and I left the army....” - -“We’re not much different, are we?” She looked out the window now and -watched different lights go out in the tall buildings; for each light -that went out, though, someone else turned on another. “You know,” she -said, concentrating on the lights, “you know you were really the first -for me.” - -He was awkward now. “Yes, I guess I was. I didn’t....” - -“There were probably a lot of others for you in Europe. You know, I -haven’t really wanted any man since then.” - -This had to surprise; she wanted this to be her strongest weapon. She -looked at him now. He had put down his drink and he was looking at her. - -“Is that true?” - -She nodded. “I don’t know why I shouldn’t tell you. I couldn’t keep -from telling you.” She tried not to look at him. - -“You mean what happened to us in Italy was the only time...?” He was -confused. - -She turned then and looked at him, at the troubled eyes and the boy’s -mouth. “My dear, when something means a lot to you I think it’s hard to -take a substitute. You see, I made an object for myself. I was upset -when you left, naturally, because you’d become my object. I never heard -from you and so I married Bankton in London. I never lost my object, -though. It never changed.” - -“I’m sorry,” he said. - -Carla smiled. “I understand it now. You had so many women and I was -only one. I think that’s all right, I think that’s natural. I hoped -you might have felt the way I did. One always wants to be loved and -it’s not easy to find a lover. I never had another man--not because I -couldn’t, but because I didn’t want to. I was waiting all that time, -hoping to see _you_ again.” She had said everything now. He had -listened and there was nothing else she could do. - -He ran his hand through his hair. “I was very close to you,” he said. - -“I thought you were.” She was waiting. - -“You’re right, there were a lot of others, but I don’t think I loved -any of them.” - -“No one at all?” - -He didn’t answer. He stood up and walked across the room. Then he came -back and stood looking down at her. - -“I don’t know what to say. We were very close once and then I came back -here and made myself forget everything about Europe, everything that -had happened to me there. - -“It hasn’t been easy to do. The only way I could get by, though, was to -do what I’m doing: become a broker. I can’t be the way I was; I can’t -afford it. Of course I can still have all the girls I want and I can -have a good time. I suppose I can fall in love sometime ... again, but -I have to be a conventional person and I don’t mind. - -“Tonight those people were examples of freedom....” - -She interrupted him. “Not really freedom, self-indulgence perhaps.” - -“Whatever it is, they call it being free. I don’t want that. I couldn’t -have that kind anyway because I’m not talented; I don’t do anything -well and I know it.” - -“You can be a free person, though.” - -“How?” - -She sighed. “I’ve already told you and you already know. You can love.” - -“You think that’s the answer?” - -“I don’t know any other. It’s been important to me.” - -He sat down beside her, sat close to her. “I don’t know if I could love -someone,” he said. “I don’t know if I could love you the way you’d -want.” - -“You can,” said Carla. “You can do whatever you want.” - -His hand touched hers. She sat very straight then, her eyes on the -window, on the white lights. He put his arm around her shoulders and -kissed her and she closed her eyes upon the lights outside. - -For a long time they were like that on the couch. Then they separated -and stood up, self-conscious and shy, newly discovered. He motioned -with his hand toward the bedroom. She nodded and they went into the -bedroom together and met finally in the middle of the bridge. - - * * * * * - -Robert Holton held Carla from him at arm’s length and looked at her. -She was pretty, at this moment quite beautiful, her face white and her -greenish eyes glittering. - -“I’ve been waiting, Bob,” she said. “I’ve waited such a long time.” He -pulled her to him then, her body against his. A part of him was given -up entirely to making love but another part was still detached, still -watching. - -He helped her to undo her dress. Modestly now, with the reserve of -strangers, they stood back to back as they undressed. - -She was beautiful and he had forgotten that. She was not really pale: -her skin was gold. She was slim and cleanly made and her breasts were -small. They faced each other and looked at each other, the detached, -the lonely part of himself memorizing every detail of her. - -Carla walked slowly toward him and touched his shoulder. Tears were in -her eyes. - -“What’s the matter?” he asked. - -She shook her head and smiled: nothing was the matter now. - -He took her slowly then, pressing her against his body gently, every -nerve vibrating in both of them; hearts beating quickly. - -They stood like this in the middle of the room; then she broke away and -walked over to the bed and pulled the cover down. - -“Turn out the light, Bob,” she whispered. It was a ceremony now: -neither of them spoke out loud in the presence of the miracle taking -place. He turned out the light. The room was dark except for the -lighted dots of windows in the buildings opposite and, over the -buildings, like unorganized window lights, cold stars shone clearly. - -He turned and walked to the bed. Carla lay on her back, her arms -behind her head. He got in beside her and they lay there together, not -speaking, hardly breathing, and he felt the blood pounding in his head -while, next to him, Carla was shivering, was waiting. He turned over on -his side, barely touching her. - -They did not speak now. Words were discarded and no surface was needed. -Instinct guided them finally, made them a separate world together; -there was only a dream existence outside of themselves. - -And Robert Holton became the lover and ceased to be himself; his -detached awareness was, for the time, submerged and forgotten. - -He ran his hands over her, feeling the smooth skin of her shoulders, -her thighs.... They kissed and began the act of completion. - -To Holton it became a battle and a surrender, a taking and a giving; it -became a fusion. He was no longer himself, he was enlarged; a giant in -a world of giant sensations. He was no longer alone or incomplete. - -Then the rhythm was found and the wild twistings and strugglings -stopped. He was conquering now and, in the conquering, giving. - -He entered her and to the rhythm of their fast-beating hearts, with -a rush of sound like wind in his ears, he discovered the single -world. Lights whirled inside his head, behind his eyes: they came in -series--circles of sharp lights. - -He was choking then, barely breathing, able only to cough and gasp. -Sweat covered him; his hands clutched at her shoulders as though they -were the only remaining solidity in a world rapidly disintegrating into -sensations and fast-moving lights and a quick wind. - -There was no time now. There was no memory. There was no reason. The -struggle stopped and the moment came like fire. - -Carla’s face was buried in his shoulder; she stiffened and then became -relaxed, the battle finished and won. - -Like fire it came and the wonder was achieved; a world was glimpsed and -lost in a moment. Then, tide-like, the emotion stopped and withdrew. -The ecstasy was gone and only two people were left in its wake, left on -a high shore, exhausted, shipwrecked. - -Robert Holton lay for a moment upon Carla’s still body, supporting -himself with his elbows so that he would not crush her; he breathed -deeply, taking in the air with great sobs. Beneath him Carla was quiet, -at peace, her shuddering stopped. - -He kissed her very gently then and they separated, without words; they -lay quietly side by side, touching each other, yet apart, the trace -of their fire still inside of them, and exhaustion brought with it no -sadness, no loneliness. - -Robert Holton put his arm under her head; then he looked out the -window, looked at the real stars, not nearly as bright as the ones in -his head, the ones they had made together. - -Silence and darkness protected them. - -Part of his mind became detached again and he saw himself in relation -to the world. He saw himself in a darkened room of a large hotel, lying -exhausted beside the wife of a painter. He frowned in the dark and he -fought the vision of the outer world. - -Carla moved her hand over his chest, twisting the hairs; he felt a -spasm of tenderness shake him and he took her and held her close to -him. This was the moment when he felt he was not alone, felt that he -was not a single particle lost in a void. The half of him lost in the -womb had been regained and he was finally complete: he was God and -earth and other stars, so great was this fusion. - -They slept quietly in each others arms. They slept unaware of time for -they _were_ time. - -Carla woke first. She gave a start and Robert Holton opened his eyes, -wondered where he was; then he saw Carla beside him, saw a vague figure -by the light of stars. - -“_Caro mio_,” she murmured, saying the first words either had -spoken. - -“Darling,” he whispered. - -“It’s so perfect,” she said and he put her head on his shoulder again. -Then they were still, looking at the uncertain outline of their bodies -on the whiteness of the bed. - -He felt her smooth legs. They were cool, like dreams half-remembered. - -“I love you,” she whispered into his ear, “so much more than you know.” - -He kissed her for answer and his detached self almost fused with hers, -almost made a union, almost died and made him free. - -Carla turned on the light. It was two o’clock and they had been asleep -for almost an hour. - -Robert Holton lay quietly on the bed, his eyes closed, his breathing -regular, one arm over his forehead as though to defend himself. She -leaned over and kissed him lightly, then she got out of bed and went -into the bathroom. - -Her face shocked and pleased her. “How depraved I look,” she murmured -to herself. Her face was glowing and her eyes shone and glittered. -There were red marks on her white skin. His beard had scratched her and -made her usually white face pink. With a sudden gesture she swept her -hair back out of her face, held her dark curling hair captive. - -Holton appeared behind her then and he put his arms around her waist -and kissed the back of her neck. She shuddered and closed her eyes. She -could not look at light with so much inward light behind her eyes. They -stood like that. Then he let her go. They looked at each other: two -people now, so recently a single world. - -“Happy?” she asked. - -He nodded. “I’ve never had it like this before,” he said. “It never -meant as much to me as this.” - -They walked back into the bedroom and sat down side by side on the -bed. Modestly Holton drew the sheet over their laps. They sat quietly -without speaking, their bare arms around each other. When Carla looked -at the window she could no longer see stars and lighted windows; she -could see only their reflection on black glass. - -“What are you thinking?” he asked and she saw that he’d been watching -her. - -“Nothing, Bob. I don’t think all the time, you know. I was only -feeling.” - -“Feeling what?” - -She smiled. “Feeling all the world.” - -“I think I felt that, too ... to live in a big way....” - -“Yes, I know.” She sighed. “You have to break all your little patterns. -You have to expand now.” - -But there was resistance to this. “I don’t see why you can’t have -everything and still have that, too.” - -“No, everything must be the richest and the fullest. Have you that?” - -He stretched, the muscles moving under white skin. “Maybe it is; I -don’t know.” He took her then and they fell back together onto the bed. -For several minutes they were together and then he rolled over on his -side. She opened her eyes. - -“What’s the matter, Bob?” she asked. - -“I don’t know,” he said. He was looking at her, his dark hair in his -eyes. He pushed it back. - -“You’re not sad?” - -“No.” He ran his hands over her hips. “I was only wondering what’s to -happen next. You’ll go back to Europe.” - -She had been waiting for this. She had been waiting for him to ask -this. Now she could say what she felt but the words did not come -easily. “I don’t have to go back,” she said. “I can stay here as long -as I like.” - -“Then your husband’ll come over here.” - -“I can leave him.” - -He shook his head. “I couldn’t marry you.” - -She was lost. She was falling now. It seemed as if the room had become -cold and foreign and she had come to a hostile country. There was no -longer an answer to make: the answer had been made. She tried not to -let her face show what she felt. - -“Why couldn’t you marry me?” - -“I haven’t any money.” - -“I have.” - -“I wouldn’t want that. You wouldn’t want to be married to a broker and -live in New York.” - -“Why do you have to be a broker?” - -He sighed then and she saw for the first time that he was the one -trapped, the one who would not escape. “What else can I do?” he asked. - -“You can break with all this.” She was fighting. - -“But what could I do? I have to do something. I have to be something.” - -“Why do you have to be something? Why do you have to do things that you -don’t want, that make you unhappy?” - -“Everyone has to. Besides, I’m not sure that I am unhappy.” She was -defeated at that moment. The dream she had been fashioning disappeared -and there were no traces of it left, only a lingering sadness and an -open wound. - -He went on talking and she answered him but there was nothing left for -either of them to discuss. - -Then after a while they both stopped talking. They sat side by side -looking out the window, or rather looking at themselves reflected in -the black mirror. Holton turned out the light and Carla was able to see -the stars again. - -“That was funny, wasn’t it?” chuckled Holton. - -“What? What was funny?” - -“Lewis tonight and all those people talking about religion and art.” - -“I don’t think it was funny; I think it was sad.” - -“Why sad?” - -“They were lost, I think. Just like us, Bob.” - -She could feel him looking at her. “Are you?” he asked softly. - -She would not let herself cry. She would not give way. She would have -to be strong now. Her voice carefully controlled, she said, “No more -than you. We could be complete, I think.” - -“I think we could,” he said and she knew that he felt nothing the -way she did. Carla had the feeling of coming into a stranger’s house -expecting friends, expecting familiar things. She was with an unknown, -a man who did not feel what she did. - -“I had hoped,” said Carla, “that we could.” She was going to be -accurate in what she said. She used each word like the cut of a knife -to sever the relationship, to kill her own love. “I don’t think we can -now. You want to live a certain life. You want what you know and though -you don’t like it you think it’s the safe thing. I don’t understand -you, I’m afraid. I’ve tried to see all this through your eyes. I -didn’t want it to be just another one, another woman. I wanted it to -be important to you: it was so important to me. I think I was wrong. I -think I was selfish and I’m sorry.” She wondered when her voice would -break. - -Then Holton tried to reconstruct at last. “No, you don’t understand. -I feel very close to you. I’ve liked this more than any other time, -more than with anyone else. But you see I can’t leave what I’m doing; I -couldn’t live on you for the rest of my life.” - -She sighed. “That’s such a superficial thing; that’s all the surface. -When you feel something for another person those things don’t matter.” - -“Someday they might. Of course I’m lonely and not very happy. You have -to accept that. In a few years I’ll get married and maybe that’ll make -it better. I could,” he was speaking slowly now, “marry you. I could do -that but you wouldn’t be happy.” - -“How do you know I wouldn’t be happy here?” - -“You’re different, that’s all. I can’t tell you what the difference is. -I don’t know.” - -And she couldn’t tell him what the difference was. There was no way to -tell. - -He put his arms around her in the dark and they relaxed on the bed and -she tried to give herself to the moment but she could not: too much had -been given already. - -“It’s a temptation,” said Holton suddenly. - -“What is?” They separated. - -“To go to Europe with you, to live with you.” - -“It could be done.” - -“Maybe.... No, it wouldn’t work.” - -“Why?” - -“It just wouldn’t be practical.” - -No, she thought, it wouldn’t be practical. - -Then the passion came back to them and she almost forgot his -withdrawal. She fell back onto the pillows, his body over hers. - -He whispered in her ear, “You know I really have to leave after this.” - -“Of course you must,” said Carla, dying gently. - - - - -3 - -THE YELLOW WOOD - - - - - _Chapter Thirteen_ - - -The early morning was cold and Robert Holton shivered as he left the -warm lobby of the hotel. He stood outside on the sidewalk and wondered -where he was. He turned to the left and walked a few steps and then he -remembered the street he was on, remembered where east and west were. -He turned to the right and walked rapidly toward Fifth Avenue. - -The streets were almost deserted. Occasionally a taxicab would clatter -by. Occasionally a tired couple looking for a room would pass him on -the sidewalk. As he walked, his own footsteps made sharp regular noises -on the pavement. - -He came at last to a subway entrance. He breathed deeply, took a last -breath of clean air and went down inside the ground. - -Pale lights burned in old sockets and a sleepy Negro sat within the -money-changer’s booth. A sailor stood vomiting in a corner; he was very -quiet about it and the Negro paid no attention to him. - -Robert Holton put his nickel in the turnstile. - -On the platform several people were waiting for the train. They were -all tired. Another sailor had a girl and he was standing very close to -her. They were both drunk and made strange little movements with their -heads and hands, slow-motion movements, as though they were flying. - -Robert Holton stood against an iron pillar. He felt exhausted but -physically serene. He rested his head on the hard rough surface. It was -pleasant to stand like this, underground. - -The uptown train stopped with a jolt, the doors opened and Robert -Holton stepped into the lighted train. The doors closed and the train -started again. - -Everyone in the car was weary or drunk or both. Papers and cigarette -butts covered the floor. A pair of dirty gloves lay at his feet, -forgotten by the owner, unwanted. - -Robert Holton tried to sleep but the glare of light through his eyelids -was distracting. His physical exhaustion was lessening, too, and he -began to feel a return of energy. - -He would not think of Carla, though; he would not think of her for a -little while. He would wait until he was in his room. - -After a long time, after ten minutes, the train stopped at his station -and he climbed out of the ground and stood on the concrete surface of -the earth; a suggestion of morning was in the sky and the wind blew -fresh and cold from the river. He walked to his hotel. - -“Evening,” said the clerk behind the desk. - -“Good evening,” said Holton. - -“Is it getting colder out?” - -Holton nodded. “Probably be a real cold day tomorrow.” He walked over -to the counter. “Have I got any mail?” - -“Let’s see ... that’s...?” - -“Holton.” - -The clerk looked, then shook his head. “No mail, Mr Holton.” He paused. -“You was in the army?” - -“Yes, I was in the army.” - -“So was I.” The clerk was lonely and wanted to talk and Holton was -still tired and nervous and wanted to think. “It sure is nice being -out,” said the clerk. - -“Yes, it’s good to be out.” - -“I was with the 82nd; you remember the 82nd, don’t you?” - -“Of course I do.” - -“We had a good group of guys.” - -“I know you did.” - -“Nothing like being a civilian, is there?” - -“No,” said Robert Holton, “there’s nothing like being out. Good night.” - -“Good night.” The clerk who had been with the army was sad to see him -go. - -He turned the light on in his room. It was all just the same, the -troubling painting and the crowded dresser. Sometimes he would come -into his room and have a feeling that everything would be changed when -he turned on the light, that something exciting would have happened to -change his room. It was always the same, though; always the way he left -it. - -Holton went into the bathroom. He should take a bath; he wanted to take -a bath but he was too tired. In the morning; there would be time for -that in the morning. - -He undressed and put on the bottom of his pajamas; he never used the -tops. Then he looked at himself in the mirror for a long time. He did -not see himself in the mirror; he saw no image; rather he was trying to -find an image, an explanation in the glass. But he found nothing and -as he realized his failure the reflection of his face appeared in the -mirror and he looked at it without interest because it was familiar and -because he could see nothing behind it. - -He turned and went into his room. He sat down on the bed and wondered -whether he could sleep or not because his mind was uneasy. Holton -turned out the lights and stretched out on his bed. He would make -himself sleep; he would not think of Carla or of the day ended. - -But his mind was too active now for him to sleep. He tried to hypnotize -himself, tried not to hear the odd words and conversations in his ears. - -He gave up finally. The barriers went down. - -George _Robert_ Lewis’s voice sounded in his head and the clashing -colors of the fairy night club glittered in his head. Lewis’s voice, -flat and nasal, became articulate. - -“I do feel that religion is merely a substitute for the loss of a -personal vision.” His sharp little laugh sounded and the words repeated -themselves over and over again in Robert Holton’s ear: loss of a -personal vision ... a vision ... and elision.... The words became a -refrain. The repetitions went on until Holton felt himself losing -control. He was angry. He made the repetitions stop. - -George _Robert_ Lewis began to talk again. - -“I feel that we can find some way through the morass of life, some way -to be serene and not sterile, not static. I think probably art is the -way for the sensitive. If one has talent one can practise a medium; -without talent one can appreciate. - -“Love? What _does_ that word mean, darling? I’ve tried so awfully -hard to be sincere about it and I’ve had some delicious attempts at -it. Did you ever know Philip?... No, of course you wouldn’t have known. -But as I was saying ... what was I saying?” - -Holton tried consciously to recall what Lewis had said. But when he -tried to hear speeches again he could not. Lewis’s voice began again, a -disembodied voice speaking among colors in a place where all emotions -were in a minor key. - -“I think one must really barricade oneself against the world. One -must retreat. Now don’t tell me it’s cowardly to retreat. Nothing in -this world should be put on such a superficial basis as that. We are -talking on different planes. That’s why communication is so difficult. -Every argument is true and false and can be argued rightly from either -side. To have any agreement those discussing should decide right away -on what plane they want to talk. On a superficial and obvious one -the terms bravery and cowardice and right and wrong have a certain -meaning. On a deeper plane they have different, sometimes opposite, -meanings--sometimes no meaning at all. - -“Well, to get back to my point, on the _deepest_ level of -understanding only instinct and what is natural counts. If one can’t -arrive at love (and so many of us, darling, haven’t the capacity for -it) then one must make a substitute, something to take up the sixty or -seventy years one is alive. That’s where art is important. I understand -business men feel the same way about business, though I’m not at all -sure about that. - -“And then as for all this driveling about going to Rome let me say I do -feel that religion is merely a substitute for the loss of a personal -vision....” - -The sound of Lewis’s voice became louder and continued until finally -the voice became so loud that it ceased to be a voice and became -silence. - -Robert Holton wanted to sleep but there were so many things that had to -be arranged first. - -There was also the dream of the night before to be recalled. He would -think of that later. - -He remembered Jim Trebling. He thought of the days on the boat when -they had talked about the future. - -Against a background of sea he could recall the image of Trebling. -Details were absent and he could not make out the face but he could -hear the voice and he could see the ocean. - -“I hate the idea of being tied down any more than I have to be. You -know, Bob, we’ve lived the most unnatural life there is during this -war. I get the feeling sometimes that we’ve lost a lot of time. I keep -wanting to start over again. - -“I might want to start my own business. I think that’s not so bad: it’s -worse working for somebody else. It’s funny but I’d just as soon never -work. I’d just as soon drift the rest of my life.” - -And Robert Holton had agreed. He agreed in those days. - -“Of course you have to have money to loaf. Maybe if we hadn’t been -raised in such a sound middle-class way we could be bums but we’re too -used to being comfortable. No, we’re too used to being comfortable. -We’ve got to get the money first.” - -Robert Holton had agreed to that, too. He had agreed to everything. -He wanted to be as free as possible. At least he thought he had then. -Because his friend wanted it he felt he did too. He assumed a similar -identity. - -Trebling had more to say and his deep laughing voice continued: “No, -we’re going to have to work a little. Not much, just a little to get -enough ahead. We’re going to be careful though not to get bogged down, -not to get too interested in working. It’s dangerous to get to like it.” - -Holton agreed. - -“Well, Bob, get your mind on the ball. How’re we going to spend that -army money? I think pottery out in California sounds easy.” - -Yes, pottery was easy. Then they separated and they changed. Or perhaps -only he, Holton, had changed. He’d done the easiest thing, he thought. -But it was true that he was entangled now for the rest of his life with -Heywood and Golden; with them or another like them. - -Trebling was entangled, too. Holton was pleased by that as he lay -in the dark. Trebling hadn’t done better. He belonged to the army -now and his chances of beginning a business were slight. He might -try it though; he might be able to live the way he wanted to. Holton -shuddered. It would be awful to miss freedom so narrowly. - -There was a problem, still unsolved: what did he want? - -“You know,” said Trebling’s voice, rising up out of the sea, “you know -you make things tough for yourself. You don’t make up your mind.” - -That wasn’t true, he was always plotting; most of the time, anyway. - -“You try to be like everybody else.” - -He was safest when he was like the rest of them. No, that wasn’t a bad -thing to do; besides, he wasn’t that way really. He was different from -the others in the office. They sensed that. He would probably go a -long way and most of them wouldn’t. Perhaps he was like Heywood. That -wasn’t bad. Heywood was a success. _He_ could be free if he liked. -He had money and he could do whatever he liked. - -Trebling’s voice was fainter now and the sound of the sea behind it was -becoming loud. “Sure we might flop but if we don’t we’re just fine. -I’m not worried; I’m not worried about anything except being stuck in -an office and working for somebody. That’s a lot to worry about, I -suppose, but I’m not bothered. It’s going to work out. You’re a long -time dead, I figure ...” - -The sea came into Holton’s room then and he was whirled on the top of a -wave; for a moment there was nothing but sensation. He opened his eyes -in the dark and the sea was gone. - -Trebling’s voice was lost. - -Holton turned over on his side, troubled, tired, looking for sleep. He -thought of Carla. He had to think of her; there was a decision to be -made. - -She had been quiet when he left her in the apartment. She had not -looked him in the eyes and he had been eager to leave, to escape. - -Now she began to speak again. She had talked to him as he was dressing. - -“I don’t think it would work now. I’d hoped it would; for a long time -I’ve thought about you, about our living together. But you don’t want -to.” - -He had tried to deny this but he could not deny what he felt. - -Her voice came back to him now, a sad thin echo; there was no vibrancy -in the remembered voice. She was whispering in an empty room. - -“You’re going to accept a pattern and I can’t stop you. I can’t bring -out the capacity for love in you. You have it, I know, but I’m not -enough to make you aware....” - -Again the denial and again the sad voice whispering. - -“No, I was wrong to try to change your life. It’s very selfish to do -things for people they don’t want done. I wanted you so much. You’re -the one I’m not supposed to have, though, and that’s sad for me.” - -He had talked to her then and explained that he could not take the -risk of living with her, that he must be within the pattern. But he -could not make any of these things sound convincing. Somehow everything -got confused as he tried to explain himself to her. He tried to tell -her that he did love her but that he couldn’t live with her. She had -listened and when he had finished she had talked again. Now her voice -entered his room; it was a shadow’s voice murmuring in his ear. - -“I don’t think I’d better see you again, Bob. It’s very hard for me but -I’m going to control myself. I am going to forget all the things I had -dreamed about since Florence. I shall find a new object and that’s a -hard thing to do. It’s hard to change but I will.” - -That was true, of course. There was also more. - -She walked with him to the door; she let him go free to his chosen -prison. - -The little voice no longer whispered in his ear and there was nothing -but silence and the beating of his heart, the slow beating of his heart. - -The shade of the window fluttered in the outside wind. Bits of light -gleamed around the shade as it fluttered. Lights from signs and behind -those lights, gray and massive, was the light of early morning. The -room grew colder. - -He got under the blanket and he closed his eyes tight and thought of -nothing: thought of shapes and shadows and lights and colors and all -the things that comprise nothing: he could not sleep. - -Robert Holton made a case for himself as he lay in the occasionally -broken dark. - -He had no gift. He was an average person. Perhaps not quite average, -he had had many advantages. He was among the many, though. He could -not make a world separate. He wished now that he had told Carla that: -he could not make a world separate. He belonged to the world of all -people and it was wrong to retreat from that world. He felt noble as he -thought of this: it was an excellent argument and he wished that he had -used it. - -To have gone to live with Carla would have been a retreat from all -that was right. Right? What had Lewis said about the planes of -understanding? It didn’t matter because Lewis was just another little -fairy. He was perverted in everything. No, it was right not to live -with Carla. He had to do what was expected of him. - -Robert Holton built himself an argument, and as he built his barricades -stronger he was aware of discontent, well-hidden beyond the barricade -but still alive. Duty was important and difficult. Nothing that was -right was easy. Was that true? He was becoming confused. - -He had worn too many faces. He thought of the myriad faces he had been -made to wear. He had been different with every person he’d ever known. -This lack of consistency bothered him. In the army he had been without -care, without ambition; he had been like Trebling. - -With the people in the office he had been cold or warm, as they were. -He had given them what they expected. He had been an actor with too -many rôles to play. Tonight he had played all of them for Carla and -then he had become lost and he had tried to be himself and he found -that he was not enough. - -Every person saw him differently, not entirely because every person was -different, but because he had also intended it to be that way. Now he -did not know himself. He had no way of knowing the person behind the -myriad faces. - -For a moment he felt himself sinking. It was like a dream of falling. -He seemed to be descending into a pit without bottom. There was no -longer a Robert Holton: only a series of masks, cracked now and no -longer usable, no longer convincing. He could never use one again. - -He stopped falling; by an effort of will he stopped himself. Carla was -gone and he was sorry. There was no one else and loneliness now crept -out of the silence. He would have to build the barricades stronger and -higher. He would shut loneliness out. - -The masks were no longer good. Carla had helped him break them. This -was to be a beginning then. He would assume an identity. He would -become a decided person and he would cease to be changed by others. - -Robert Holton would become a successful broker working in an office. - -The decision was made and he felt secure at last. The words and -thoughts that had been in his mind, troubling him, stopped abruptly. He -had a magic of his own and he had used it and it worked. Now he was -free. There would be no more talk of going away to Florence and living -with a pretty woman who loved him and wanted him to be different. He -was resolved at last. It was as simple as that. With great effort he -assumed an identity and freed himself from doubt. - -He stopped twisting. The fever was leaving and he was tired. - -Robert Holton turned over on his stomach and took a deep breath. Soon -he would be asleep. All his questions were solved--except one. There -was still something to be taken care of, something not very important, -but bothersome. He frowned with his eyes shut. Then he opened them and -he looked across the room at the dark outline of the picture frame. - -The dream. - -He hadn’t been able to remember the dream of the night before: the -troubling, unpleasant dream. It had great significance, he knew. - -His only half-conscious mind tried to remember. He kept it purposefully -unawake because in this state, between sensation and memory, most -dreams could be recalled. - -For a long time he wondered. But he could not remember, and he went to -sleep finally, exhausted, and in his mind was hidden the dream of the -night before, the secret dream, the dream of death, of living. He had -almost remembered. - - - - - _Chapter Fourteen_ - - -The next day was cold, colder than the early morning had been. - -Robert Holton took a bath, dressed, and went down in the elevator. He -said good morning to the man at the desk who gave him a letter from -his father. Then he went outside; shivering, he walked to the subway -station. Without buying a paper he went down into the ground and at -Wall Street he came to the surface again. - - * * * * * - -Marjorie Ventusa was glad to see him. The movie she had seen the night -before had been a successful tragedy and she had wept and had been able -to think about herself less tragically afterward. - -She watched him as he came into the restaurant. He went to his usual -table and sat down. After he was seated she picked up a tray and walked -over to him. - -“Good morning, Mr Holton,” she said, and smiled. - -“Hello, Marjorie. How’s everything going?” - -“Fine, just fine. Weather’s getting cold, though.” She noticed that he -had dark circles under his eyes. She tried not to think of what he -might have been doing with the dark-haired girl. - -“Got anything good for breakfast? I feel pretty worn out today.” - -“I guess you were out late last night.” - -He nodded. She couldn’t stop asking now; she couldn’t stop thinking -about Robert Holton and the dark-haired girl. - -“Probably one of those big parties, I guess.” - -He nodded and said, “Sure, one of those big parties.” - -She was not sorry that he lied. “We got some good sausage today,” she -said. - -“I’ll take whatever you got ... and black coffee.” - -“Sure, I’ll go get it.” She walked back to the kitchen. She frowned -when she saw Mrs Merrin looking at her. She had to look serious even -though she was happy. He had at least not wanted to tell her that he -was out with another girl. She had made so many images of Holton and -herself that she accepted an imagined closeness as real. He had not -really been unfaithful this time. - -She called out his order to the cook and then she fixed her snood in -the steamy mirror. She had bought a dark snood and she noticed now that -it made her hair look darker, look rather mysterious. It felt good to -look mysterious. - -His breakfast was ready and she took it out to him. - -She made herself busy at the next table and she talked to him as she -worked. - -“You like going out to them big parties?” - -“Not so much.” - -“Why do you go?” - -“Business, I guess. It’s good to see all the big shots.” - -“You’re right there; you’re sure right there.” - -“What’s that you got on your head?” - -She giggled self-consciously and wished that she didn’t get so silly -when she was pleased. “Just a snood. I’ve had it such a long time.” -This was not true. - -“Looks nice,” said Holton seriously, biting into a piece of bread. - -“Thank you; I like it.” No, that was wrong, it sounded defiant and she -didn’t mean that. She added in a much softer voice, “I’m glad you like -it.” - -He ate then and she put dirty dishes on her tray. Then he said, -“When’re you going to Italy with me?” - -She laughed. “I got some previous engagements before. Any other time, -though.” - -“I’m told it’s nice there,” said Holton and she noticed that he looked -sad and she was happy to think that he was a little concerned about -her, that he was almost serious when he talked about Italy. - -“Maybe we’ll go some other time,” she said. - -“Sure,” said Holton, “maybe we’ll go some other time.” He drank his -coffee. He looked at his watch. “Lord, I’m late,” he said. He paid her -quickly. “See you at lunch.” - -“See you at lunch, Mr Holton.” She watched him go out the door and into -the crowded street. - -She cleared his table. Then she went gaily back to the kitchen, her -hair bobbing mysteriously in its snood. She was glad she hadn’t told -him she’d seen him in Times Square. - - * * * * * - -“Late, aren’t you?” asked Caroline when Holton came into the office. -She knew he was late but she was in a mood of violent humor; she was -always this way when she was happy and she was happy today because of -Trebling. - -“Not very,” said Holton and he went to his desk. Mr Murphy hadn’t come -in yet and he was safe. Caroline sat for a moment enjoying the pale -white sunlight that shone across her desk. Then she got up and came -over to Holton’s desk. - -She was awkward now. She wanted to find out things but she didn’t want -to be subtle. She tried anyway. “I was out with Jim last night,” she -began. - -“How do you like him?” Holton wasn’t paying much attention to her and -this was irritating. He was busy putting books on his desk. She looked -around to see if anyone was watching. Kuppelton was out of the room and -no one else appeared interested. She sat down on his desk. - -“I like him quite a bit,” she said. - -He looked at her. “Good,” he said. “Jim’s a fine fellow. You’ll have -fun playing around with him.” - -“I suppose I will.” - -“Just don’t take him too seriously, though. He’s sort of an expert with -girls.” How shallow Holton was, thought Caroline. “Just play with him -and you’ll be all right. A lot of girls’ve liked him.” - -“I can understand that. He’s really serious about starting something -himself. At least he doesn’t want to work for somebody like everybody -else wants.” She wanted this to be sharp; she didn’t care if it hurt or -not. - -“That’s a good thing to want,” said Holton. How dull he is, thought -Caroline, comparing him unfavorably with Jim Trebling. - -There was nothing she wanted to know from Holton. “How was your society -party?” she asked. - -“It was O.K.,” said Holton. “It was interesting.” - -I’ll bet, thought Caroline. She was impatient of others now that she -knew she was appreciated, knew that she was to see Trebling that night. -“Well, don’t work too hard,” said Caroline, getting up from the desk. -“By the way, I’m going out with Jim tonight.” - -“Better be careful,” said Holton seriously. - -She laughed. “I’m always careful; didn’t you know that?” - - * * * * * - -Heywood was feeling well. He had managed to get home early the night -before. That was one advantage in going to the theater alone: you -didn’t have to go some place afterward and get drunk. - -He sat contentedly in the mahogany twilight of his large office, -looking at a photograph of himself. There was no particular work to be -done. Golden hadn’t bothered him yet and it would be almost an hour -before he had his first conference. - -A buzz came out of the box on his desk. He pressed a button. - -“Mr Murphy to see you,” said his secretary, concealed in the box. - -“Send him in.” There was something he had to tell Murphy. Something to -do with the party. The young man, Robert Holton: he was to do something -for him. - -“Good morning, Murphy.” Mr Heywood did not bother to rise. - -“Morning, Mr Heywood,” said Murphy and Heywood wished his voice wasn’t -so loud. It jarred the twilight mood of the office. - -“I’ve got some statistics here, the ones on Steel stocks; the ones -showing fluctuation and ...” - -“Ah, yes, Murphy, that’s very good of you to have them for me so -promptly. I have another matter to discuss....” Heywood paused to make -sure that Murphy was listening to him carefully. “This boy, Holton,” -he went on, “I think he might do better dealing with the public, don’t -you?” - -“Yes,” said Murphy judiciously, “yes, I think that might be a good -place for him. You saw him last night?” - -“What? Oh, yes, I saw him last night. I had a pleasant talk with him. -He’s a clever young man, I think.” - -“Yes, he’s got a good head on his shoulders,” agreed Murphy. - -“You will tell him, won’t you, about his promotion and, ah, transfer?” - -“Certainly. He’ll be glad to hear this. I’ll be glad to tell him. And, -by the way, there’s another matter in my section....” - -“And what is that?” asked Heywood gently, trying not to yawn. - -“Well, we’ve a man named Kuppelton who’s always done a good job and I -think he should get the usual promotion in that department. The one we -had in mind for Holton.” - -Heywood sighed. “Certainly, Murphy; I rely, as always, on your -recommendation in these cases.” - -“Thank you....” They talked then of nothing that interested Mr Heywood. -Finally Murphy left. - -Mr Heywood yawned and stretched. He was rested and almost happy. He -would make good decisions today. He sat back in his chair and looked at -the photograph of himself. He would divorce his wife and go to South -America for a year. Or perhaps he wouldn’t divorce his wife but take -her to South America instead. It was strange but he looked younger now -than he did when the photograph was taken several years before. - - * * * * * - -When Kuppelton heard the news his first impulse was to call his mother -immediately on the phone and tell her all about it. He decided not to, -though, because, after all, it wasn’t completely official. He did talk -to Holton about it. - -“Congratulations,” he said as he came over to Holton’s desk. Mr Murphy -had already gone to lunch and it was safe to talk. - -“Thanks,” said Holton, smiling. He didn’t seem as happy as Kuppelton -expected him to be. - -“Caroline just told me that Mr Murphy told you you were going to be -a customers’ man and I’m certainly glad to see you’re getting ahead. -I always thought that this job would be too small to hold you.” He -paused. “When do you think you’ll move out?” he asked, looking away. - -“The first of next week probably.” Holton chuckled. “I guess you’ll be -sorry to see me leave.” - -Kuppelton recognized the sarcasm but he didn’t care. “Sure I’m sorry. -Of course, it’s good news, in a way, for me.” - -“It is at that.” - -“You sure got a good deal. Well, you can’t beat City Hall I always say.” - -“You always say that?” - -“What? Well, no, but.... What I meant was....” - -Robert Holton only laughed. - -Kuppelton tried to talk some more with him but it was very difficult; -they never had liked each other, anyway. Kuppelton left him to go to -lunch. - -He was jubilant but dignified as he put on his coat and hat and walked -down the corridor. He would have a lot of news to tell his mother -tonight. Everything had worked out nicely and soon he would be making -more money and everyone he knew was happy. - -*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN A YELLOW WOOD *** - -Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will -be renamed. - -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the -United States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following -the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use -of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for -copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very -easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation -of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project -Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may -do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected -by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark -license, especially commercial redistribution. - -START: FULL LICENSE - -THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK - -To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. - -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the -person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph -1.E.8. - -1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when -you share it without charge with others. - -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country other than the United States. - -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and - most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no - restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it - under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this - eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the - United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where - you are located before using this eBook. - -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. - -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. - -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg-tm License. - -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format -other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain -Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -provided that: - -* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - -* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm - works. - -* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - -* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. - -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of -the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set -forth in Section 3 below. - -1.F. - -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. - -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. - -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. - -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. - -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm - -Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at -www.gutenberg.org - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, -Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up -to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website -and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation - -Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without -widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. - -Most people start at our website which has the main PG search -facility: www.gutenberg.org - -This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. diff --git a/old/66940-0.zip b/old/66940-0.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 8971dcf..0000000 --- a/old/66940-0.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/66940-h.zip b/old/66940-h.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ab216c2..0000000 --- a/old/66940-h.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/66940-h/66940-h.htm b/old/66940-h/66940-h.htm deleted file mode 100644 index f070203..0000000 --- a/old/66940-h/66940-h.htm +++ /dev/null @@ -1,9216 +0,0 @@ -<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" - "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> -<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> - <head> - <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" /> - <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" /> - <title> - In a Yellow Wood, by Gore Vidal—A Project Gutenberg eBook - </title> - <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" /> - <style type="text/css"> - -body { - margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%; -} - - h1,h2 { - text-align: center; /* all headings centered */ - clear: both; font-weight: normal; margin-top: 4em; -} - -p { - margin-top: .51em; - text-align: justify; - margin-bottom: .49em; -} - -.p1 {margin-top: 1em;} -.p2 {margin-top: 2em;} -.p4 {margin-top: 4em;} -.p66 {margin-top: 6em; margin-bottom: 6em; } -.p6 {margin-top: 6em; } -.p6b {margin-bottom: 6em; } - -.indent10 {margin-left: 10%; } - -.half-title -{ - margin-top: 6em; - text-align: center; - font-size: 140%; - margin-bottom: 6em; -} - -.small1 {font-size: 90%; } -.big2 {font-size: 130%; } -.big3 {font-size: 140%; } - - -hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;} - -@media print { hr.tb {display: none; visibility: hidden;} } - - - -div.chapter {page-break-before: always;} -h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;} - - - -table.autotable { - margin-left: 25%; - margin-right: 25%; - width: 50%; -} - -table.autotable { border-collapse: collapse; } -table.autotable td, -table.autotable th { padding: 4px; } - -.tdl {text-align: left;} -.tdr {text-align: right;} -.tdc {text-align: center;} - -.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */ - visibility: hidden; - position: absolute; - left: 92%; - font-size: smaller; - text-align: right; - font-style: normal; - font-weight: normal; - font-variant: normal; -} /* page numbers */ - -.center {text-align: center;} - -.right {text-align: right;} - -.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;} - - -.box { - width: 40%; - margin-right: 30%; - margin-left: 30%; - margin-bottom: 12em; - margin-top: 1em; - } - -.box2 { - width: 30%; - margin-right: 30%; - margin-left: 40%; - margin-bottom: 12em; - margin-top: 1em; - } - -.box3 { - width: 40%; - margin-right: 20%; - margin-left: 40%; - margin-bottom: 12em; - margin-top: 1em; - } - -/* Images */ - -img { - max-width: 100%; - height: auto; -} -img.w100 {width: 100%;} - - -.figcenter { - margin-bottom: auto; - margin-right: auto; - margin-left: auto; - margin-top: 6em; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 100%; -} - - - -/* Transcriber's notes */ - .tnote {border: dashed 1px; margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%;padding-bottom: .5em; padding-top: .5em; - padding-left: .5em; padding-right: .5em; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 4em; } - -/* Illustration classes */ -.illowp100 {width: 100%;} -.illowp52 {width: 52%;} -.x-ebookmaker .illowp52 {width: 100%;} -.illowp73 {width: 73%;} -.x-ebookmaker .illowp73 {width: 100%;} - - </style> - </head> -<body> - -<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of In a Yellow Wood, by Gore Vidal</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and -most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms -of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online -at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you -are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the -country where you are located before using this eBook. -</div> - -<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: In a Yellow Wood</p> - -<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Gore Vidal</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: December 13, 2021 [eBook #66940]</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Andrés V. Galia, Sally Dunne, Joyce, Inatale and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)</div> - -<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN A YELLOW WOOD ***</div> - -<div class="figcenter illowp52" id="cover" style="max-width: 66.1875em;"> - <img class="w100" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="cover" /> -</div> - - - -<div class="chapter"> -<div class="tnote"> - - <p class="center p4 big2">TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES</p> - -<p>In the plain text version words in Italics are denoted by _underscores_.</p> - -<p>The book cover was modified by the transcriber and has been added to -the public domain.</p> - -<p>A number of words in this book have both hyphenated and non-hyphenated -variants. For the words with both variants present the one more used -has been kept.</p> - -<p>Obvious punctuation and other printing errors have been corrected.</p> - -<p>The Table of Contents was added by the transcriber.</p> -</div> -</div> - -<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p class="half-title">IN A YELLOW WOOD</p> -</div> - - - - -<div class="chapter"> -<div class="box2 big2"> -<p><span class="smcap">Novels by</span> <em>Gore Vidal</em></p> - - - -<p class="p4" style="padding-left: 1em;">IN A YELLOW WOOD</p> -<p style="padding-left: 1em;">WILLIWAW</p> -</div> -</div> - -<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h1>IN A YELLOW WOOD</h1> - -</div> - -<p class="p4 center"><big>By</big></p> - -<p class="center big3 p6b">GORE VIDAL</p> - -<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="title_p_ilo" style="max-width: 36.875em;"> - <img class="w100" src="images/title_p_ilo.jpg" alt="ilotp" /> -</div> - -<p class="center p2">1947<br /> - -<big>E. P. DUTTON & COMPANY, INC.</big><br /> - -NEW YORK</p> - - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p class="center p2"><em>Copyright, 1947, by E. P. Dutton & Co., Inc.</em><br /> -<em>All rights reserved. Printed in the U.S.A.</em></p> - </div> - -<div class="figcenter illowp73" id="verso_ilo" style="max-width: 3em;"> - <img class="w100" src="images/verso_ilo.jpg" alt="versoilo" /> -</div> - -<p class="center p1"><small>FIRST EDITION</small></p> - -<div class="box"> -<p><span class="smcap">No Part</span> <em>of this book may be reproduced -in any form without permission in writing -from the publisher, except by a reviewer -who wishes to quote brief passages in connection -with a review written for inclusion in -magazine or newspaper or radio broadcast.</em></p> -</div> - -<p class="center small1"><em>American Book-Stratford Press, Inc., New York</em></p> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">[Pg 1]</span></p> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_ii">[Pg ii]</span></p> -<p class="center p66"><em>For Anais Nin</em></p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p class="center p66"><em>All of the characters, all of the events and -most of the places in this book are fictitious.</em></p> -</div> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_iii">[Pg iii]</span></p> -</div> - -<p class="p4 center big2">CONTENT</p> - -<table class="autotable" summary="cont"> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"> </td> -<td class="tdr">Pg.</td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl">1 <small>DAY</small></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_7">7</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter One</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_9">9</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Two</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_18">18</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Three</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_31">31</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Four</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_46">46</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Five</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_59">59</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Six</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_73">73</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Seven</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_86">86</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Eight</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_103">103</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl">2 <small>NIGHT</small></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_113">113</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Nine</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_115">115</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Ten</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_143">143</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Eleven</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_166">166</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Twelve</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_180">180</a> </td> -</tr> - - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl">3 <small>THE YELLOW WOOD</small></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_195">195</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Thirteen</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_197">197</a> </td> -</tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Chapter Fourteen</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_209">209</a> </td> -</tr> -</table> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[Pg 7]</span></p> -</div> - -<p class="half-title">1<br /> -DAY</p> - - - -<div class="chapter"> -<div class="box3"> -<p class="p6 indent10"><em>Two roads diverged in a yellow wood,<br /> -And sorry I could not travel both<br /> -And be one traveller.</em>...</p> - -<p class="right" style="padding-right: 3em; ">—<span class="smcap">Frost</span></p> -</div> -</div> - -<p class="p6 small1">From <em>Collected Poems</em> by Robert Frost. Copyright, 1930, 1939, by Henry Holt and -Company, Inc. Copyright, 1936, by Robert Frost.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter One</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">Robert Holton removed several dark hairs from his comb -and wondered if his hairline was receding. He squinted for -a moment at himself in the mirror and decided that he was -not losing his hair, not yet anyway.</p> - -<p>Then he sat down on the edge of the bed and put on his -shoes. He started to tie the laces of the left shoe when he -began to think of his dream. He had many dreams: of flying -through the air, of walking in empty rooms, of all the standard -things that psychiatrists like to hear about. Unfortunately, -in the morning he could seldom recall what he had -dreamed the night before. He would remember the sensation -of the dream but nothing else. He would remember if it had -been good or bad but that was all. Last night his dream had -been unpleasant and something in the room had suddenly -recalled it to him.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton frowned and tried to remember. Was it the -carpet? He had looked at the carpet while tying his shoe. -He looked at it now. The carpet was dusty and uninteresting. -It was a solid brown color; the same carpet that covered -the floor of every hotel room in New York. No, the carpet -was not connected with his dream.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[Pg 10]</span></p> - -<p>He had been standing at the dresser while combing his -hair. He looked at the dresser: plain dull wood with dull -scroll work about the mirror. On the dresser was a dingy -white cloth and on the cloth were a pair of brushes, his -wallet, and a collection of small things. Nothing suggested -an unpleasant dream.</p> - -<p>The morning light glowed yellowly through the window -shade. There was a band of brighter light between the bottom -of the shade and the window sill and here the daylight -shone into the square room where Robert Holton lived. He -looked at the sunlight a moment and forgot his dream.</p> - -<p>He glanced at his watch: fifteen minutes to eight. He had -to be at the office at eight-thirty. Quickly he tied his shoes -and got to his feet. He searched through the bureau drawers -for a shirt. He found a white one and put it on. Before the -war he had worn colored shirts but now plain white ones -seemed more sound. And then it was a good idea not to be -too vivid when you worked for a brokerage house.</p> - -<p>His tie was pretty, though. It was a striped one, blue and -white. Not a dark sullen blue but a light and casual blue. As -he knotted his tie in front of the mirror he noticed his face -was pale. He was always pale in the morning, of course; still, -he looked unhealthy in the city. This morning he looked -paler than usual. There were no pouches under his eyes, -though, and he was glad of that. Robert Holton looked -younger than twenty-six. His features were boyish and undistinguished -and certain women had said that he was handsome. -Robert Holton had looked well in uniform.</p> - -<p>He put on his trousers and tightened the belt. Robert Holton, -though he had never been much of an athlete, had a -good build. Sitting at desks, however, would ruin it sooner<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[Pg 11]</span> -or later and the thought made him sad. There was nothing -he could do, of course, for he would always sit at desks.</p> - -<p>He picked up his coat from the chair where he had hung -it the night before and put it on. He posed for a moment in -front of the mirror. Perhaps he was not handsome but he -was nicer looking than a great many people and it is better -to be nicer looking than a great many people than to be unusually -handsome.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton turned from the window and went into the -bathroom. His watch was on the tile floor beside the bathtub -where he had left it the night before. He set the watch -by his alarm clock.</p> - -<p>Again he tried to recall his dream. On the wall there was -a picture of some apples on a table. A Frenchman had -painted the picture twenty years before. It had been reproduced -and the hotel had bought several copies because they -were cheap and because the manager’s wife had thought the -picture pleasant. Robert Holton liked the picture. It seemed -to suggest his dream to him more than anything else in the -room. He studied the picture but he could not remember -the dream. The picture only made him uneasy. He looked -away.</p> - -<p>He went to the closet and took out his trench coat. He -had bought it when he became a lieutenant three years -before.</p> - -<p>It was almost eight o’clock now. Robert Holton opened -the door of his room and stepped out into the corridor.</p> - -<p>There was a difference in smell. The corridor smelled old -and dusty as though no one had walked down it in years. -Robert Holton in the one year he had lived in this hotel had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[Pg 12]</span> -never seen anyone else come out of a room. Sometimes he -wondered if he might not be the only person living on this -floor, or in this hotel, or in the world.</p> - -<p>The ceiling of the corridor was high and he enjoyed walking -under such a high ceiling. He walked to the elevator and -pressed the button marked “Down.”</p> - -<p>There was a large pot filled with white sand beside the -elevator door. He had always wanted to put something into -that white sand. A cigarette butt, anything at all to spoil the -white smooth surface. One day he would spit on the sand; -he made himself that promise.</p> - -<p>There was a clatter as the elevator went past his floor. -That always happened. He pushed the button angrily.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton tried to recall what he was supposed to do -that day at the office. He could think of nothing very important -that had to be done. In the afternoon he was supposed -to go to a cocktail party and he looked forward to that. Mrs -Raymond Stevanson was giving it and she was a very proper -person to know. She had been a friend of his mother’s and -she had been nice to Robert Holton when his mother had -died several years earlier. His father thought Mrs Raymond -Stevanson was stupid but his father was often harsh and she -was, after all, important socially. When one was starting out -in the brokerage business contacts were important. He began -to map his day in detail.</p> - -<p>There was a loud rattling and the elevator stopped at his -floor. The door opened and Robert Holton stepped into the -elevator.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Mr Holton,” said the elevator boy, a -young man in his middle teens.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Joe. What kind of a day is it?”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</span></p> - -<p>“Wonderful out. Real warm for this time of year. Real -Indian summer outside. Real nice weather.”</p> - -<p>“That’s fine,” said Robert Holton, glad to hear that the -weather was good.</p> - -<p>“Any news on the market?” asked Joe, stopping at the -seventh floor.</p> - -<p>“Nothing new.” A middle-aged man, tall and thin, came -into the elevator. Robert Holton had seen him almost every -day for a year but they never spoke. The middle-aged man -wore a black shiny topcoat and he carried a large leather -brief case in which the outlines of an apple could be seen.</p> - -<p>“I guess there’s nothing for me to put my money in, I -guess,” said Joe.</p> - -<p>“I shouldn’t advise buying now,” said Robert Holton. It -was a daily joke of theirs. Joe would pretend he had money -to invest and wanted advice.</p> - -<p>They stopped at the second floor and another tall thin -man in a shiny black overcoat got into the elevator. This man -had a red face, though, and the other man had a white face. -Neither of them ever spoke. Robert Holton often wondered -what they did for a living, whether they had wives or not.</p> - -<p>“Well, here we are,” said Joe, opening the door. “We made -it all right this time.”</p> - -<p>“We certainly did.” Robert Holton followed the two older -men out of the elevator and into the lobby.</p> - -<p>The lobby was high-ceilinged and old-fashioned. Tropical -bushes grew in buckets and a gray chandelier was suspended -from the center of the ceiling. At the desk sat a faded little -woman.</p> - -<p>She nodded to Robert Holton and he nodded to her. They -never spoke. He picked up a newspaper from the desk,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</span> -looked at his mail box to see if he might have overlooked -something the night before. Finding nothing, he put three -cents in a saucer beside the newspapers.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton went outside. The morning was clear and -cool. There was a depth, a golden depth in the air. There -was no time of the year as pleasant as autumn, thought Robert -Holton; unless it was spring. He liked spring, too.</p> - -<p>He walked down the not yet busy side street where he -lived. His footsteps sounded sharp and loud on the pavement. -The brownstone houses that lined the street seemed -large and significant this morning. Perhaps it was because -of the clearness of the day. He noticed details in the stone -that he had never noticed before. For instance, one of the -houses was built of oddly pitted stone. He had seen another -place built of pitted stone. He thought a moment: Notre -Dame, the cathedral in Paris. During the war he had seen -it. He had even walked up a great many winding steps to -get to the top. At the top he had noticed the pitted stone -which had proved, somehow or other, that the building was -very old.</p> - -<p>Sleepy children were coming out of the houses. They -walked down the street to the bus stop, schoolbooks under -their arms. There was a smell of bacon and coffee in the air -and Robert Holton’s stomach contracted hungrily.</p> - -<p>At the end of the street was the subway station. Every -morning he disappeared down it and every evening he came -up out of it. He spent a lot of time in the subway.</p> - -<p>He went down the dirty cement steps. He put a nickel -into the turnstile and walked out onto the cement platform. -Twenty or thirty men and women stood on the platform -with him, waiting for the downtown train.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</span></p> - -<p>The express went crashing by them. The noise of these -trains was terrific. After it had passed he had to yawn several -times to clear the deafness from his ears. Then the local -stopped and he got aboard.</p> - -<p>He sat next to a stout man who lived in his hotel. Occasionally -they would speak.</p> - -<p>“How’s the market?” asked the fat man, deciding not to -read his paper.</p> - -<p>“The market’s doing fine, should go up.”</p> - -<p>“Well, that sure is good news. I’ve a little bit that I’d like -to put in it. I’d like to put it in something safe, though. You -know of something safe? Something that’s going to go way -up, say?”</p> - -<p>“Well, that’s a hard question. It’s very hard to tell just -yet. Sugar’s doing well,” said Robert Holton. He always said -the same things to these questions. No one cared what he said. -They would repeat it to acquaintances, saying that a friend -of theirs in Wall Street had advised them to buy sugar but -they didn’t feel it was such a good buy at this time.</p> - -<p>“You was in the army, weren’t you?” asked the stout man -suddenly.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton nodded.</p> - -<p>“Been out long?”</p> - -<p>“Over a year.”</p> - -<p>“I’ll bet you was glad to get out. To get away from all -those rules and things, those restrictions. I was in the army -in the last war. I guess the one before last, you’d call it now. -I was sure glad to get out.”</p> - -<p>“Everyone is,” said Robert Holton and he thought of the -things that he had done in London. He had liked London.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</span></p> - -<p>“You went to college, didn’t you?” asked the stout man; -he was trying to clear up something in his mind.</p> - -<p>“That’s right.”</p> - -<p>“That’s what I thought. Me, I never had the opportunity. -I had to go to work,” said the stout man with pride. “I had -to work when I was a youngster. I never went to college.”</p> - -<p>“It’s a good experience,” said Robert Holton, wishing the -man would read his paper and stop asking questions. The -train went around a corner noisily; blue electric sparks sparkled -outside the window. Then the train straightened out -again.</p> - -<p>“I’m in the grocery business,” said the stout man.</p> - -<p>“I know,” said Robert Holton, “we’ve talked about that -before.”</p> - -<p>“I started right in at the bottom,” said the stout man.</p> - -<p>“That’s the best place to start,” said Robert Holton, feeling -that there was no answer to this. He was wrong.</p> - -<p>“Well, I don’t know. It’s hard to say. How <em>did</em> you like the -army?”</p> - -<p>“It wasn’t bad.”</p> - -<p>“It wasn’t good neither. I never got overseas last time, I -mean time before last, but we had it rough in training.”</p> - -<p>“I can imagine.” Robert Holton looked away and the stout -man stopped talking. Robert Holton looked at the upper -moulding of the car to see if there were any new advertisements. -There weren’t any. His special favorite, a girl advertising -beer, was behind him and he couldn’t see it. Gloomily -he examined a fat red child devouring a piece of bread. This -was the advertisement he liked least. He looked away.</p> - -<p>A woman with a small child sat across from him, directly -under the bread advertisement. The woman was heavy with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</span> -a roll of flesh around her middle; she wore a tight black -dress. The child with her was about the age of the one in -the picture. This child was pale, though, pale and fat.</p> - -<p>A Negro was asleep next to the woman and child. He was -long and thin and his bare ankles and wrists looked like -brown wood. Two Jewish secretaries with yellow hair talked -brightly together. They were young women and wore gaily -colored clothes and their plump legs were hairless and pink.</p> - -<p>An old woman with gray hair and deep lines in her face -looked at the two young women and seemed to hate them in -a secret womanly manner. Several young boys, wearing discarded -army clothing, sat in a corner, their schoolbooks beside -them. They talked in hoarse changing voices. Robert -Holton could not hear what they were saying but their voices -seemed to speak of sexual things.</p> - -<p>The train stopped at a station and the stout man left. Two -more stops and Robert Holton would get off.</p> - -<p>The car was beginning to empty. Only the two girls were -opposite him. They still talked brightly and laughed too -loudly, conscious that he was watching them.</p> - -<p>The train made its two stops and the girls got off. No one -sat opposite him now. He studied the advertisements.</p> - -<p>Then his stop was made. Quickly he got up, his trench coat -under his arm. He went out onto the platform and before -the train left he looked in again through the window. Slightly -to the right of where he had been sitting was the picture of -the girl advertising beer. He looked at her until the train -pulled out.</p> - -<p>When the train was gone he turned and walked up the -dirty cement steps and as he walked he wished that he had -a girl as pretty as the one who advertised beer.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Two</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">“Hurry up, Marjorie. Let’s get those tables cleaned up.”</p> - -<p>“Yes,” said Marjorie Ventusa, “yes, Mrs Merrin, I certainly -will,” she spoke sweetly, hoping that Mrs Merrin would get -the sarcasm in her voice but Mrs Merrin was already at the -other end of the restaurant talking to another waitress.</p> - -<p>Marjorie pushed her natural blonde hair out of her eyes. -She was never able to keep it in order; perhaps she should -have it cut shorter, wear a snood perhaps. Mrs Merrin was -watching her, she noticed. Quickly Marjorie began to put -the dirty dishes on her tray.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>People were coming in and out of the restaurant. It got a -lot of the less wealthy Wall Street trade. Clerks and secretaries -and stenographers had breakfast and lunch here and -the lonelier ones had supper here. When her tray was full -she went back to the kitchen.</p> - -<p>On the other side of the swinging doors the cooks, wearing -fairly clean aprons and white hats, were cooking at ranges. -There was always steam and the smell of soap in the air. -People shouted at one another and it was like a war. Marjorie -hated the kitchen. The front part of the restaurant was -all right. She had been a waitress off and on for fifteen years<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</span> -and she didn’t mind noisy people and the clattering of dishes.</p> - -<p>She put some glasses of water on her tray before she left -the kitchen. Then Marjorie Ventusa gave the swinging door -a kick and walked back into the dining room. She had five -tables to take care of.</p> - -<p>Two women were seated at the table she had just cleared. -She could tell from the backs of their heads that they were -secretaries and older women; this meant they would be very -particular and leave a ten-cent tip for both of them.</p> - -<p>“Good morning,” said Marjorie Ventusa, smiling brightly -and thinking of nothing at all. She put the water glasses on -the table. The two women were frowning at their menus.</p> - -<p>“How much extra is a large orange juice?” asked one.</p> - -<p>“It’s ten cents more if you take it with the breakfast.”</p> - -<p>“All right, I’ll take a double orange juice, some toast and -coffee. Do you have any marmalade?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, ma’am.”</p> - -<p>“Well, bring some of that, too.”</p> - -<p>The other woman said, “The same for me.” Marjorie Ventusa -picked up their menus. As she was turning to go she -saw Robert Holton come into the restaurant and she was -suddenly happy. She smiled at him and he, seeing her, -smiled back. She pointed to one of her tables and he sat -down at it. Quickly she went back to the kitchen to give her -orders. She pushed her hair back from her face and promised -herself that she would get a snood the next day.</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa liked Robert Holton. For a year he had -been coming into the restaurant; he always spoke pleasantly -to her and they would joke together. She had never seen him -anywhere except in the restaurant. She knew that he never -really noticed her but she was always glad to see him and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</span> -she was delighted when he talked to her and smiled at her; -his smile was pleasant and he had nice teeth. She thought -him handsome.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Mr Holton,” she said, putting a glass of -water and some silverware on his table.</p> - -<p>“How’re you today, Marjorie? You look perfect.”</p> - -<p>“Sure, sure, I do; I’m a real beauty.” Marjorie always felt -awkward with him, as though she couldn’t think of the right -words to say. She was older than he was, too. Marjorie was -thirty-seven; she had known a lot of men and still she was -awkward with him.</p> - -<p>“What you going to have this morning?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“Well....” He drawled the word as he looked at the -menu and she had a strong urge to touch the short dark -hairs on the back of his neck. She tried to think of some -excuse to do so. Then she was angry with herself for having -thought of such a thing.</p> - -<p>“I guess I’ll have some orange juice and scrambled eggs -and bacon.”</p> - -<p>“Is that all you going to eat? Why, how you ever going to -get big and strong?”</p> - -<p>He laughed. “Not sitting at a desk and eating your cooking.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, is that so?” Marjorie Ventusa walked slowly back to -the kitchen. She felt strained as she walked for she could -feel he was watching her. She wished suddenly that her hips -weren’t so big and that her legs were slimmer.</p> - -<p>She shouted his order to the cooks, then she took the two -secretaries’ breakfasts out to them. They complained bitterly -about the size of the orange juice and one said that it was -too sour and the other said that there were seeds in it.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</span></p> - -<p>“I’m sorry,” said Marjorie, “would you like something -else?”</p> - -<p>They said they would not and acted as if she had grown -the oranges badly and had put seeds in the juice. One of her -other tables was full now and she went and took their order.</p> - -<p>Out in the kitchen his breakfast was ready and she put it -on her tray. There were some seeds in the orange juice which -she carefully removed with a spoon.</p> - -<p>He was reading his paper when she came back. He didn’t -look up as she arranged the dishes on his table.</p> - -<p>“Well, here’s your breakfast,” she said. “You better eat it -while it’s hot.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, sure.” Robert Holton folded his paper and laid it on -the table. She watched him as he drank the orange juice.</p> - -<p>“Sour, isn’t it?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“A little bit, maybe.”</p> - -<p>“I’m glad you’re not going to complain. The rest, they all -complain all the time. I get so tired sometimes I could get -sick; I get so tired of listening to them.”</p> - -<p>“Just don’t take them seriously. Everybody feels awful in -the morning. You’ve just been awake longer and you feel -better than they do, that’s all.”</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa laughed admiringly. “I wouldn’t have -ever thought of that,” she said. “You might be right. Anyway -a girl gets pretty tired of being shouted at all the time like -it’s her fault.”</p> - -<p>“Well, just relax. I like the food and the service.”</p> - -<p>“Thank you,” she said, trying to sound elegant and funny -at the same time.</p> - -<p>“When you going to go out dancing with me?” Robert<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</span> -Holton asked, sawing a piece of bacon in half with a blunt -knife.</p> - -<p>“I’m pretty busy,” she said; she always said that when he -asked her that question. He would say it because he thought -it was funny and she would answer him as though she thought -it was funny too. She wished that he meant it now. She had -always wished that he meant it. “I’m pretty busy,” she said. -“I got so many people asking to go out with me. You’d have -to wait couple of weeks, maybe.”</p> - -<p>“I can wait,” he said, smiling at her; smiling the way he -would to a child, she thought suddenly. She watched him -eat.</p> - -<p>“Marjorie,” said a voice behind her.</p> - -<p>“Yes, Mrs Merrin, I’m coming. I’ll be right with you. I was -just cleaning this table.”</p> - -<p>Mrs Merrin was tall and stout with a wide loose mouth -which she could make look stern and harsh when she wanted -to. She made it look that way now.</p> - -<p>“Marjorie,” she said in a low voice, “you stop your hanging -around and talking to the customers. I tell you I won’t -stand for it.”</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry, Mrs Merrin. I was just cleaning the table.” -Mrs Merrin smiled warmly at Robert Holton and walked -away.</p> - -<p>“She’s an awful bitch,” said Marjorie Ventusa.</p> - -<p>“What did she say?” asked Robert Holton. “I didn’t hear -her.”</p> - -<p>“She was just running off at the mouth, that’s all. She -thought I was talking too much to you.”</p> - -<p>One of her tables called for a check and she walked over -quickly and put their used plates on her tray. Then she went<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</span> -back to the kitchen. More orders were ready for her. She -loaded her tray and went back to work.</p> - -<p>As she worked she watched Robert Holton. It was twenty -minutes past eight and she knew that he had to be at his -office at eight-thirty. She hoped that he would stay as long -as possible. His office was only a block away and he would -be able to stay until eight-thirty. He ate slowly, she knew, -and he would read his paper as he ate.</p> - -<p>She hurried back to the kitchen. Two waitresses were talking -and laughing together in a corner. They were young and -pretty and would probably marry in another year and never -work again; in another year Marjorie Ventusa would still be -waiting on tables.</p> - -<p>She stopped in front of the mirror behind the swinging -doors. Mrs Merrin always said that neatness was an important -thing.</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa rubbed the kitchen steam from the mirror. -Her hair was back in her face again. She pushed it -viciously out of her eyes. She hated its color. It was pale -blonde, a real pale blonde. But because she was getting -older and because she was part Italian everyone thought -that she dyed her hair. She wondered if perhaps she -shouldn’t have it colored black. Her eyebrows were dark, -thin and dark, and that made the color of her hair look even -more suspicious.</p> - -<p>A sailor she had seen several times during the war had told -her that she had a beautiful figure and she had tried to believe -him. She was too heavy, though. Well, she hadn’t been -heavy at that time. At least not quite so heavy as she was -now. She wondered what kind of women Robert Holton -liked.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</span></p> - -<p>“Marjorie,” said Mrs Merrin. That was all Mrs Merrin said -as she walked by. Marjorie Ventusa was glad. One day she -would lose her temper and get fired.</p> - -<p>The mirror had steamed up again. She took her tray and -went out into the dining room. More customers had come. -She put glasses of water and silverware on their tables and -took their orders and gave them instructions in how to order -and how to avoid paying extra for what they wanted.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton was halfway through his breakfast. She -looked at the clock over the kitchen doors. It was twenty-seven -minutes after eight o’clock. She would work very hard -now to get her orders taken care of and then she would have -a few minutes to talk to him before he left. She usually -couldn’t talk to him at lunch because he was always with -someone else.</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa traveled quickly back and forth from -kitchen to dining room and back again. Her hair was hopelessly -out of shape now and she was perspiring.</p> - -<p>Finally her last customer was satisfied for the moment. -She wandered casually over to Robert Holton’s table.</p> - -<p>“Breakfast good?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“Never better.”</p> - -<p>“That don’t make it so good.” They laughed. He was always -so polite with her. That was why she liked him, she -thought. He was very kind. He was handsome, too, but that -wasn’t as important as being polite. A lot of fine people were -not handsome.</p> - -<p>“What’s in the paper?” she asked. She never quite knew -what to talk about when she was with him.</p> - -<p>“Not much. The same old stuff. Election stuff mostly.”</p> - -<p>“Seems like there’s always an election.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</span></p> - -<p>“There’re a lot of them.”</p> - -<p>“I almost don’t read any newspapers. I don’t seem to get -time to read them. I’ll bet you read a lot of them.”</p> - -<p>“I have to. I read all about the market.”</p> - -<p>“That’s right, you’re in Wall Street. That must be exciting. -Working there where all those big deals are made.”</p> - -<p>“They don’t make them where I am.” He laughed. “I’m -just another worker.”</p> - -<p>“I thought you were way up in one of the big houses.”</p> - -<p>“Well, sort of a clerk which doesn’t pay much. It’s a good -way to starve.”</p> - -<p>“You ought to do something different. Suppose you marry -some girl....”</p> - -<p>“I’m not getting married for a long time.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose,” said Marjorie Ventusa calmly, “that you got -some nice society girl all lined up.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton shook his head. “I haven’t any girl anywhere.”</p> - -<p>“Isn’t that like life. All the handsome men don’t have girls -and they wonder why so many of us are old maids.”</p> - -<p>“You’re not an old maid yet, Marjorie. By the way, what’s -your last name? As long as I’ve known you I’ve never known -your last name.”</p> - -<p>“Ventusa.” She spelled it for him.</p> - -<p>“Italian name?”</p> - -<p>“My father was Italian, my mother was Irish.”</p> - -<p>“That’s a good combination. I knew a lot of pretty girls -when I was in Italy.”</p> - -<p>“Were you there in the war?”</p> - -<p>“I was there over a year.”</p> - -<p>“I always wanted to travel. I guess I’d rather travel than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</span> -do anything. My father, he used to tell me stories about -Italy. He came from Sicily. Were you ever in Sicily?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I was in Sicily.”</p> - -<p>“It’s beautiful, isn’t it?”</p> - -<p>“Beautiful.”</p> - -<p>“Must be real messed up now.”</p> - -<p>“Not too bad. The scenery’s still there.”</p> - -<p>“I’m going to go there someday,” said Marjorie Ventusa, -knowing that she never would.</p> - -<p>“You’ll like it.”</p> - -<p>Mrs Merrin was looking at her and she pretended to be -busy at his table.</p> - -<p>“Let me get you some more coffee,” she said. She picked -up the plates from his table and put them on her tray. Her -arm touched his hand. He pulled away unconsciously, and -she walked back to the kitchen.</p> - -<p>She got a cup of coffee for him. Two other orders were -ready for her. She put them on her tray and returned to the -dining room.</p> - -<p>She noticed a girl was walking over to Robert Holton’s -table. She had seen the girl often before. She worked in Robert -Holton’s office. Occasionally they would have lunch together. -She was a pretty girl. Her hair was dark and her skin -white. Her lips were full and painted a deep red. She had a -slim figure and slim legs and her eyes were blue, a deep vivid -blue that Marjorie Ventusa envied. The girl spoke to Robert -Holton. He stood up. Then they both sat down.</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa took care of two tables and then she -went to Robert Holton’s table and placed his cup of coffee -before him.</p> - -<p>“Good morning,” she said to the pretty girl.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</span></p> - -<p>“Good morning,” said the pretty girl absently. “I’ll have -some grapefruit juice. That’s all I want. I’m reducing,” she -said to Robert Holton and she patted her slim waist.</p> - -<p>“What on earth are you reducing for?”</p> - -<p>“You think I look all right this way?” she asked, pretending -surprise.</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa hurried to the kitchen. She hated this -pretty girl. All day long Robert Holton was with her. Perhaps -even at night they were together. She pushed her -blonde hair back out of her face. If only she had been pretty -and young. Of course, she had been young but she had -never been pretty. She was far from old now. They said that -if one wanted something badly enough one would get it. -That was foolish; Marjorie Ventusa had never gotten anything -she wanted, except a yellow satin dress. When she was -a child she had wanted a yellow satin dress and her father -had bought her one. The dress was in a box in her closet -now; she had not looked at it in fifteen years. She picked up -a glass of grapefruit juice and put it on her tray.</p> - -<p>The pretty girl was laughing when she came back to their -table and Robert Holton was watching her. She wore a gray -suit buttoned tightly across her small breasts.</p> - -<p>“Here’s your grapefruit juice.”</p> - -<p>“Thank you very much,” said the girl, paying no attention -to Marjorie Ventusa, saying the words mechanically.</p> - -<p>The waitress began to clean the table next to Robert Holton’s. -She rubbed the gray damp cloth over the shiny black -table-top and she listened to Robert Holton and the pretty -girl as they talked.</p> - -<p>“But Caroline” (her name was Caroline then), “I didn’t -know you were expecting me last night.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</span></p> - -<p>“Well, we weren’t really. I just thought you might come -on over, that’s all. We had quite a gang. Jimmy Hammond, -he was at Yale about the same time you were.”</p> - -<p>“I went to Harvard.”</p> - -<p>“That’s right, you did. Well, you would’ve liked Jimmy -Hammond. He was in the army, too. And there were a whole -lot of people around. I just thought you’d have liked to -come.”</p> - -<p>“I certainly would’ve but I didn’t remember your inviting -me.”</p> - -<p>“That’s all right,” said Caroline, drinking her grapefruit -juice and making a face as she did. “God, but this stuff is -sour.”</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa, having cleaned the shiny black table-top -cleaner than it had ever been before, turned to another -table. She was still close enough to hear what they said.</p> - -<p>“What did you do last night, Bobby?” She called him -Bobby. Marjorie Ventusa wondered if she would ever be -able to call him that.</p> - -<p>“Not a thing. I went home to bed early.”</p> - -<p>“Next time I’ll send you an engraved invitation when I -want you to come to the house.”</p> - -<p>“You do that. What time’s it getting to be?”</p> - -<p>Caroline looked at the clock. “It’s not much after eight-thirty. -Let’s take our time.”</p> - -<p>“We don’t want to be too late.”</p> - -<p>“You haven’t been around long. Nobody gets there on -time. What’re you bucking for, Mr Holton?”</p> - -<p>He grinned at her. Robert Holton had dark blue eyes. -Marjorie Ventusa had never noticed them before. They were -beautiful eyes, she thought suddenly.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</span></p> - -<p>One of the waitresses came over to her and said, “Boy, you -sure must like that guy in the corner.”</p> - -<p>“What do you mean? What you talking about?”</p> - -<p>“Nothing at all. You needn’t get so excited. I was just -noticing you talking to him all the time. I couldn’t help -noticing, Marjorie. You was there so long talking to him.”</p> - -<p>“He comes in here a lot and we talk, that’s all. I hope <em>you</em> -don’t mind.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t mind at all, Marjorie. I was just kidding you.”</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa picked up a cup of coffee and went back -to the dining room. The waitress had irritated her. She didn’t -want anyone to think that she would fall for a man at least -ten years younger than she was. Well, perhaps not ten years. -Robert Holton could be thirty. The difference between thirty -and thirty-seven was not so great.</p> - -<p>She walked over to Robert Holton’s table. They were -talking.</p> - -<p>“I don’t see what you have against Dick. He’s an awful -nice fellow.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t have anything against him. He just doesn’t like -me. He thinks I’m trying to get his job.”</p> - -<p>“Well, are you?”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton smiled. “I don’t want anything; didn’t you -know that?”</p> - -<p>“Well, aren’t you the saint. You mean you wouldn’t like -to take his job? Not even if it was offered to you?”</p> - -<p>“I suppose if it were easier to take a job than refuse it -I’d take the job. I’m easy to please.”</p> - -<p>Caroline sighed. “You’re easy to please. I guess that’s what -war does to you.”</p> - -<p>“I was always like that. I was like that at college.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</span></p> - -<p>“Just lazy?”</p> - -<p>“Just lazy.”</p> - -<p>“Good Lord, it’s almost nine! We have to get out of here.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton waved to Marjorie Ventusa. She came over -to their table slowly. She didn’t want him to leave any -sooner than he had to.</p> - -<p>“Got my check, Marjorie?”</p> - -<p>“I’ll get it for you.” She went to the cashier and had his -check totalled for him. Then she brought it back and he paid -her, leaving a ten-cent tip under his water glass.</p> - -<p>Caroline stood up and put her gray coat about her shoulders. -Robert Holton picked up his trench coat and slung it -over his arm.</p> - -<p>“I’ll see you at lunch, Marjorie,” he said.</p> - -<p>“See you,” said Marjorie Ventusa and she watched them -as they went out the door into the bright autumn morning.</p> - -<p>“Say, Marjorie,” said one of her regular customers, “how -about some more coffee.”</p> - -<p>“O.K., O.K.,” she said.</p> - -<p>“When are you going to get those tables cleaned?” said -Mrs Merrin who was back in Marjorie Ventusa’s corner. “I -wish you’d try to get them done right after the customers -leave. I wish you’d make some effort, Marjorie.”</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry,” said Marjorie Ventusa.</p> - -<p>She began to clear Robert Holton’s table.</p> - -<p>“What about my coffee?” asked the customer. “When I -going to get it?”</p> - -<p>“Right away.” Marjorie Ventusa finished cleaning Robert -Holton’s table. Almost sadly she pocketed the ten-cent tip -which he had left under the water glass.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Three</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">The elevator door opened and Caroline Lawson and Robert -Holton stepped out of it and into the New York office of -Heywood and Golden, members of the New York Stock Exchange -and other organizations equally sound.</p> - -<p>The entrance hall was modern and dignified. The walls -were clean and white and there was a thick carpet on the -floor. Two heavy leather couches furnished the entrance. A -dark genteel girl sat behind a reception desk.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Caroline,” she said in a nasal voice. -“Good morning, Bob.”</p> - -<p>“Hello, Ruth,” said Robert Holton, and Caroline Lawson -smiled at her.</p> - -<p>“Anything new?” asked Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Not a thing, Bob, not a thing. Everything’s just as dull as -ever. Of course, it’s still early.”</p> - -<p>“Sure,” said Caroline, amused at the thought of anything -interesting happening to them, “the day’s just started.”</p> - -<p>“Is the boss in yet?” asked Robert Holton. He was terribly -afraid of getting in bad, thought Caroline, looking at him. -He was rather cowardly but nice. Perhaps having been in -the war had changed him. Perhaps he would improve.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</span></p> - -<p>Ruth shook her head. “No, he’s not in yet. He hasn’t come -in yet. He’s always late, Mr Murphy is.” Mr Murphy was the -head of the Statistical Section where Robert Holton worked. -Caroline was Mr Murphy’s secretary.</p> - -<p>“Well, I’m glad,” said Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“You certainly <em>are</em> eager,” said Ruth, looking up at him, -her head slightly to one side: the way that movie actresses -looked.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton laughed. “I guess I am.”</p> - -<p>“And after all you’ve been through, too! Why, if I’d seen -what you’ve seen I wouldn’t worry what nob ... anybody -thought.”</p> - -<p>“That’s what I used to say,” said Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Come on, Bob,” said Caroline. “Let’s get back to the salt -mine.”</p> - -<p>Ruth nodded to them and they walked into a long room. -On one side of the room were the doors of offices; the other -side was covered with tremendous pictures of factories and -ships and railroads. The pictures were Mr Golden’s idea. He -wanted to explain to customers the real meaning of the -stocks they were buying. Mr Golden always wanted people -to feel that the stock market was a creative, a productive -thing.</p> - -<p>Women of all ages sat typing at small desks in the long -room. The light was indirect and modern and very even. One -could see that Heywood and Golden was a well-organized -house.</p> - -<p>People murmured good mornings to Caroline and Robert -Holton as they walked together between the desks. At the -end of the room there was a glass door behind which were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</span> -a large blackboard, ticker tape machines, and men recording -the prices of the various stocks.</p> - -<p>“Look busy, don’t they?” commented Caroline.</p> - -<p>“They certainly do. I wouldn’t have that job for anything.”</p> - -<p>“I think it’d be sort of exciting.”</p> - -<p>“Too much running around for me. I like to sit still.”</p> - -<p>“It takes,” said Caroline, “all kinds to make up a world.”</p> - -<p>“Isn’t that lucky?” said Robert Holton and Caroline didn’t -know whether he was laughing at her or not. Sometimes he -bothered her. She liked him. Almost everybody did because -he was nice-looking and quiet. He was weak, though, she -thought. She didn’t like a man to be weak. She wanted someone -that she could lean on. Caroline Lawson was one of -those pretty girls who could never bear weak men and yet, -by nature, hated those who were stronger.</p> - -<p>They stood and watched the ticker tape machines through -the glass door. A tall white-faced boy was slowly marking -figures on the blackboard. He stood on a small stepladder -and as he wrote the figures his left foot tapped regularly -and rhythmically on the top step of the ladder. Caroline -wondered what tune he was making.</p> - -<p>“You like to dance, don’t you?” she asked suddenly.</p> - -<p>“What? Dance? Sure, I like to dance. Why?”</p> - -<p>“Oh, I don’t know. I was just thinking, that’s all. I like to -dance a whole lot. When I was at college we used to have -wonderful dances.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton laughed. “That wasn’t so long ago, when -you were at college. Don’t you go out any more?”</p> - -<p>“Of course I do. You know I do, all the time, and I’m not -trying to get you to ask me out either.”</p> - -<p>He laughed at her and that was all.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</span></p> - -<p>Caroline looked at him and tried to guess what he was -thinking. He was probably thinking that she was very pretty -and that he would like to ask her to go out with him. She -wouldn’t go out with him, he knew. Not now, not after she -had said these things. Later, perhaps, when they had forgotten -the words she had said. Caroline sighed as she thought -of her own strength and of his weakness.</p> - -<p>“Let’s get back to the office,” said Holton.</p> - -<p>They walked down a short corridor. At the end of the corridor -was the Statistical room. Here a dozen men and women -worked at desks. They compiled figures for the executives -and the customers and everyone else in the house.</p> - -<p>Through a noise of automatic welcomes, Caroline and -Robert Holton went into the office. Most of the desks were -on the side of the room away from the windows. The windowed -end of the room was protected by a railing; behind -the railing was Mr Murphy’s desk and at a respectful distance -from his desk was Caroline Lawson’s.</p> - -<p>“See you later, Bob,” said Caroline and she opened the -door of the railing and went into the windowed section of -the room. She let the door swing creakily shut and went to -her desk. Glancing sideways, she watched Robert Holton go -to his desk at the other end of the office. Then she sat down.</p> - -<p>The desk was neat. A new blotter was in the center. An -inkwell, without ink in it, and a penholder, without a pen in -it, held the top of the blotter down. A slim imitation silver -vase sat on one corner of the desk. Occasionally Mr Murphy -would put a flower in the vase and she would smile at him -when he did that and Mr Murphy would wink at her.</p> - -<p>One of the two phones on her desk rang. She picked up -the receiver. “Hello?” Someone asked for Mr Murphy. “He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</span> -isn’t in right now; shall I have him call you? You’ll call back -later? Thank you.” She cleared her throat, cleared her professional -telephone voice away.</p> - -<p>She moved the blotter to one end of the desk. Then she -lifted the front of her desk and a typewriter appeared. She -ran her fingers over the keys, professionally, like a pianist -before he begins to play.</p> - -<p>She opened the left-hand top drawer of the desk. This was -her personal drawer. Here were several compacts in various -stages of use. A slightly crushed box of pale green Kleenex, a -carton of cigarettes, and a box of fairly expensive candy. The -lid of the candy box was off and Caroline Lawson decided -that, since her breakfast had been small, a little candy -wouldn’t hurt her. She picked the largest piece and put it -in her mouth.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Caroline. How’s the girl?” It was Mr -Murphy.</p> - -<p>Caroline swallowed quickly. “Fine, fine, Mr Murphy. -How’re you today?”</p> - -<p>“Me? I’m just fine today. Certainly is a wonderful day -today. Makes you feel like going out in the country somewhere. -Out to Long Island or some place like that. Go some -place to get away from the city.” Mr Murphy sighed. He had -spent all his life in the city and he wanted to go live in the -country. He would not like the country, of course, but then -he would never leave the city and it made no difference.</p> - -<p>“Look what I brought you,” said Mr Murphy. He pulled a -slightly rumpled white carnation from his buttonhole. “We -had a big blowout at the Astor last night. It was quite a show -we had.”</p> - -<p>“Thank you,” said Caroline, smiling at him. She smelled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</span> -the white flower; a strong odor of cigar smoke spoiled the -scent. “Thank you,” she said again and she put the white -flower in the tall vase.</p> - -<p>“Any calls? Anything new?”</p> - -<p>“You had one call. No message, though. The man said he’d -call back later.”</p> - -<p>“Good.” Mr Murphy sat down at his desk.</p> - -<p>There was a pile of letters on his desk. Very precisely he -cut the letters open one by one. Caroline watched him with -a mixture of admiration and dislike.</p> - -<p>Oliver L. Murphy was a tall man. He was heavy but not in -the usual manner. His arms and legs and neck were long and -thin and his hips were narrow; his stomach and chest, however, -were massive. He held himself erect. His face was red -as all Irishmen’s faces are supposed to be. His eyes and hair -were dark and he had a thick curved nose. Mr Murphy’s -clothes fitted him well. They were usually of a somber color -and always correct. His cuffs were beautifully starched.</p> - -<p>For five years Caroline Lawson had been his secretary. -Her first job had been as his secretary; her last job, too, she -thought to herself: she would be married soon and that would -be the end of typing and putting cigar-scented flowers in -fake silver vases. Caroline Lawson was not sure whom she -would marry but she would certainly get married to someone -soon.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy finished reading his letters.</p> - -<p>“Anything important?” asked Caroline.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy shook his head. “Not much of anything. We -got one letter here I ought to answer.”</p> - -<p>“I’ll get my pad.” Caroline picked up a lightly ruled pad -of paper from her desk. Then she went over and sat down in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</span> -a chair beside Mr Murphy’s desk. She sat close to the window -so that the morning sunlight would warm her. As she -sat down bits of dust vibrated up into the sunlight from her -chair seat. The motes of dust danced and glittered and then -slowly sank along the beams of light to the floor.</p> - -<p>“I’m ready,” said Caroline Lawson.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy cleared his throat and looked helplessly about -him. It was his usual beginning. Then he picked up the letter -he was to answer. He waited a moment for the words to -come to him.</p> - -<p>“Dear,” he began. She made the figure for the word. He -paused, studying the ceiling. He began again, “Dear Mr -Lachum, In reply to your letter of the 16th, etc., etc....” -He stopped and closed his eyes; this seemed to help. “I cannot, -I fear, agree with you in your analysis of certain trends -now at work ... no, now abroad ... in the financial world.” -His voice became firm and concise, “Although I have the -greatest personal esteem for the opinions of yourself and -associates, uh, in re to the stock market, I must, in this instance, -disagree with you, for I am of the opinion that this -is a rising market and will continue to be so. All statistics at -hand ... no, available, point to just that. Hoping to hear -from you again, and so on.” Mr Murphy stopped and opened -his eyes. He looked pleased and exhilarated.</p> - -<p>“That’s a very nice letter, Mr Murphy. Knowing Mr -Lachum, I think you were certainly nice to him.”</p> - -<p>“Well, it never does to offend people, Caroline. That’s -a rule with me. That’s something I’ve always followed. I -wouldn’t be here today if I hadn’t been that way.” He paused -and they both thought of a world where there was no Mr -Murphy because he had offended people.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</span></p> - -<p>“All right, let’s hear that letter back.”</p> - -<p>Caroline read the letter. Mr Murphy listened, pleased.</p> - -<p>“That’s fine,” he said when she had finished. “Type it up -please.”</p> - -<p>Caroline went back to her desk. The sunlight and the glittering -dust were almost out of the room now. Soon they -would turn on the fluorescent lights over their desks. Caroline -sometimes wished that the morning would last all day.</p> - -<p>Caroline put a piece of paper in her typewriter. She -started to type; then she remembered that all letters must -be done in triplicate. She pulled the sheet of paper out of the -machine. Wearily, enjoying her weariness, she arranged -more paper in the typewriter.</p> - -<p>Her fingers moved swiftly over the keys. She made rhythms -as she typed, as the keys clattered on the white paper.</p> - -<p>In a few minutes she was finished.</p> - -<p>“Very nice,” said Mr Murphy, looking over her shoulder. -“Very nice, indeed. I’ll sign that now.”</p> - -<p>“O.K.” Caroline took the papers out of the typewriter. She -removed the carbon. Mr Murphy signed the letter carefully. -During the last five years Caroline had watched Mr Murphy’s -signature change. It was becoming more original; the upstrokes -were stronger and the “M” was becoming regal.</p> - -<p>She blotted his signature. “What’ll I do next?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“I expect you’d better get on those reports for Mr Golden. -He was asking for them yesterday.”</p> - -<p>“What <em>does</em> he think we are? We were only told to do -those reports last week. That takes a lot of time. I don’t see -what he’s always in such a rush for.”</p> - -<p>“Well, you know how some people are,” said Mr Murphy, -meaning much more than he said.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</span></p> - -<p>Caroline nodded wisely. Mr Murphy was often opposed to -Mr Golden’s business ideas. Mr Heywood, who had inherited -a lot of money and never bothered much with business, was -Mr Murphy’s friend. Mr Golden was a promoter who had -become a partner several years before. The conservative element -of the house stood firmly against him but his hold over -Mr Heywood was equally firm.</p> - -<p>“I’ll get to work on it right away,” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>“Good, I think I’ll go up to the front office. If there’re any -calls tell them I’ll call back.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, Mr Murphy.”</p> - -<p>Smoothly Mr Murphy moved across the room. All of his -movements were smooth and swift. He opened the swinging -gate that separated him from his staff. They didn’t look up -from their work as he walked between the desks toward the -hall.</p> - -<p>Caroline took more paper out of her desk and put it in -her typewriter. She opened a black notebook. Slowly she -began to copy. After a minute or so she stopped. She wasn’t -concentrating and she didn’t know what was wrong.</p> - -<p>Caroline Lawson leaned back in her swivel chair and her -arms dropped limply at her sides. The sunlight was gone out -of the room and she could no longer see the dust in the -light.</p> - -<p>Far away she could hear the sounds of automobile horns -blowing, of newsboy shouts in the street; and, from time to -time, their building would rumble as a train passed underground.</p> - -<p>Closer to her were the sounds of the office. The clattering -of typewriters, the constant low buzz of voices; these were -the sounds of her days. Caroline was dissatisfied.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</span></p> - -<p>Across the room she could see Robert Holton writing -something in a black book. She pitied him because he seemed -to really like what he was doing. But then it was better than -being a soldier: probably anything was better than that. But -then Robert Holton wasn’t a woman. That made a lot of difference, -thought Caroline. He couldn’t be depressed by -things the way she was. Men were never sensitive about such -things. She had a <em>malaise</em>. Having thought of this word, she -was pleased with it. The word described her sudden fits of -depression.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton closed the book on his desk. He looked -about him uncertainly. Then he stood up and walked toward -her. He was presentable, she thought. Certainly better looking -than anyone else in Heywood and Golden, but he was -not what she wanted at all. Also, there was some doubt in -her mind that Robert Holton was interested in her.</p> - -<p>“How’s it going, Caroline?”</p> - -<p>“I’m slowed up.” She sighed loudly and wilted in her -chair.</p> - -<p>“That’s too bad,” he said. She didn’t answer. She was quiet -for a moment. He watched her and she enjoyed his watching -her. Finally he said, “Murphy’s in a good mood today.”</p> - -<p>Caroline nodded. “He’s real happy today. He wants to go -out in the country. He always wants to do that when he’s -feeling good.”</p> - -<p>“He’s some character,” said Robert Holton. He sat down -on the railing.</p> - -<p>“It would be nice,” said Caroline thoughtfully, “to go out -in the country; have a picnic maybe.”</p> - -<p>“Sure, that would be nice, but you couldn’t do that.”</p> - -<p>“No, I guess <em>you</em> couldn’t.” Caroline was contemptuous<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</span> -but because she was a very pretty and popular girl she didn’t -show it. She was sensitive herself and that was what she -wanted in life: a man who was as sensitive as she, someone -who would respond to her moods. She looked at Robert Holton. -He was sitting uneasily on the railing. No, he could -never understand her great sadness. Perhaps no one would -ever understand her. Caroline was sad, for it is a sad thing -to be both pretty and sensitive.</p> - -<p>“You’re going out tonight, aren’t you?”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton nodded. “I’m going to a cocktail party; I’m -going to Mrs Raymond Stevanson’s.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, is that so? You’re really going around in high circles. -I guess I shouldn’t be associating with high society like you.” -She had meant to speak lightly and humorously but somehow -the words had come out all wrong and there was a bitterness -in her voice that embarrassed her.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton looked surprised; he smiled finally. “Well, it -never hurts to know these people. She was a friend of my -mother’s,” he explained, trying to explain these things, to -make himself appear like her; she hated him for his kindness.</p> - -<p>“Those people are O.K., I guess,” said Caroline. She started -to say something about her own family, some improbable -but soothing lie, something to prove to herself that she was -the same as Mrs Stevanson whose picture was so often in the -papers. But she said nothing. She played with the ribbon of -her typewriter.</p> - -<p>“I hate staying in one place,” said Caroline, after a moment -of silence.</p> - -<p>“It’s no fun traveling,” said Robert Holton. “Moving -around all the time; that’s what I didn’t like in the army. No, -traveling’s pretty lousy.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</span></p> - -<p>“That kind is, but I mean to go ... well, you know ... -where you want to go, that’s what I mean. I don’t like sitting -around here day after day. I want to go some place.”</p> - -<p>He shrugged. “A lot of people do, I guess. Marjorie, you -know, the waitress, she wants to go to Sicily.”</p> - -<p>“Well, that’s different. I mean she’s not ... well, you know -what I mean, she’s probably happy doing what she’s doing.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t see why,” said Robert Holton. They thought of -Marjorie Ventusa for a moment then they didn’t think of her -again.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton shifted his position on the railing. Caroline -looked about the familiar room. The older women were typing -and using their adding machines; the younger women -were watching Robert Holton; and the younger men (there -were three of them) looked up occasionally to see what -Caroline was doing. She posed a little for them. She didn’t -pose haughtily, though. Caroline was too clever for that. She -just looked girlish and rather innocent. None of them could -understand her sadness and her longing. It pleased her to -think how well she hid herself. Not even Robert Holton, -talking to her now, could realize these things.</p> - -<p>“No,” said Robert Holton, “no, I want to stay in one place.”</p> - -<p>“You don’t want to be doing the same thing all the time, -do you?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t know, I’d like to make more money.”</p> - -<p>“I think you’re crazy,” she said. She watched her fingers -as they tapped lightly on the keys of the typewriter. Her -hands weren’t quite what she wanted them to be. She thought -of them as long and slender and faintly exotic; actually her -hands were short and square and not very clean. The red -enamel was beginning to chip off her thumbnails.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</span></p> - -<p>“Why’m I crazy? Because I want to make more money?”</p> - -<p>“Not because of that, of course. Just because.”</p> - -<p>“Oh.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton shifted his position on the railing. Caroline -suddenly didn’t want him to go. Then Richard Kuppelton -got up from his desk near the door and came over to them.</p> - -<p>“Why, hello, Dick,” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, good morning,” said Dick heartily. He -was a very hearty person and Caroline liked him. He was so -different from Robert Holton. Dick always seemed the same; -he acted the same, anyway. Caroline could almost always tell -what he was going to say and that was a lot better than being -around a person who never said the right things. Dick -wasn’t sensitive, however. He and Robert Holton were the -same that way but then Caroline couldn’t have everything.</p> - -<p>“How’s every little thing?” asked Dick Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>“Fine,” said Robert Holton. Caroline only smiled; she -smiled with her eyes as well as her mouth. It was important -to smile that way.</p> - -<p>“Been pretty slow today,” said Dick. “Not much business. -I think the market’s falling off.” Someone had told him that, -thought Caroline, delighted with her perception.</p> - -<p>“It may be,” said Robert Holton without much interest.</p> - -<p>“We should have a big rush soon. I’m doing a report now. -Well, not really a report; I’ve been getting some statistics on -aircraft stock ready for the front office. It’s been some job.” -He shook his head to show the largeness of the job.</p> - -<p>“I’ve got a report like that to do, too,” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>“Something for Golden?”</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>Dick nodded knowingly. “Some report, I bet.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</span></p> - -<p>“It’s certainly long,” said Caroline, pointing to the notebook -on her desk.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton got off the railing and stretched. “I better -get to work,” he said. “Murphy might be back soon.” He -went back to his desk.</p> - -<p>“He’s real eager,” said Dick unpleasantly.</p> - -<p>“What? Well, I don’t know about that. He’s sort of funny. -He doesn’t want to get anywhere but he doesn’t want to get -in bad. I don’t know; he’s awful funny.”</p> - -<p>“I’ve seen those guys before,” said Dick. “I know that -type. They come in a place and get in good with the top -people. Then they get your job. That’s just what he’s up to.”</p> - -<p>Caroline smiled and said nothing. She was pretty and -popular and she couldn’t always, therefore, say what she -thought. She knew, though, that Dick Kuppelton, who had -been with Heywood and Golden for six years, disliked Holton. -Mr Murphy had never liked Kuppelton and at the end -of the year changes were always made and Robert Holton -might take Dick’s place. Things were very complicated, -thought Caroline.</p> - -<p>“I don’t think he’s that smart,” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>“I think you’re wrong.” Dick started to straddle the railing, -then he changed his mind and leaned against it. He was -a large man. He was thirty and pink and blond. He wore -large rimless glasses which made his face look clean and -blank. He enjoyed what he was doing, thought Caroline. -Everyone enjoyed working except herself.</p> - -<p>“I’ve got to do some typing,” said Caroline. She wanted -him to go away.</p> - -<p>“Certainly; I suppose I’d better be getting back.” He stood -up straight and stretched. “Well, back to work,” he said.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</span></p> - -<p>“See you,” said Caroline. Dick was so dependable: you -always knew what to expect.</p> - -<p>Caroline coughed. Her cough had a consumptive sound to -it which rather appealed to her. When she was a young girl -she had seen a play about a beautiful woman with white -flowers and a cough. The beautiful woman had been so interesting -that Caroline had never forgotten her although she -had forgotten the play. Caroline coughed again, quietly, -dramatically.</p> - -<p>“How’s that report coming?” Oliver L. Murphy had returned -from the front office.</p> - -<p>“Pretty well, Mr Murphy.”</p> - -<p>“Had quite a session with Mr Golden.”</p> - -<p>“I bet,” said Caroline with sympathy. “I’ll bet he was -something.”</p> - -<p>“Well, I handled him O.K. today. He’s not so hard to get -along with. Of course, he’s got some queer ideas. Those -people often have.”</p> - -<p>“Isn’t that the truth.” Caroline arranged the paper in her -typewriter. Mr Murphy leaned over and smelled the carnation -in the imitation silver vase.</p> - -<p>“Smells nice, don’t it?”</p> - -<p>“It certainly does, Mr Murphy.” She smiled. Mr Murphy -went back to his desk and Caroline typed. Several times as -she worked she coughed, quietly, almost to herself.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Four</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">Richard Kuppelton left Caroline reluctantly. He liked -her because she was pretty and much more sensible than the -other pretty girls he had known.</p> - -<p>He stopped at his desk. It was a dull olive color. His different -books of statistics were piled neatly on one corner; -notebooks and papers were scattered over the top and it -looked as if he were busy.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton decided not to work, not just now. From the -top drawer of his desk he took a magazine. It had a vivid -cover of a large-breasted young woman being carried into a -machine by an octopus. He enjoyed this magazine’s stories -very much.</p> - -<p>He slipped the magazine under his arm, the cover toward -his side; and then, busily, he left the room for the lavatory.</p> - -<p>There was something cozy about a lavatory, he thought as -he opened the door marked “Men.” No one was inside -and he would be able to sing. The room was large, white and -very clean. The urinals, four of them, stood polished and -shining, like soldiers on guard. A thin waterfall constantly -descended down their white enamel surfaces; the smell of -disinfectant was in the air, but not too strongly.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</span></p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton glanced at himself quickly in one of -the four mirrors which shone over the four wash basins. Then -he walked to one of the four black-doored stalls. He chose -the one nearest the wall. There was strategy in his choice as -well as habit, for the light was over this stall.</p> - -<p>With the feeling of having come home after a long journey, -Richard Kuppelton opened the black door and stepped -inside. Then he closed the door and locked it. He was completely -alone now; no one could disturb him and he was safe.</p> - -<p>Deliberately he hung up his coat and then, after some -preparation, he descended with a sigh upon the cool smooth -seat. He relaxed happily.</p> - -<p>On the subway he had started a story called “The Mad -Moon Maidens”; unfortunately, it had been a little dull and -he had decided not to finish it. He thumbed through the -rough pages of his magazine. Grotesque black and white -drawings decorated the pages. There were monsters and -ghouls, beautiful women (usually screaming) and lean young -men with pongee hats. The title “Satanic Underworld” appealed -to him and he started to read.</p> - -<p>After only a few minutes, however, he found himself studying -the tile floor. Black and white tile in neat one-two-three -pattern across the floor; he liked things that were black or -white. The pattern was familiar to him and gave him a further -feeling of being home.</p> - -<p>Great ideas came to Richard Kuppelton enthroned. Here -in this retreat the entire world assumed a pattern of great -simplicity. All problems could be rendered answerable and -in this world he was sovereign. The lavatory was his study. -He thought of Robert Holton: the person who currently -threatened his career.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</span></p> - -<p>Robert Holton was deceitful; he knew that. On the surface -he appeared simple and a little shy but Kuppelton knew differently. -Little things that the others had not noticed he -noticed. For instance, Holton was always trying to get -friendly with Mr Murphy. He always called him “sir”; -treated him as if he were a colonel or something in the army. -That was another thing: the army. Holton had been a soldier -and Kuppelton had not. Most of the others in the office -had not been in the war either. Both Mr Heywood and Mr -Golden had declared that they would do all that they could -for the veteran. So far this hadn’t been very much, but still -it was their intention. Richard Kuppelton wished suddenly -that he could stay forever in this shiny black stall with the -tile floor.</p> - -<p>There was a noise in the lavatory. Someone had come in. -Footsteps clattered on the floor. The door to the stall next -to his opened and someone sat down.</p> - -<p>He wondered who it was. The person wore plain brown -shoes: he could see them through the foot-high space beneath -the stall partition. This person also wore brown trousers. -Richard Kuppelton thought for a moment, strained to -remember who it could be. Then he remembered.</p> - -<p>“Hello, Bob,” said Richard Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>“What? That you, Dick?”</p> - -<p>“The same.”</p> - -<p>“You catching up on your reading?”</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton closed his magazine guiltily. “No, no. -Just nature.”</p> - -<p>“It’s a good place to think.”</p> - -<p>“Well, I suppose it is.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</span></p> - -<p>“What’s wrong with Caroline today?” asked Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“I haven’t the slightest idea. I didn’t notice anything -wrong with her, did you?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I thought she was sort of irritable.”</p> - -<p>“I didn’t notice it.” Richard Kuppelton sighed. He was -beginning to get uncomfortable, sitting on the hard seat. He -was, also, a little surprised that Holton was as aware of Caroline -as this. “Caroline’s a lot of fun,” he said.</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>“She’s a lot of fun to go out on a party with. She can be -real funny.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose so.”</p> - -<p>“You ever go out with her?”</p> - -<p>“Not really.”</p> - -<p>“What do you mean?”</p> - -<p>“I never went to a party with her. We had dinner once.”</p> - -<p>“She didn’t want to go dancing?”</p> - -<p>“No.”</p> - -<p>“That’s funny.” Richard Kuppelton tried to remember -whether he had ever taken Caroline out and they had not -danced. No, they had always gone to a dance. He wondered -whether she liked Robert Holton better than him. This was -a new thought and even more unpleasant than the suspicion -that Robert Holton was trying to get his job. “She just likes -to talk?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I guess everybody does.”</p> - -<p>“That’s right, I guess.” Richard Kuppelton studied Holton’s -plain tan shoes gloomily. One of the things he could -not understand was why Robert Holton had come to work -in this office. It was rumored that he was a friend of Mr<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</span> -Heywood’s but no one had ever been able to prove that. He -had gone to Harvard before the war and to Richard Kuppelton -that was the most important thing about him. It was -also suspicious; he could not understand why a person with -that education would do this job in Heywood and Golden -unless—and Richard Kuppelton became gloomier—unless he -were to be promoted over everyone.</p> - -<p>“Looks like there’ll be a lot of changes after the first,” said -Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>“They tell me there usually are.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose you want to end up in the other office, being -one of the contact people.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t care much. Whatever they want to do. I’d like -to move up, of course.”</p> - -<p>“We all would.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton mumbled something and stood up. Kuppelton -watched the tan shoes as they moved about the stall. -There was a swirling of water and Robert Holton left the -lavatory, whistling.</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton studied the tile again. It seemed, -somehow, less comforting, less private since Holton had been -here. He tried to read again but “Satanic Underworld” -had lost its attraction. The seat was becoming harder every -minute and he would have to leave soon.</p> - -<p>Then he remembered that the acoustics were unusually -good in this lavatory. In a low voice he sang an Irish ballad -which he had learned in school. His voice came to him pure -and vibrant and like no other voice that had ever sung. He -finished with a low note, although, strictly speaking, the ballad -called for a high note. He sang a popular song next. It was -not as great a success as the first because he only knew the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</span> -chorus. The words that he made up, however, were quite -good enough.</p> - -<p>At last, his songs finished, Richard Kuppelton stood up. -He ached slightly from the strain of sitting on the narrow -seat. Deliberately he arranged his trousers, deploring slightly -the heaviness of his waist as he did.</p> - -<p>The sound of swirling water was in his ears as he crossed -the lavatory to the wash basin. Deliberately—he was a deliberate -person—he washed his hands. He dried his hands on -a paper towel and then, like a king abdicating, he moved -slowly but deliberately to the door. With a sigh Richard -Kuppelton left the lavatory.</p> - -<p>The office had not changed. Mr Murphy was sitting behind -his railing, smoking a cigar and reading a letter. Caroline -was typing. Robert Holton was copying a row of figures -into his notebook. The other men and women in the office -were working busily.</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton sat down at his desk. He enjoyed the -sensation of being a part of this great house. Neatly he arranged -his books of tables and statistics across the top of his -desk. The various books were open at aircraft stock. His -statistics would form the basis of a report which would be -used in an overall survey of aircraft stock to be used by the -front office. His responsibilities were heavy.</p> - -<p>He took his fountain pen out of his pocket. It was leaking -a little and he had to handle it carefully. Slowly, with pleasure, -he copied the figures from the books. He wrote the numbers -carefully, making them round and legible. When he had -finished copying all his numbers they would be typed up by -one of the stenographers in the office.</p> - -<p>A tall white-faced boy in a blue suit came into the room.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</span> -He went to Richard Kuppelton's desk and put some papers -on it.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Jim,” said Kuppelton heartily. “How’s the -boy?”</p> - -<p>“Fine. I think Golden’s coming this way.”</p> - -<p>“Really? Wonder what he wants.”</p> - -<p>“Hard to say. He always wants something.”</p> - -<p>“That’s his privilege,” said Kuppelton righteously.</p> - -<p>“I suppose so,” said Jim.</p> - -<p>The white-faced boy went on to the next desk, handing -out letters and inter-office memoranda.</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton put his fountain pen down carefully. -There were several letters for him. He opened one of them -and started to read.</p> - -<p>He had read only a few lines when Mr Golden came into -the office. Even without looking up from his letter Richard -Kuppelton could have told that someone from the front office -had arrived. The typewriters clattered more loudly. The -usual low buzz of voices died away, and he could hear Mr -Murphy’s swivel chair being pushed back from his desk as -he stood up to welcome the visitor from the front office. -Kuppelton put his letter under the blotter and then he -looked up casually.</p> - -<p>Benjamin Franklin Golden stood behind Mr Murphy’s -railing. He stood very erect, his eyes moving from desk to -desk as he studied the office. He was a short man and plump. -His eyes were small and black and shiny. Mr Golden had -iron-gray hair which he allowed to grow a little longer than -necessary. He was proud to have kept his hair. He had a -small nose and a rather foolish little mouth and he looked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</span> -more like a South American or Italian or something like that, -thought Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>He pretended to write figures in his notebook, while he -listened carefully to what Mr Golden was saying to Mr -Murphy.</p> - -<p>“Everything all right here, Murphy?” Mr Golden had a -high thin voice.</p> - -<p>“Yes, sir, we’re getting your reports out. I’ll have the special -one for you this afternoon.”</p> - -<p>“That’s good. I really need that report. That’s an important -one. Some of our big steel clients are interested in it. -I know you’ve done a good job on it.” There was almost a -threat in his voice. It was well known that the two did not -like each other.</p> - -<p>“Well, I’ve got our best girl, I’ve got Caroline here typing -it.” He waved at Caroline who looked up and smiled at Mr -Golden who smiled back at her. Richard Kuppelton wondered -what Mrs Golden was like.</p> - -<p>“I’m sure she’ll do a good job. How’s that aircraft stock -report coming?”</p> - -<p>“Kuppelton’s doing it.” Mr Murphy pointed to him.</p> - -<p>Mr Golden nodded. “I’ll be interested to see it.” Richard -Kuppelton copied figures quickly.</p> - -<p>“Should be a good survey,” said Mr Murphy. “Is there -going to be a board meeting this morning? You said they -hadn’t decided earlier.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, yes, I almost forgot; there’ll be a meeting at eleven-thirty.” -Mr Golden had an irritatingly brusque manner.</p> - -<p>“Fine,” said Mr Murphy and he made a note of it on the -pad on his desk.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</span></p> - -<p>Mr Golden didn’t seem to want to go. He looked around -the room again. He looked at Robert Holton and said something -to Mr Murphy which Kuppelton couldn’t hear. Mr -Murphy smiled and nodded.</p> - -<p>Mr Golden finally opened the door of the railing. “See you -at the meeting, Murphy.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, sir.”</p> - -<p>Mr Golden hurried out of the office. There was an immediate -change in the sounds of the room after he had left. -The hum of voices began again. Richard Kuppelton put -down his fountain pen.</p> - -<p>Caroline and Mr Murphy were talking together and laughing. -Robert Holton was still working quietly at his desk. -The women of the office talked about Mr Golden in low -voices.</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton wondered what Mr Golden had said -to Mr Murphy about Robert Holton. He looked at Robert -Holton with dislike.</p> - -<p>“O.K.,” said Kuppelton, “Mr Golden’s gone, you can stop -working.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton put down his notebook and smiled. “It -doesn’t hurt,” he said. “It doesn’t hurt to look busy.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, no, I wasn’t meaning to criticize.”</p> - -<p>“I didn’t think you were. Did you hear what they were -talking about?”</p> - -<p>This was malicious, Richard Kuppelton knew; it would -have been very hard for Holton not to have heard. “Oh, they -were just talking about reports.”</p> - -<p>“That’s what I guessed.” He started to work again.</p> - -<p>“You live uptown, don’t you?” remarked Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>“Yes. I’ve got a room in a hotel.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</span></p> - -<p>“That’s funny, I thought you lived with your family or -something. I thought Caroline said something about it.”</p> - -<p>“My father used to live here. He lives in Boston now. He -used to work here but he retired when I got out of the -army.”</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton nodded. “That’s right, I remember -your telling me that once. Me, I live with all my family in -Queens. We all live there. I wish sometimes that I lived -alone.”</p> - -<p>“It’s not much fun, living alone,” said Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Think you’ll get married soon?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t think so.”</p> - -<p>“I think <em>I</em> might,” said Richard Kuppelton weightily; he -had no one in mind, though; except possibly Caroline.</p> - -<p>“I guess it’s a good idea if you’ve got the right person,” -said Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“That’s very true.” They thought of this a moment. Each -thought of it seriously and each regarded it distantly. Richard -Kuppelton had no real desire to be married. He supposed -that Robert Holton felt the same.</p> - -<p>“I wonder,” said Kuppelton subtly, “what the conference -is going to be about this afternoon. I wonder if it’s about -promotions in the departments.”</p> - -<p>“I haven’t any idea.”</p> - -<p>“Since the war, seniority doesn’t make much difference.”</p> - -<p>“I thought it did.”</p> - -<p>Kuppelton shook his head, convinced of Holton’s insincerity. -For weeks now everyone had discussed the new policy -and everyone had watched the veterans in the different -offices, especially Holton; it was expected that they would -all be promoted: in any event Holton would be.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</span></p> - -<p>“No, it doesn’t make a bit of difference.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton smiled. He had small white teeth and an -agreeable smile which Kuppelton resented. “That’s good -news for me. I haven’t been here very long you know.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, yes, I know,” and Kuppelton laughed loudly to show -that he was friendly and that it made no difference to him -who was promoted.</p> - -<p>He glanced toward the windows. Mr Murphy caught his -eye and motioned to him. Quickly Richard Kuppelton got to -his feet and walked across the room to the railing. He was -careful not to let the gate slam when he came into Mr -Murphy’s presence.</p> - -<p>“Yes, sir?”</p> - -<p>“I just wanted to check with you on that aircraft stock -report. I just wanted to make sure it was coming along well.”</p> - -<p>“I’ve been working on it right along, Mr Murphy. They’ll -start typing it up tomorrow.”</p> - -<p>Murphy compressed his lips and nodded slowly. “Mr -Golden was asking for it. I wanted to be sure, Dick.”</p> - -<p>Kuppelton was suddenly glad that Mr Murphy had called -him by his first name. He did this only when he was well -pleased or when he wanted something.</p> - -<p>“It’s been quite a job getting those things together but I -finally ... got them together.”</p> - -<p>“I know how it is. How’s your family these days?”</p> - -<p>“They’re pretty well. My mother’s been better. Her legs -don’t bother her so much now.”</p> - -<p>“That’s good. Arthritis is pretty bad. I had a grandmother -who had it once.”</p> - -<p>“It’s pretty bad,” agreed Richard Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>They both paused and wondered what to say next. Kuppelton<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</span> -began to edge toward the gate. Murphy stood up. -“Let me see that thing as soon as you get it done.”</p> - -<p>“I certainly will.”</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy turned to Caroline who was typing at her -desk. “I’m going to be in conference for a while,” he said. -“Take care of the calls, will you?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, Mr Murphy.”</p> - -<p>“Big conference?” asked Kuppelton when Murphy had -gone.</p> - -<p>“I don’t know,” said Caroline and she stopped typing. -“They were talking about it. Something to do with policy, -I think.”</p> - -<p>Caroline got up from her desk and stretched. She had nice -slim legs, Kuppelton noticed. He wondered if his mother -would like her. It was important to him to have his mother -like his future wife—if he ever had one. She had been wonderful -about the other girls he had liked but somehow they -had never been quite what she thought his wife should be. -He was her favorite son and he could not disappoint her, -naturally.</p> - -<p>“I guess that leaves me out,” he said wearily, hoping she -would give him some good news.</p> - -<p>“Well, I wouldn’t worry too much,” she said, a little coldly -he thought, “you’ve got a good job now.”</p> - -<p>“Well, you’re right about that,” he said emphatically.</p> - -<p>“Oh, I know I am. Bob’s the fair-haired boy these days,” -she added.</p> - -<p>“I expect he is.”</p> - -<p>Caroline walked to the window and looked down at the -crowded street. “There really are a lot of people in this -town,” she said in a distant voice.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</span></p> - -<p>“There sure are.”</p> - -<p>“Do you ever wonder about all those people ... down -there?”</p> - -<p>This was the sort of talk that made Richard Kuppelton -nervous. He hated it when people started asking him vague -questions to which there were no sensible answers. “No, I -can’t say that I do.”</p> - -<p>She turned around and looked at him then, looked at him -rather sadly, he thought. “I’ve got work to do,” was all she -said.</p> - -<p>“See you, Caroline.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton was leaning back in his chair.</p> - -<p>“Pretty dull, isn’t it?” commented Dick.</p> - -<p>“The army was a lot duller.”</p> - -<p>“I thought that was one thing that it wasn’t ... dull.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton chuckled. “This is a lot better.”</p> - -<p>“Don’t you miss moving around?”</p> - -<p>He paused before he replied and Kuppelton wondered -what the truth really was; however, Robert Holton only said, -“No, no, I like staying in one place.”</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton turned back to his books of figures. He -wondered helplessly, as he wrote, how anyone could be as -deceitful as Robert Holton. It was obvious to him that Holton -would get the job he was to have gotten and he certainly -could not get this job without being deceitful. Richard Kuppelton -was worried about this. He was also worried because -he found himself hating Robert Holton and his mother would -never have approved of that.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Five</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">The ulcer was the most important thing.</p> - -<p>After the ulcer his wife, and then his job, and finally his -children. These were Mr Murphy’s interests. At the moment -the ulcer was more important to him than all the others -together.</p> - -<p>Ever since Mr Murphy could remember, he had had pains -in his stomach. Not really bad pains: just unpleasant sensations. -In recent years this had gotten worse. A month before, -a doctor examined him and said that he had an ulcer. The -doctor was very serious and there was talk of further tests. -Then Mr Murphy read a picture magazine article on cancer.</p> - -<p>He did not suspect cancer: he knew. The doctor, although -he had been rather grave, had said nothing about cancer, but -Mr Murphy was confident he had it. He had tried to do -everything right, to cure himself with bicarbonate of soda -and other medicines but the pains not only didn’t go away -but they got worse when he thought about them.</p> - -<p>He pushed his fist into his stomach for a moment and felt -the pain under his fingers. He cursed himself for having gone -to the party the night before.</p> - -<p>As he walked through his office he wished that he were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</span> -home in bed. It would have been harder, of course, to stay -home, because his wife was not very good with an illness. -She had a tendency to become hysterical if she had to do -anything unusual. No, it was better to be here at the office. -To be here even if he was dying. This last thought made him -uncomfortable and he put it out of his mind.</p> - -<p>He looked at his watch—eleven-fifteen. The meeting would -begin soon. Mr Golden insisted that all meetings begin on -time.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy left his office. As he walked through the -rooms he was pleased to have everyone speak to him politely. -He was a person of importance here and he had become this -all by himself with no help from anyone; practically no -help.</p> - -<p>The executive offices were larger and better decorated -than the other offices. There were several uniform rooms -where the vice-presidents (they used to be partners but Mr -Golden had changed that) sat at big desks and received clients -and dictated letters and did other things. Then there -was the anteroom. This was a small room with red leather -couches, a receptionist, some modern lamps and two portraits -on the walls. These paintings were of Mr Heywood and -Mr Golden. Beyond the anteroom was the boardroom.</p> - -<p>The receptionist smiled at Mr Murphy. He smiled back at -her and sat down in one of the red leather couches. Two -minor vice-presidents were also seated and waiting. They -greeted him soberly.</p> - -<p>“Nice morning,” said the younger of the vice-presidents; -he had been a lieutenant commander in the navy.</p> - -<p>“Certainly is,” said Mr Murphy.</p> - -<p>“I understood we’re in for a cold winter,” commented the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</span> -older of the two vice-presidents; he had been a commander -in the navy.</p> - -<p>“Nothing like a real old-fashioned Christmas,” said Mr -Murphy in a smooth low voice. He was conscious of a difference -in their voices. His own voice sounded rough to him -while their voices were always smooth and almost British. He -had noticed these differences before but there was nothing -much he could do about them. In the front office he always -felt less important because of this difference, and because of -this and other things, too, he was made to feel an outsider.</p> - -<p>The vice-presidents then talked in their cultured near-British -voices about a certain college football game. Mr -Murphy lay back in his red couch and wondered if perhaps -he should drink more milk. That was good for ulcers; but -nothing was good for cancer. He shuddered.</p> - -<p>A few more vice-presidents and section heads came into -the anteroom. They talked and laughed together and Oliver -L. Murphy talked and laughed with them.</p> - -<p>There was a buzz and everyone stopped talking. The receptionist -looked up from her desk. “They’re ready,” she -said.</p> - -<p>The men walked into the boardroom of Heywood and -Golden.</p> - -<p>A long room, with indirect lighting, thick carpets, and a -long table with armchairs around it: this was the boardroom. -On the walls were charts of stocks and trends.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood was sitting at one end of the table and Mr -Golden was sitting at the other end of the table. Murphy -sat down on the left of Mr Heywood. This was his usual -seat.</p> - -<p>“Hello, Oliver,” said Mr Heywood cheerily.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</span></p> - -<p>“Hello, Mr Heywood.” Murphy was suddenly glad, glad -that Mr Heywood had called him by his first name; he did -this only when he was well-pleased, or wanted something.</p> - -<p>Oliver L. Murphy leaned back in his leather armchair. Mr -Heywood sat rather limply in his own chair at the head of -the table. He waited for the others to be seated.</p> - -<p>Lawrence Heywood was a gentleman. He had a large -estate in Maryland and he collected prints; he had had three -wives and a number of children and, generally, he had managed -to do everything in a large but tasteful manner.</p> - -<p>He was a tall man in his late forties. Completely bald, his -neat round head shone pinkly under the indirect lights. His -face was smooth and neat and looked as if he had never worried -in his life. His voice was not near-British like his vice-presidents: -it was British. He had gone to school in Massachusetts -which explained a lot of it, thought Murphy.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood did everything properly. He had inherited -a lot of money. It seemed as if every year a new relative -would die and leave more money to him. His three wives had -all been beautiful and that was another thing to be said for -him—he knew how to choose women. Mr Murphy wondered -what it would be like to marry a beautiful woman.</p> - -<p>“How’s that new man in your office?” asked Mr Heywood -suddenly.</p> - -<p>“You mean Holton? He’s doing very well.”</p> - -<p>“I’m glad to hear it. We have a mutual friend,” and Mr -Heywood laughed gently at the thought.</p> - -<p>“Is that right? He’s got a good background, I guess,” said -Murphy.</p> - -<p>“I expect so. I used to know his mother. She was a very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</span> -attractive woman twenty years ago. She married...” Mr -Heywood decided not to reminisce in front of Murphy.</p> - -<p>“He’s worked in my section, in the office, just fine.”</p> - -<p>“That’s good. I don’t know him myself but I have some -plans for him. We’re going to the same party tonight.” Mr -Heywood laughed gently again. “Perhaps we’ll get to know -each other. It’s so hard ever getting to know employees in -the office,” sighed Mr Heywood. “I rather wish there weren’t -so many of them sometimes.”</p> - -<p>“I know just how it is.”</p> - -<p>“We going to call this meeting together?” It was Mr -Golden’s high voice from the other end of the table.</p> - -<p>“Certainly, Ben,” said Mr Heywood. “We’ll start right -now.” He picked up a black ebony gavel and tapped lightly, -apologetically with it. The men stopped talking. “Now, let’s -see,” began Mr Heywood.</p> - -<p>“The Steel account, that’s the big thing we’re going to talk -about,” said Mr Golden.</p> - -<p>“That’s right.” Mr Heywood sounded bored. “That’s right. -Well, gentlemen, it seems that we have a problem.”</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy relaxed in his chair. Mr Heywood’s voice, -gentle and cultured, came to him soothingly. The Steel account -was of no interest to Mr Murphy; in fact, these conferences -were generally of no interest to him. He was just there -to talk about Statistics.</p> - -<p>He played with papers in front of him. The voice of Mr -Heywood flowed about him. He was lost in a slow current -of polite vowels. The pain in his stomach was, for the time, -gone.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood spoke of the market, of stocks and shares, -of the state of the Union. He spoke convincingly because his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</span> -manner was convincing and, also, because his ideas and -facts had been given him by many clever men.</p> - -<p>Mr Golden sat at his end of the table and listened. He sat -there very straight, his little mouth set in a soft line of -pseudo-firmness. His small hands drummed on the table and -his eyes glanced about the room. His eyes were always in -motion. The fear of a thousand years was in Mr Golden’s -eyes.</p> - -<p>From time to time he interrupted. Mr Heywood would -pause and listen; then, when the other had finished, he -would continue in his gentle voice to tell the others what -clever men had told him about Steel, and the men, whose -livings depended upon him, listened respectfully to their -ideas.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy observed these things as he sat in his chair. -He felt less important in these conferences but he did feel -secure. Here in the boardroom he felt himself to be a part -of something large and opulent—of American Business. This -thought was comforting as well as sobering. There was no -security in the world to equal that of belonging. It made no -difference to what one belonged just as long as one was a -part of something big and secure. And what, Oliver Murphy -asked himself, could be bigger or more secure than Business? -He saw these things clearly because he had a philosopher’s -mind and the Celt’s ability to envisage life in a clear perspective. -He could, he knew, see the trees as well as the forest. -That was what made him different from the others. They -felt, perhaps, that they belonged, but he <em>knew</em>.</p> - -<p>Then the ulcer began to bother him.</p> - -<p>He no longer was conscious of Mr Heywood’s voice. The -only thing of importance now was the dull pain in his stomach.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</span> -He moved uneasily in his chair. He pushed a hand into -his stomach. This helped a little. The pain shifted slightly. -He followed it with his hand, his fingers pressing gently into -the pain.</p> - -<p>“We’ll want complete figures on the rise and fall of Arizona -Zinc during the past five years.”</p> - -<p>This was said by Mr Heywood. It registered in Mr -Murphy’s mind but he didn’t respond for a moment.</p> - -<p>“You’ll have those figures for us next meeting, won’t you?” -Heywood asked, irritation in his voice.</p> - -<p>“Certainly, Mr Heywood,” said Murphy. He sat up straight -and Mr Heywood nodded to him and then continued to talk.</p> - -<p>Oliver Murphy listened carefully to everything said. He -was beginning to sweat from the pain and the fear (more -fear than pain, he told himself) but still he strained to hear -every word and, slowly, as he listened, magic took place and -the pain went away.</p> - -<p>At last, when certain decisions had been made, Mr Heywood -adjourned the meeting.</p> - -<p>Murphy stood up. He felt better now. He wondered if perhaps -he might not be mistaken about the cancer.</p> - -<p>“Oh, Murphy.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, Mr Heywood?”</p> - -<p>“That fellow in your office, that Holton, you think he’s -quite efficient?”</p> - -<p>“I do.”</p> - -<p>“I wonder,” said Mr Heywood hesitantly, “I wonder how -he might work out as one of our customers’ men. Dealing -with the public, all that sort of thing.”</p> - -<p>“He’d probably do that very well.”</p> - -<p>“You could afford to lose him?”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</span></p> - -<p>“Oh, yes, I think so.”</p> - -<p>“I wish,” said Mr Heywood petulantly, “that I knew him -better. It’s terrible having so little contact with the office -people.”</p> - -<p>“I could send him in to see you.”</p> - -<p>“Good Lord, no! I wouldn’t know what to say. I’ll wait -and see him tonight at Mrs Stevanson’s.”</p> - -<p>“When do you think you’ll change him over?”</p> - -<p>“Oh, I don’t know. If I think he has the suitable, ah, temperament, -we might change him this week.”</p> - -<p>“I know he’ll be really tickled to hear this.”</p> - -<p>“I expect so.”</p> - -<p>“How is Mrs Heywood?” asked Murphy politely.</p> - -<p>“She’s fine, thank you,” said Mr Heywood blankly. Trouble, -decided Murphy. The third Mrs Heywood seemed to be following -the previous Mrs Heywoods.</p> - -<p>“Well...” said Murphy and he mumbled words to himself -as he walked toward the door. Mr Heywood stared -vacantly at him as he left.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy felt well when he was in motion. Walking -with great dignity from office to office, conscious of the eyes -of others upon him, was good for him. Aware of being a symbol -of success he forgot his pains and some of his worries.</p> - -<p>As he went into the Statistical office he could feel the atmosphere -change. The clerks and typists became busy.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy went to his desk. “Any calls?” he asked.</p> - -<p>Caroline shook her head. When she shook, her breasts -quivered slightly. Mr Murphy noticed this and his stomach -constricted with pain. Emotion was bad for him, according -to the doctors. He looked away and tried to think of something -else.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</span></p> - -<p>“No, there weren’t any calls. Some memorandums came -in from the other sections but that was all.”</p> - -<p>“Any letters?” He thought of his family.</p> - -<p>“Yes.” Caroline sounded surprised. “Right there on your -desk. Right where I always put them.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, yes.” Mr Murphy sat down at his desk and looked at -the pile of neat businesslike envelopes. He had no desire to -open them.</p> - -<p>Caroline typed rhythmically at her desk.</p> - -<p>“Say, Caroline....”</p> - -<p>She stopped and looked at him.</p> - -<p>“Tell Holton to step over here, will you?”</p> - -<p>“Sure, Mr Murphy.” She got up and went through the gate -and out into the office. He watched her legs as she walked -determinedly to the other end of the room. He was almost -pleased to feel the pain come flooding into his stomach. That -would teach his stomach, he thought viciously.</p> - -<p>The gate creaked and Robert Holton stood before him.</p> - -<p>“You want to see me, sir?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, yes, Holton. Sit down here. Over here on my left.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton sat down and looked expectant. Mr -Murphy wondered for a moment why he had asked to see -Holton. Then he remembered what Mr Heywood had said.</p> - -<p>“How’s everything coming, Holton?”</p> - -<p>“Just fine, Mr Murphy.”</p> - -<p>“Well, that’s good. Things <em>have</em> been going pretty well -here. But I suppose you find things pretty dull after the -army?”</p> - -<p>“No, no. I like this sort of work. I had enough moving -around.”</p> - -<p>“I should think so. Well, that’s what most of us want, I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</span> -guess,” said Mr Murphy. “We want to settle down. A lot of -people say they don’t like routine but I think everybody -does. It’s an important thing.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, sir. I think it is.”</p> - -<p>“There is,” said Mr Murphy, shutting his eyes for a moment -to give the illusion of pondering, “there is security in -working for a big house like Heywood and Golden.” He -opened his eyes and looked directly at Holton. “Don’t you -feel that’s true?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I hope so.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, it’s true.” Mr Murphy sighed and thought about going -out to the country for a rest. A place that would have -neither telephones nor mosquitoes. Most places had one or -the other.</p> - -<p>He looked at Robert Holton and wondered what he was -thinking. He seemed a likeable young man. He was quiet -and reserved and didn’t seem too aggressive. In fact that was -probably a fault that Mr Murphy had not thought of. Holton -was not a go-getter. He might lack initiative. That was -why he was quiet and reserved. Or, as Mr Murphy finally -thought, that might be a reason for his reserve.</p> - -<p>“Tell me, Holton,” said Murphy, “have you had any ideas -about, ah, your place here? I mean, what you would like to -do. Naturally you wouldn’t be interested in staying here, in -this department. With your education....” He permitted -his voice to fade.</p> - -<p>“No, I haven’t had any ideas; in fact, I haven’t thought -too much about it. You see this is all pretty different from -what it was like where I was in the army. I don’t suppose -I’m quite used to the idea ... well, you know....”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</span></p> - -<p>“I think I do. You would like to work in another department -perhaps?”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton looked at him. Mr Murphy could not tell -what he was thinking for his face was relaxed and calm. -“Well,” said Holton, “I don’t know. I don’t want to be out -of my depth. I’d like to make more money. I like the idea of -buying and selling stocks. I like that idea very much. In fact, -that’s one of the reasons I came here.”</p> - -<p>“Of course, there’s a lot of work to knowing about stocks -and bonds. You realize all the work that’s involved.”</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps a place will be found for you in that department. -It’s hard to say, though. With your, ah, background it -shouldn’t be too hard. That is, if you have the <em>stuff</em>.”</p> - -<p>“I hope so.”</p> - -<p>“Good.” Mr Murphy watched Caroline typing. “I understand,” -said Mr Murphy finally in a changed voice, “that -you’re going out tonight.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton looked surprised. “What do you mean?”</p> - -<p>“Mr Heywood said you and he were going to the same -party.”</p> - -<p>Holton smiled. “That’s right, I’d forgotten. Mrs Stevanson’s -giving a cocktail party. I guess that’s what he means.”</p> - -<p>“It won’t hurt to be nice to him there,” said Mr Murphy -with a laugh.</p> - -<p>“No, I don’t suppose so.”</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy looked at Holton and wondered what would -become of him. If he had more initiative he might be a -wealthy man because of his background (the important -thing was background), but he would probably not go very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</span> -far. He might not even go as far as Mr Murphy had and Mr -Murphy had been a success without background. Robert -Holton didn’t look as though he cared to be a success.</p> - -<p>“Well, don’t let your night life interfere with business,” -said Mr Murphy lightly.</p> - -<p>“No,” said Holton rising, “I won’t.”</p> - -<p>With a nod Mr Murphy dismissed him.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy watched Caroline absently as she typed. Her -hair was rather long. It must be a nuisance to help her into -a coat, he thought suddenly. That was something he hated -to do. Whenever he helped a woman into a coat there was, -first, a certain struggle to get her arms into the sleeves. Some -women were better than others at this. And then, second, -there was the problem of hair. If the woman had long hair -it was inevitably caught inside the coat. This meant that her -first motion was usually to free her hair and that involved a -wild freeing and flinging of the hair which for anyone still -posted behind her meant running a risk of becoming entangled. -Mr Murphy wondered about these problems as he -looked at Caroline’s long dark hair.</p> - -<p>He had started to work on his letters (the ones in the -business envelopes) when Richard Kuppelton appeared.</p> - -<p>“Yes?”</p> - -<p>“I’ve got the first part of that report here, the one on aircraft,” -said Kuppelton.</p> - -<p>“Yes?” Mr Murphy made himself sound cold and official.</p> - -<p>“Well, I wondered if you cared to look at them ... what -I’ve done so far, I mean.”</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy looked at him for a moment without speaking. -When Mr Murphy had first come to work for Heywood -and Golden his then immediate boss had impressed him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</span> -greatly by just looking at him for several seconds at a time -without speaking. Mr Murphy had adopted the mannerism -and over the years had improved it until now he could be -very frightening. He was that way now.</p> - -<p>“You want me to do it for you?” he asked finally.</p> - -<p>“No ... no, sir, I didn’t mean that. I just thought you -would like to see what I got done.” Kuppelton was uncomfortable -and Mr Murphy decided that he had done enough.</p> - -<p>“Why, I’d be glad to look at it,” he said.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton brightened. “Thank you. I only wanted you to -see the form I was using here. That was all. I’m making my -conclusions in a slightly different way from usual and I -thought....”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I’ll take a look at it.”</p> - -<p>Kuppelton put a pile of papers down on Mr Murphy’s -desk.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy nodded at him and Kuppelton left quickly. -Mr Murphy felt much better after exercising his power. Poor -Kuppelton was a good man in an office but he would never -go very far because he didn’t have assurance. He would be -promoted after the first of the year if Holton were moved -out. That would make Kuppelton happy, which was a -good thing. It wasn’t bad, thought Mr Murphy, to have contented -people about you in a discontented world. He relaxed -in his chair and then the pains started again.</p> - -<p>This time the ache was about an inch below his belt and -slightly toward the left (his appendix was on the right and, -besides, his appendix was in good shape). The pain began to -move toward the center. Quickly he pressed his fingers into -the pain.</p> - -<p>His heart beat rapidly and sweat formed on his face. If<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</span> -the pain didn’t go away by the count of ten he would get -up and take the special medicine his doctor had given him.</p> - -<p>Frightened, Mr Murphy counted and the pain, not subject -to this magic, did not go away.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Six</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">“It’s twelve o’clock,” Caroline said to Mr Murphy. “I -think I’ll go out to lunch, if that’s O.K.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, yes, Caroline.”</p> - -<p>She thought he looked rather pale. She was about to ask -him how he felt but she stopped herself, remembering how -he disliked talking about his health. She had noticed that -during the last year he had been taking a lot of medicine. -Perhaps he was going to die. Caroline began to compose a -little drama to herself. Mr Murphy had just collapsed across -his desk and she had been the only one to keep a clear -head....</p> - -<p>“You coming, Caroline?” It was Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Be right there.” She arranged the papers on her desk, -shut the drawers and joined Robert Holton outside the gate -of the railing.</p> - -<p>“Where’ll we eat today?” asked Holton.</p> - -<p>“At <em>the</em> restaurant, of course. Where did you think we -would?”</p> - -<p>“Oh, I don’t know.” He was smiling now and she wondered -if he could have been trying to be funny; she could -never be sure.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</span></p> - -<p>“Sometimes you don’t make sense,” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>They were almost through the door when one of the secretaries -called to Holton. “Phone, Bob.”</p> - -<p>She waited for him at the door. He went over to his desk -and answered the phone. He seemed excited, she noticed, -and he talked very quickly. She wished she could hear what -he was saying. Finally, he finished and joined her.</p> - -<p>“Who was that?”</p> - -<p>“An old friend of mine.”</p> - -<p>“Man or woman?”</p> - -<p>“A guy I used to know. He just got in town. He comes -from out West and I haven’t seen him for a couple of years.”</p> - -<p>“You knew him in the army?”</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>They walked through the offices to the elevator and Holton -pressed the button.</p> - -<p>“What’s he doing in town?”</p> - -<p>“He’s just visiting. I’m going to see him this afternoon. -He’s coming over here after lunch.”</p> - -<p>“That’ll be nice. What does he look like?” She asked this -gaily, hoping to have some effect on him. She didn’t, though.</p> - -<p>“I don’t know. He looks all right, I guess.”</p> - -<p>“You certainly are good at description. Be sure to let me -meet him.”</p> - -<p>“I will.”</p> - -<p>The elevator stopped for them and they pushed into the -lunch-going crowd. With a rush they descended to the street -floor.</p> - -<p>Outside the sun shone brightly above the street. The sky -was a vivid blue and the air smelt clean in spite of the exhaust -fumes and the people of the city. The day was warm.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</span></p> - -<p>They walked along the crowded street. Men of affairs -with brief cases walked in and out of swinging glass doors. -Younger men of affairs, wearing bowler hats and dark coats -with darker velvet lapels, marched solemnly in the parade -of business. The white-faced clerks squinted at the bright -sun. Women secretaries walked together, admiring themselves -in the windows. As they walked they talked to each -other and to themselves.</p> - -<p>“What a nice day,” said Caroline, breathing deeply and -coughing as the exhaust fumes tickled her throat.</p> - -<p>“Must be nice in the country,” commented Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Not you too?” Caroline laughed. “First Murphy and now -you want to go out in the country.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t want to go. I just said it must be pleasant there.” -They crossed a street and he looked carefully to left and -right and when they finally crossed the street the crowd had -gone around them and the light was beginning to change -again.</p> - -<p>“Why do you take so long?” said Caroline disagreeably.</p> - -<p>“Just careful, that’s all.”</p> - -<p>They walked in silence then. She was very conscious of -his being beside her, of her arm being in his. This troubled -Caroline, this awareness. She looked at Holton’s face as they -walked down the crowded street. There was nothing in his -face that she would like to have seen. This made her feel -better because he was not the right person.</p> - -<p>Over the high gray buildings was a narrow section of -bright blue sky. It was almost too bright and contrasted -strangely with the dingy buildings and the dark streets. Caroline -watched the blue sky suspended upon the buildings. No -clouds were in the sky but from time to time a bird would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</span> -circle in it. And, as she watched the sky, a large air liner, -like a rigid bird, moved straightly eastward.</p> - -<p>Caroline breathed deeply again, careful this time not to -get the exhaust fumes too far down in her lungs. She coughed -anyway.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa looked through the plate-glass window -at the street. She had been watching off and on for half an -hour, waiting for Robert Holton to come.</p> - -<p>Some days he would come in at twelve and other days at -twelve-thirty, and then there had been certain days when -he’d not come in at all and those were bad days for Marjorie -Ventusa.</p> - -<p>It was a few minutes after twelve when she saw him walking -down the street, pushing through the crowd, a man different -from all the others walking in the street. She frowned -when she saw the pretty secretary with him. Marjorie hated -this girl but she was helpless and could only hate all the -others who seemed close to Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>She pretended to be busy cleaning a table when they -came in.</p> - -<p>“Hello, Marjorie,” said Holton and he and Caroline came -over to her table.</p> - -<p>“Oh, hello, it’s you again.” She made herself sound matter-of-fact -and bored, but her throat was suddenly full and she -had to clear it before she could speak again. “What you going -to eat today?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t know,” said Holton and he and Caroline sat down -at the table, across from each other. “What do you want, -Caroline?”</p> - -<p>“I’d like to see a menu, I think,” said Caroline in a voice<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</span> -that Marjorie Ventusa would like to have choked out of her.</p> - -<p>“Here,” said Marjorie and she handed them two white -menus.</p> - -<p>They studied the menus.</p> - -<p>Many people were coming in and going out of the restaurant. -All the tables were full now and there were people -standing and waiting for tables. Some of her customers were -beginning to look at her, waiting for her to take their order. -She hoped Mrs Merrin would not notice how long she was -taking with Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“I think,” said Caroline, frowning a thin hair-wide frown, -“I think I will have some tomato juice, and a lamb chop....”</p> - -<p>“No more lamb chops,” said Marjorie, trying to keep the -triumph from her voice.</p> - -<p>The hair-wide frown became a scowl. “Then I’ll have the -veal.”</p> - -<p>“Any vegetables?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, the spinach.”</p> - -<p>“You can have one other.”</p> - -<p>“That’s all.”</p> - -<p>And Marjorie thought, “the” spinach indeed. Why was it -that when these people wanted to sound elegant they would -talk about everything as “the”?</p> - -<p>“What do you want, Mr Holton?” She wished that she -had the nerve to call him Bob, the right to call him that.</p> - -<p>“Oh, I think I’ll take the same.”</p> - -<p>“Coffee, tea, or milk?” She said the words as though they -were one word.</p> - -<p>They both asked for coffee and Marjorie went quickly out -of the dining room and into the kitchen.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</span></p> - -<p>There was much more steam in the kitchen now than -there had been at breakfast; as the day passed the kitchen -got hotter, and steamier, and the cooks got more irritable -and Mrs Merrin more nervous and Marjorie Ventusa would -become tired and sad.</p> - -<p>She called the new orders to the cook. Then she picked up -two small glasses of tomato juice and put them on her tray. -She fingered one of them a moment, thinking that soon he -would be drinking from it. She enjoyed thinking of this, -though it only made her desire stronger and her sadness -greater.</p> - -<p>She didn’t want to go back yet. She hoped Mrs Merrin -would not come into the kitchen for a while.</p> - -<p>But one of the swinging doors opened and Mrs Merrin -walked into the kitchen. Quickly Marjorie picked up her tray -and went back to the dining room.</p> - -<p>Caroline and Robert Holton were talking seriously and -Marjorie, because of the noise of voices in the dining room, -couldn’t hear what they were saying.</p> - -<p>They stopped talking as she came up to them.</p> - -<p>“Here you are,” said Marjorie Ventusa brightly, putting -the glasses of tomato juice on the table.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton smiled at her, showing his white even teeth.</p> - -<p>“Have you got a date for tonight?” asked Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“You know I always do.”</p> - -<p>“A sailor maybe?”</p> - -<p>“I’m not saying.”</p> - -<p>“Get one who’ll take you to Italy.”</p> - -<p>This was cruel but Marjorie smiled and forgave him. She -had not been joking when they spoke of Italy. She did not -think it fair of him to say this in front of the pretty girl, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</span> -Marjorie forgave him because he was young and because she -felt about him in a certain way.</p> - -<p>“Maybe we’ll go to Capri together,” she said. “Is it nice -there?”</p> - -<p>Holton nodded. “Beautiful.”</p> - -<p>Caroline said, “I’m sure you don’t want to take up any -more of her time, Bob. She’s got a lot of things to do.” Caroline -gave Marjorie a brilliant smile. A man from the table -next to theirs said loudly, “When are you bringing me my -soup?”</p> - -<p>“In just a minute, sir.” Marjorie looked at Robert Holton -once again, tried to catch his eye but he was talking now to -Caroline and Marjorie Ventusa had been put quietly from -his mind. She went back to the kitchen.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Outside the restaurant Richard Kuppelton and the receptionist -Ruth were wondering whether anybody they knew -would be in the restaurant; otherwise they would have to -wait for a table.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton looked through the window. He blinked nearsightedly. -Then he saw Robert Holton and Caroline.</p> - -<p>“Caroline’s in there,” he said.</p> - -<p>“With Bob?”</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>“Well, let’s go on in.” Ruth liked Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Hello, hello,” said Kuppelton heartily when they were -inside.</p> - -<p>Caroline and Robert Holton appeared glad to see them.</p> - -<p>“My gracious, it certainly is crowded,” said Ruth, pointing -to the people standing.</p> - -<p>“Lucky you people were here,” said Kuppelton.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</span></p> - -<p>“I don’t,” said Ruth, “see how the town stays so crowded -all the time. I could understand it during the war but now -... well, it’s just impossible to go anywhere or do anything.”</p> - -<p>“I know,” said Holton. “Took me months to get a room.”</p> - -<p>“Is it nice?” asked Caroline.</p> - -<p>He shook his head. “It’s very depressing.”</p> - -<p>“I guess I’m lucky to be living with my family,” said Kuppelton. -“It’s real nice out where we are and there aren’t so -many people. I’d hate to have to live in the city.”</p> - -<p>They talked of the places where they lived and then they -started to talk of the places where they would like to live.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton watched Holton as he talked and he tried to -learn, by concentrating intensely, what he was thinking; to -learn if Mr Murphy had said he would promote him. Holton’s -smooth forehead, however, was a wall and Kuppelton -could not pierce it, could not discover the dreams behind it.</p> - -<p>Marjorie came over to their table and put two plates of -veal in front of Caroline and Robert. The veal was a uniform -tan color, floating in a sea of red sauce. Two saucers of dark-green -spinach floating in water were put beside the plates -of veal.</p> - -<p>“Looks good, doesn’t it?” commented Marjorie.</p> - -<p>“Sure, sure,” said Holton, looking at his plate with distaste.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton ordered veal and Marjorie left.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton looked at Ruth. She was dark, with a big nose -and with self-pitying eyes. Her complexion was oily and she -wore too much make-up. Ruth liked all men; she was sitting -very close to Robert Holton now.</p> - -<p>“Any interesting people come into the office?” asked Holton,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</span> -turning to Ruth: as receptionist she was always able to -tell them about celebrities.</p> - -<p>Ruth nodded. “Laura Whitner was in to see Mr Heywood.”</p> - -<p>Caroline was interested. “She’s the movie star, isn’t she?”</p> - -<p>Ruth nodded again, a birdlike motion. “Why, she used to -be one of the biggest stars. I used to go see all her pictures. -My gracious, they were wonderful.”</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa returned with veal for Kuppelton and -the ham and eggs for Ruth.</p> - -<p>“Oh, thank you,” said Ruth. “I love ham,” she added.</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton looked at Ruth with disapproval. She -was an aggressive woman and he was tired of aggressive -women. His mother was that way. Caroline was more what -he wanted. She had spirit but was not aggressive. There was -a difference between spirit and aggressiveness. He could not -quite define it but still there was a difference. Caroline could -act irritated with him and he would not mind. And she always -smiled, even when she was angry; he could not feel -that a woman who always smiled was aggressive. She had a -mind of her own but then he could handle that. Eating veal, -Richard Kuppelton felt he could handle anything.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton finished eating. He sat back in his chair -and yawned.</p> - -<p>“Bored?” asked Caroline.</p> - -<p>He shook his head. “No, not very. Just sleepy.”</p> - -<p>“Well, I like that!” exclaimed Ruth. “You’d think we weren’t -good enough for him.” She said this in a way to let him -know she was being humorous.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton decided, however, to develop what she’d said. -“Sure, he’s a good friend of Mr Heywood.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</span></p> - -<p>Ruth was impressed. “I certainly wish I had your contacts -then. I sure wouldn’t be working in this lousy job.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton wanted to know what was wrong with her -job.</p> - -<p>“Oh, you know how it is. Doing the same thing day after -day. It makes me sick. I’d like to do something exciting.”</p> - -<p>“Like what?” asked Richard Kuppelton. These were his -secret wishes, too, but he would never have put them into -words. He was delighted to hear someone else say them.</p> - -<p>Ruth was not sure just what she wanted. She decided she -would like to travel. Richard Kuppelton admitted, then, that -he would like to travel. Caroline thought a moment and -agreed with them that to travel would be the best thing -anyone could do, the thing she wanted to do.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton, who had traveled, said that he didn’t care -to leave New York again: not for many years at least.</p> - -<p>“You’re not adventurous,” said Caroline sadly.</p> - -<p>Ruth protected him. “After all, he’s had some adventures. -He was in the war.”</p> - -<p>Richard Kuppelton was glad that Holton did not talk -about the war. It made too great a difference between them -and the women might have called attention to this difference.</p> - -<p>He disliked Robert Holton because he was afraid of him. -It was more than the threat to his job, much more than that. -Caroline, whom Kuppelton wanted, seemed interested in -him. He flattered himself that she was no more interested in -Holton than she was in himself; still he was a threat.</p> - -<p>Ruth was moving closer to Robert Holton now. Her thick -curved lips, heavily painted a dark red, looked unpleasantly -moist. Kuppelton had a desire to dry her mouth. He was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</span> -amused, though, at the way she was playing up to Holton. -She liked him now because of his influence, not because he -was good-looking. Although Kuppelton, for one, couldn’t see -his handsomeness. Holton was well-built but not much better -than he was; of course, Kuppelton had a slight stomach -and Holton didn’t, but a few days of exercise and he could -be as slim. He made a mental note to do some exercise.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa arranged her hair in front of the steamy -mirror. It didn’t look too bad when she wore it over her ears. -She pinned it back carefully. Perhaps she wouldn’t have to -get a snood after all.</p> - -<p>She put some other people’s orders on her tray and left the -kitchen. The crowd waiting to be seated was beginning to -thin and soon the lunch rush would be over.</p> - -<p>She waited on the customers whose orders she had and -then she moved over to the table where Robert Holton was -sitting. He was very handsome, she thought. She looked at -the others with him and she envied them all. They didn’t -understand what he was, how important he was.</p> - -<p>The girl with the blue eyes and slim legs she could not -like. This was her rival—one of her rivals, anyway. She was -glad that he never seemed particularly interested in this girl -and, for that matter, the girl didn’t seem interested in him. -Still she was near, worked with him probably: she was a -danger.</p> - -<p>Then Marjorie Ventusa did not like the dark-haired girl -with the big nose who sat so close to him, but at least she -was not a danger. She almost pitied this girl who had moved -her chair so close to his that their legs were touching.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</span></p> - -<p>The other man was dull-looking and obviously interested -in the girl with the blue eyes. Marjorie Ventusa wished him -luck. Then, having thought these things about her customers, -she walked over to their table.</p> - -<p>“Ready for dessert?” asked Marjorie Ventusa cheerfully, -trying not to look at Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>They were ready.</p> - -<p>Everyone decided to have vanilla ice cream. Slowly she -cleared the table. This was a hard thing to do, because she -had to act as if she were in a hurry.</p> - -<p>They talked at the table as though she weren’t there. She -was, naturally, used to that: she had been a waitress a long -time, but today she was almost angry at being treated like -a piece of furniture. She could do nothing about it, though. -She picked up her tray and went into the kitchen.</p> - -<p>Marjorie ordered the ice cream. As she waited she wondered -if there was any way she could ever see Robert Holton -in his other life: the mysterious important life he had in the -brokerage firm. She tried to think of some way she could get -to know him in this other life. She could think of nothing.</p> - -<p>The ice cream was ready and she took it back to the dining -room.</p> - -<p>She gave them their dessert and only Holton said thank -you. She tried to expand this one phrase into a conversation -but it was too difficult. So she walked over to the next table -which was now empty. Slowly she placed dishes on her tray. -She was near enough to them to hear what they were saying.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton was talking about his job: “I don’t mind -being in an office all day. I can’t see why people mind that -so much.”</p> - -<p>The dark girl with the big nose disagreed: “It’s much<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</span> -more natural to be able to wander around like you want to -do. It’s natural to travel, I think.”</p> - -<p>He laughed. Marjorie liked his laugh. He said, “You should -get married, that’s what you should do.”</p> - -<p>The dark girl became coquettish. “But I haven’t had any -offers yet. Of course, I’m open to any.”</p> - -<p>The bitch, thought Marjorie Ventusa, disliking her now.</p> - -<p>“You shouldn’t have any trouble,” said Holton gallantly -and Marjorie liked him for saying this.</p> - -<p>“You’re just saying that.”</p> - -<p>Then the girl with the blue eyes and the dull man began -to talk together and their voices blended into the ocean-like -sound of many voices in the restaurant.</p> - -<p>They finished the ice cream.</p> - -<p>Marjorie walked over to the table. “Will there be anything -else?” she asked officially.</p> - -<p>There was nothing else.</p> - -<p>“We’ll have our check, please, Marjorie,” said Robert Holton -and she liked the way he said her name.</p> - -<p>“Certainly.” She went to the cashier and had the four -checks totalled. Then she came back.</p> - -<p>They paid her.</p> - -<p>“Back to work,” said the blue-eyed girl with a sigh.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Seven</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">“Here we are,” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>Ruth went to her desk in the reception room. “I’ll see you -all later,” she said and she sat down and took out a large -gold compact. Caroline watched her a moment as she powdered -her nose, watched her with a certain pity because she -was ugly.</p> - -<p>“Come on,” said Kuppelton and he and Robert Holton -walked on either side of her through the office. She was conscious -of the envious stares of the other girls and she smiled -at them as nicely as she could, knowing that they hated her -for her smile.</p> - -<p>Mr Murphy was not in the Statistical office. Everyone else -was back, though. As she entered the room Caroline was -conscious of a difference in the atmosphere. The women -were quieter than usual and the men were watching. She -looked and saw, sitting at Holton’s desk, an army officer.</p> - -<p>“Jim!” said Holton when he saw him; the other looked up.</p> - -<p>“Hi,” he said and he got to his feet. They shook hands -with Anglo-Saxon restraint, muttering monosyllables of greeting, -each asking about the other’s health.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton went to his own desk without speaking to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</span> -army officer. Caroline stood expectantly beside Robert Holton, -waiting to be introduced.</p> - -<p>“This,” said Holton finally, “is Caroline. Caroline, meet -Jim Trebling.”</p> - -<p>“How do you do,” said Trebling.</p> - -<p>“How do you do,” said Caroline and they shook hands. -His hand, she noticed, was rough and hard.</p> - -<p>“You live in New York?” asked Caroline. This was always -a good beginning because it could lead to all sorts of confessions.</p> - -<p>He shook his head. “No, I’m from California. I’m from Los -Angeles.”</p> - -<p>She was impressed. “That’s where Hollywood is, isn’t it? -You from Hollywood?”</p> - -<p>No, he was not from Hollywood. He lived near by.</p> - -<p>“I’d certainly like to visit out there.”</p> - -<p>“It’s not as interesting as New York.”</p> - -<p>She gave a little laugh to show her scorn for New York, -her laugh leveling the buildings and cracking Grant’s Tomb. -“It’s awful here,” she said. “We have an awful climate.”</p> - -<p>He raised the buildings again. “Oh, I think it’s pretty exciting. -You’ve got so many things. This is really the first -time I’ve seen New York. Bob and I went overseas from here -and we came back here but I never really saw the town.”</p> - -<p>“Are you regular army?” she asked. Men in uniform were -becoming rare.</p> - -<p>“No, I’m getting out soon. I signed up for a little while -longer.”</p> - -<p>“Oh.”</p> - -<p>He and Robert Holton began to talk then about the -army and she felt shut out. She stood there wondering<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</span> -whether she should go or not. She rather liked this young -man. He was a lieutenant, at least he had one bar on his -shoulder and she thought that lieutenants wore a single bar: -the war had been such a long time ago and she had forgotten -so many things.</p> - -<p>He had dark eyes and bleached-looking hair which Caroline -had always found attractive in men. His skin was rather -pale for a Californian; all Californians had brown skin in her -imagination. He was not particularly handsome, though he -looked rather distinguished, with sharp features and circles -under his eyes.</p> - -<p>“Are you in the East long?” she asked.</p> - -<p>He looked at her as if he had forgotten she was there; -still, he was very polite. “No, I’m only here for a week.”</p> - -<p>“Looking around?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, looking around.”</p> - -<p>“Caroline,” said Robert Holton, as though explaining an -important thing, “Caroline is the belle of the office.”</p> - -<p>“I can see that,” said Trebling without too much effort, -saying it almost naturally, a hard thing to do.</p> - -<p>“Oh, thank you,” said Caroline. Now she didn’t know what -to say. She looked at his ribbons. She counted them mechanically, -the way she did before the war ended: five ribbons. -“You must’ve been around quite a bit,” she said finally, -speaking before the silence her last words had made became -another conversation.</p> - -<p>Trebling nodded seriously. “Yes, I saw quite a bit. No -more than Bob did, though.”</p> - -<p>“That must’ve been nice,” said Caroline, “your being able -to serve together everywhere.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, it was.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</span></p> - -<p>She knew that they were waiting for her to go but she -wasn’t ready yet. “Do you like being in the army in peacetime?”</p> - -<p>“No, not particularly.”</p> - -<p>“Well, you’ll be out soon, I suppose.”</p> - -<p>“Quite soon.”</p> - -<p>She had to go now. She couldn’t understand what kept her -standing there foolishly trying to make a conversation by -herself. It was not as if Lieutenant Trebling were handsome -or unusual.</p> - -<p>Caroline made her great effort. “Well,” she said, “I guess -I’ll see you later, Mr Trebling.” Was that the right name? -She wasn’t sure. She hoped she hadn’t said it wrong.</p> - -<p>“Nice to have met you, Caroline.” She smiled at him, her -face at a three-quarter angle: her most flattering angle. -Then, with great nonchalance, she walked slowly back to -her desk.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Trebling was surprised at the way Holton looked out of -uniform.</p> - -<p>To have lived several years with a person who looked always -one way and then to see him later another way is startling. -Jim Trebling had always thought of Holton as a soldier: -he could not get used to him as a civilian in an office.</p> - -<p>“Sit down, Jim.” Holton pointed to a chair beside his desk. -They both sat down. Trebling felt a little awkward. The -office was too formal for him and he was not at ease.</p> - -<p>Jim looked at Holton, trying to get accustomed to him. -“You’ve certainly changed. I don’t know if I’d have recognized -you.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton laughed a little self-consciously. “These<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</span> -civilian clothes <em>are</em> different. They make you feel different.”</p> - -<p>“You’re really settling down, I guess.”</p> - -<p>“I’m afraid so.”</p> - -<p>“I wish I could. Maybe I will when I get out ... I don’t -know.”</p> - -<p>“What do you think you’re going to do?”</p> - -<p>Jim shrugged. “I don’t know. I’ve been thinking of starting -some kind of a business. You know, what we used to talk -about before you got out.”</p> - -<p>Holton nodded. “That’s a good idea, I guess. I thought of -it, too, but of course the odds are against you.”</p> - -<p>Trebling was surprised to hear Holton say this. “I know -it,” he said.</p> - -<p>Holton saw then that he hadn’t said the right thing. He -tried to explain. “I don’t mean you shouldn’t start a business. -I just mean something might go wrong.” He was saying -worse things now; he stopped.</p> - -<p>Jim changed the subject. “How do you like being out?”</p> - -<p>“Oh, it’s pretty wonderful. Just to be able to stay in one -place....”</p> - -<p>“I guess it’s nice for a while.”</p> - -<p>Holton sighed. “I don’t think I’ll ever travel again.”</p> - -<p>Jim was surprised. “I thought you were going to go around -the world. Don’t you remember when we used to talk about -seeing more of Italy?”</p> - -<p>“Well, maybe sometime. I hadn’t stopped moving for very -long then.”</p> - -<p>“No, that’s right, you hadn’t.” As they talked Jim Trebling -became more uneasy. This was a person he had not met -before and he was surprised and sorry. Robert Holton had -been different as a soldier.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</span></p> - -<p>As they talked, the words forming conventional patterns -and hiding their real thoughts, Jim thought of the war.</p> - -<p>“You remember the time we were in Florence?”</p> - -<p>Holton said that he remembered it very well.</p> - -<p>They spoke then of Florence and as they talked Jim Trebling -began to remember many things.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The city had been liberated for several months. The war -was almost over and Holton and Trebling were able to take a -week’s leave: they went to Florence.</p> - -<p>Parts of the city had been badly damaged. The old buildings -on the Arno had been leveled in many places but the -Ponte Vecchio was still there. These things had not been -very important, however, because they had not gone to see -antiques. They had gone to rest, to meet women, and to try -to find enough liquor to get drunk on.</p> - -<p>They stayed with a family outside of the town; they -stayed in a place called Fiesole.</p> - -<p>Trebling remembered the house clearly: long and rambling, -dirty-white stucco with small iron balconies beneath -the larger windows. A rock garden, dusty gray-green olive -trees and an unearthly view of the valley in which was -Florence.</p> - -<p>The house belonged to a family named Bruno, friends of -Robert Holton’s mother. They had invited the two of them -to stay as long as they liked: in those days it was a good -policy to have American soldiers in one’s home.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton had liked a girl named Carla. Trebling had -liked her too, but not as much as Holton did. He remembered -one night when the three had sat on the terrace, -watching the city.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</span></p> - -<p>It was summer and the night was warm and vibrant. The -city lights glittered in the valley-cup; the lights were golden -and flickering and the river shone darkly.</p> - -<p>They sat on a stone ledge, their feet dangling above the -rock garden. Carla was between them; her hair was dark and -her face pale. They sat like this, watching the lights of the -city and listening to the sound of insects whirring in the -night.</p> - -<p>And Jim had said, embarrassed by the long silence, “It’s -so peaceful here.”</p> - -<p>The other two acted as if they had not heard him. Holton, -sitting close beside Carla, touched her.</p> - -<p>And then she had said, “It seems like such a long time -ago.” They thought of this as they sat in the blue darkness.</p> - -<p>Holton finally spoke, saying, “Isn’t it a shame that this -has to change again?”</p> - -<p>They had been surprised to hear him say this; Trebling -was more surprised than Carla because, though he had -known Holton longer, she knew him better. Trebling was -surprised to hear Holton speak seriously: he was never serious -at other times. He always tried to be funny.</p> - -<p>“Why <em>should</em> this change again?” asked Carla, looking at -him, trying to tell his expression in the dark.</p> - -<p>Holton only sighed and said, “Because everything changes -when you go away.”</p> - -<p>“You can come back,” said Carla and Jim remembered -now the exact way she had said that and he was sorry for -her.</p> - -<p>Holton didn’t answer for a moment and then he had said, -“Yes, I suppose you can.” They knew then that he would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</span> -not come back and Trebling could sense her sadness as they -watched the lights flickering below them.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>“Do you remember Carla?” asked Jim suddenly, his mind -adjusting to the present.</p> - -<p>“The girl in Florence? Sure, I remember her. Was that her -name ... Carla?”</p> - -<p>“That’s right.”</p> - -<p>“She was very nice looking, wasn’t she?”</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>“Sure, I remember her.”</p> - -<p>“I thought you liked her quite a bit,” said Trebling, not -looking at Holton.</p> - -<p>“I suppose I did. We ran into a lot of people, though. -There were so many people.”</p> - -<p>Trebling agreed that there had been a number of people -in Europe, people they had known.</p> - -<p>“That was a good town, Florence,” said Holton suddenly.</p> - -<p>“It was.”</p> - -<p>“We were there a week, weren’t we?”</p> - -<p>“About that.”</p> - -<p>Holton nodded, and Trebling watched him to see how he -felt; Holton’s face told him nothing, though. He was only -remembering.</p> - -<p>“It’s certainly a nice feeling to be out,” said Holton -finally.</p> - -<p>“I guess it must be.”</p> - -<p>“Not having to worry about being moved from place to -place.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>They were standing in the Roman Forum. All around them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</span> -were pieces of shattered marble, shattered in earlier wars. -Trebling and Holton had looked at three slender columns of -marble, all that was left of a temple.</p> - -<p>Trebling had remarked, “I’ll bet those pillars are pretty -old.”</p> - -<p>Holton agreed, “Maybe a thousand years old.”</p> - -<p>Together they had looked at the three columns of the -ruined temple.</p> - -<p>Trebling asked, “Do you think you would’ve ever gotten -here except in the army?”</p> - -<p>“No. I don’t guess so.”</p> - -<p>“I probably wouldn’t have either.”</p> - -<p>“It’s sort of interesting.”</p> - -<p>And Trebling had said, “I like the traveling part of all -this.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton agreed to this and then they began to complain -about other things.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Trebling sat back in his chair and looked around the office. -He didn’t like offices and he didn’t like this one at all. The -clear constant light standardized the people in the room.</p> - -<p>“How do you like it here?” he asked.</p> - -<p>Holton shrugged. “O.K., I suppose. It’s something to do.”</p> - -<p>“You think you’ll stay in this sort of work?”</p> - -<p>“Probably, I don’t know yet.”</p> - -<p>“I had thought you might go into this new thing with -me.</p> - -<p>“Well....”</p> - -<p>Neither spoke for a moment.</p> - -<p>Finally Trebling asked, “Can I smoke in here?”</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry, Jim, but....”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</span></p> - -<p>“Sure, I know: rules.”</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry. These people are awful stiff about a lot of -things.”</p> - -<p>Jim Trebling wished again that he hadn’t come. He had -an impulse to run away. “What’re you doing tonight?” he -asked finally.</p> - -<p>“I’m going to a big cocktail party.”</p> - -<p>“Being social, eh?”</p> - -<p>“Well, you know you have to make contacts...” he continued, -explaining himself carefully.</p> - -<p>Then Holton asked Jim about himself, and he listened as -Jim talked. The cataloguing of army camps, the different -duties in each, the girl he had decided to marry and then -didn’t, his current leave of absence, the trip across the country, -the pleasure of seeing Robert Holton again.</p> - -<p>Trebling told this story automatically, as one always tells -a much-told personal story and as he told this he wondered -what had happened to Holton.</p> - -<p>In the war he had been considered wild. He had spent -most of the time laughing at things. He had been easily -bored and now he was changed.</p> - -<p>“It must be nice to be out,” Trebling repeated, not knowing -what else to say.</p> - -<p>And Robert Holton explained to him in detail why it was -so nice to be free.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Paris had been the most interesting place of all. They had -spent two days there. Trebling had been very conscientious -and had insisted that they see palaces and landmarks and -they had actually tried to see a few but then Holton decided -that there was not enough time for that. They met two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</span> -girls. Trebling could not remember their names; he could -remember nothing about them except that they were rather -pretty and claimed to be sisters.</p> - -<p>The girls had suggested they go on a picnic. Holton had -liked this idea and he managed to get some food from the -mess officer of a near-by company. They took bicycles and -drove out of Paris. They rode through Sèvres and some small -towns on the outskirts. They approached Versailles but the -girls didn’t care to go into the town and so they turned left -from the main road. At a small town called Jouy-en-Josas -they stopped, and on the dark green lawn of a bombed-out -château they had their picnic.</p> - -<p>The sky was overcast that day. And the woods that surrounded -the château were blue and smoky and looked mysterious, -like the pictures of enchanted forests in children’s -books.</p> - -<p>When they had finished lunch Holton wanted to go walk -in the woods. Only one of the girls spoke English.</p> - -<p>“Let’s take a walk in the woods,” Holton suggested.</p> - -<p>The two girls giggled and talked together very quickly in -French. The one who spoke English finally said, “Sure, we -go walk in the woods with you.” They walked in the woods.</p> - -<p>Hand in hand the two couples walked between the misty -trees. There was no underbrush here and the trees came up -out of the stony, grass-covered ground, free and straight.</p> - -<p>The two girls understood what was expected of them. His -most vivid memory was not of the one he had but of Holton’s: -a stocky, pink-faced girl. He remembered clearly the -way her head lolled against the tree, her eyes closed and her -thick lips slightly ajar. He remembered that her hair was -almost the same color as the bark of the tree.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</span></p> - -<p>“Say, Bob, do you remember those two girls from Paris?”</p> - -<p>“When was that?”</p> - -<p>“You know, the time we went on the picnic.”</p> - -<p>“I’m afraid I’ve forgotten.” That was that.</p> - -<p>A large important-looking man came into the office. When -he saw Trebling with Holton he stopped in the middle of -the room, changed his course with the unself-conscious dignity -of a schooner under full sail, and walked straight over -to them.</p> - -<p>Holton got to his feet quickly and Trebling did the same, -sensing that this was a person of importance.</p> - -<p>“Jim Trebling, this is Mr Murphy, the Chief of our section.”</p> - -<p>“Glad to meet you, Lieutenant.” They shook hands vigorously, -Mr Murphy smiling with goodwill.</p> - -<p>“Well, Lieutenant, I suppose you’ll be getting out soon?”</p> - -<p>Mechanically Trebling explained what he was planning -to do.</p> - -<p>“Think you’ll go into Business?” asked Mr Murphy.</p> - -<p>“Maybe, I don’t know.”</p> - -<p>“Lot of openings now for a young man who wants to get -ahead.”</p> - -<p>“There probably are.”</p> - -<p>They talked for a while of Business as though it were a -state of being.</p> - -<p>Trebling looked at Holton as Mr Murphy talked, looked at -him, trying to find something familiar in his face. For a moment -as he looked he thought he could see a tightness about -the mouth, an effort at control but Jim Trebling could not -tell what Holton was controlling and the mouth soon relaxed -and he could tell nothing then.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</span></p> - -<p>Coming back on the boat together they had talked of -what they were going to do when they got out.</p> - -<p>“I think I’d like to make money,” said Holton, looking at -the white wake of the ship.</p> - -<p>“That’s not a bad idea. How?”</p> - -<p>“Damned if I know.”</p> - -<p>“We could always start that pottery business I was telling -you about, back in California.”</p> - -<p>“That’s a thought.”</p> - -<p>“Of course there’re a lot of other things we could do.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose it’s all a matter of picking the right one.”</p> - -<p>They looked at the gray water and thought of new things, -of works not yet begun. Pensively Holton leaned out over -the railing and spat. Trebling, interested, did the same. For -several moments they were in serious contest to determine -who could spit the farthest. Holton won, although Trebling -claimed he had been helped by a gust of wind.</p> - -<p>Then they walked about the decks of the transport. Soldiers -were everywhere. They sat in groups on the covered -hatches, they leaned over the railing to look at the sea and, -also, to be sick.</p> - -<p>“I guess all these people are going to be trying the same -thing,” said Holton suddenly.</p> - -<p>“Try what? Starting a business?”</p> - -<p>Sure.</p> - -<p>“I don’t think so.”</p> - -<p>“A lot of them will.”</p> - -<p>“So what?”</p> - -<p>“I guess it could work.” They stopped amidships and -looked out to sea again. “I’d certainly like to have a lot of -money,” said Holton sincerely.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</span></p> - -<p>“So would I,” said Trebling with casual sincerity.</p> - -<p>They had decided then to start in together when they got -out of the army. Holton had been discharged first, however, -and he had immediately joined Heywood and Golden. In his -occasional letters Holton never mentioned the business again. -Trebling remembered that now and was sorry so much had -changed.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Mr Murphy was talking about Business.</p> - -<p>Holton was listening to him with what appeared to be -interest. Trebling shook himself and tried to act as if he had -been following the lesson Mr Murphy had been giving him.</p> - -<p>“Very nice to have met you, Lieutenant,” said Mr Murphy -at last.</p> - -<p>“Nice to meet you.” They shook hands. Mr Murphy turned -to Holton. “I’d like to see you for a moment if your friend -doesn’t mind.”</p> - -<p>“Certainly.” Holton gestured to Trebling to stay where -he was. Then Mr Murphy and Holton went over to the other -end of the office where the windows were.</p> - -<p>Jim Trebling sat in his uncomfortable chair beneath the -fluorescent lights. He wanted to leave this office, leave it -now and not come back. He couldn’t understand Holton any -longer. He no longer knew him.</p> - -<p>Trebling was aware of someone standing beside him. He -looked up: it was the blue-eyed girl. He started to get to -his feet.</p> - -<p>“Don’t move,” she said. “I’m just passing by. Mr Murphy -and Bob seem to be having some sort of conference. I -thought I’d wait outside the gate till they were through.”</p> - -<p>“Sit down,” said Trebling.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</span></p> - -<p>“Thank you.” She sat down in the chair beside him. He -wondered what to say to her, what to talk about.</p> - -<p>“Have you been here long?” he asked.</p> - -<p>She told him that she had been there for several years.</p> - -<p>“It must be interesting working in a place like this.”</p> - -<p>She laughed. “It’s pretty awful, I think. As jobs go, of -course, it’s not bad.”</p> - -<p>“But you’d rather not work at all.”</p> - -<p>“That’s right.”</p> - -<p>“Well, you’ll probably be married soon.” This was a leading -question. There was a simple ritual to conversation with -pretty girls who might be had.</p> - -<p>She recognized this and answered according to the ritual, -“Oh, maybe someday, when I meet the right person.”</p> - -<p>This could mean a lot. He was interested now. “That’s important, -meeting the right person.”</p> - -<p>They were both silent, thinking how important it was to -meet the right person.</p> - -<p>Trebling began to think of this girl (was her name Caroline?) -quite seriously. It was such an important thing to discover: -if she could be had or not. For one night she might -be very pleasant. He liked the way she looked. But then he -thought of certain other one-night stands and of the phone -calls and letters and emotion that often came of them. He -would be very careful about this. He resumed.</p> - -<p>“I suppose you can have a pretty good time in New York -if you know the right places to go.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, there are some nice places. You have to be very -careful, though.”</p> - -<p>“A lot of them are clip joints, I guess.”</p> - -<p>She laughed. “I’ll say they are.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</span></p> - -<p>“Depends, I guess, on who you go out with.”</p> - -<p>“Well, you should know your way around.”</p> - -<p>They were drawing nearer and nearer to the act. Everything -was going well. She was returning all his signals. He -began to breathe a little hard as they approached the gateway.</p> - -<p>“I know so few people in New York,” he said. “Bob’s really -the only person I know well. I don’t know any girls.”</p> - -<p>“Well, there’re a lot of them around.”</p> - -<p>“I know.” He paused and then he began to speak carefully -but casually. “I was going out tonight but I don’t think -I will now.”</p> - -<p>“Why?”</p> - -<p>“It’s not much fun alone.” This was said almost pathetically.</p> - -<p>“What about Bob?”</p> - -<p>“He’s going to that cocktail party.”</p> - -<p>“Oh, yes, I forgot.” A pause now, a silence with great -meaning in it.</p> - -<p>“Maybe,” and he was saying it at last, “maybe <em>you</em> might -go out with me tonight.”</p> - -<p>“Me!” Surprise, pleasure, a certain asperity, all these emotions -splendidly portrayed in that one word. “Well....”</p> - -<p>“Of course if you’re busy....”</p> - -<p>“Oh, no....” She spoke almost too quickly. “I’m not really -certain,” she added, regaining her dignity. “Perhaps you -might call me back around five. I’ll know then.” At that moment -both of them knew.</p> - -<p>“That would be fine. I hope you don’t think it’s ...”</p> - -<p>“Certainly not.” Then she said that any friend of Bob’s was -a friend of hers.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</span></p> - -<p>Trebling felt pleased with himself for having managed so -well. It might take a week but it would still be pleasant. He -looked forward to the final moment of yielding. He sighed -and started to think of other things.</p> - -<p>Caroline, seeing that Holton was on his way back, got up -from her chair. “Nice to have seen you, Lieutenant. I’ll be -looking forward to your call.”</p> - -<p>He also stood up. “I hope you can make it.” She said that -she did, too, and they both knew what was going to happen. -Robert Holton came back and Caroline left.</p> - -<p>“That’s a pretty girl,” said Trebling.</p> - -<p>“Caroline? Yes, she’s pretty nice.”</p> - -<p>They stood looking at each other awkwardly. “Shall we -get together tomorrow evening?” suggested Holton.</p> - -<p>“Sure, that’d be fine.”</p> - -<p>“Well, listen, Jim, it’s been wonderful seeing you....”</p> - -<p>“And I’ve enjoyed it....” Their voices intermingled into -a single sound. Neither of them listened to the words of the -other.</p> - -<p>“See you tomorrow then, Bob?”</p> - -<p>“See you then.” They said good-bye and Jim Trebling left -the office. As he stood in the reception room waiting for the -elevator he felt sad at the way Holton had changed. It was -such a shame because they had once been very close. Then -Jim Trebling thought of Caroline and he felt happier. The -Carolines were the important things.</p> - -<p>The elevator door opened and he stepped inside.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Eight</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">At five-thirty the world ceased to be official and became -private.</p> - -<p>Happily Robert Holton put away his books and figures -and prepared to leave. Monday was over and he wouldn’t -let himself think of the other days of his week.</p> - -<p>Caroline was putting on her hat and Mr Murphy sat at -his desk behind her, dreaming, his eyes fixed shrewdly upon -nothing.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton walked over to Caroline.</p> - -<p>“Ready to go?”</p> - -<p>She nodded. “All ready.” Together they walked through -the emptying offices, rode down the crowded elevator, and -stepped out into the more crowded street.</p> - -<p>The sky was gray now and the sun had vanished behind -buildings. The air was cool and the smell of exhaust was -strong as cars moved slowly in the streets, trying to escape -to less crowded places. They walked with the stream of -people toward the subway opening. They talked.</p> - -<p>“Guess what?” said Caroline.</p> - -<p>“What?”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</span></p> - -<p>“I’m going out tonight.”</p> - -<p>“Well?”</p> - -<p>“I’m going out with Lieutenant Trebling.”</p> - -<p>He was surprised. “That was fast work. Did he do that -while he was in the office?”</p> - -<p>“We talked about it. He called me back later and I told -him I’d go out with him.”</p> - -<p>“Well, well.” Holton was admiring but Caroline was not -sure whether he was admiring her or Trebling.</p> - -<p>“I think he’s nice,” she said, not committing herself.</p> - -<p>“Yes, he’s a good guy.”</p> - -<p>They crossed a street nervously and in silence. On the -other side they went on talking.</p> - -<p>“Tell me something about him?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“There’s not much to tell. He’s from the West Coast. He -went to UCLA, I think, and his old man’s in the insurance -business. He went into the army about the same time I did -and he’s still in.”</p> - -<p>“That’s not what I want to know.”</p> - -<p>“Well, what do you want to know?”</p> - -<p>She had trouble saying this. “Oh, you know ... the sort -of person he is. All that sort of thing.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton, who hadn’t thought much about it, had a -hard time answering. “I guess he’s what you’d call a dreamer. -He’s not very practical. He always wants to start things ... -businesses, you know. In the war he was pretty good and -other people liked him. He wasn’t very wild then.”</p> - -<p>“Is he now?”</p> - -<p>“Just his ideas. In those days I used to be the wild one.”</p> - -<p>She laughed and thought he was joking with her and this -made him angry and sad but there was nothing he could do<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</span> -about it because he had assumed a certain identity with her -and it had to be maintained.</p> - -<p>“I’ll bet you were wild!”</p> - -<p>“We all change,” he said.</p> - -<p>She wasn’t interested in how he’d changed, though: she -was interested in Jim Trebling. “I don’t suppose he’s engaged -or anything like that?” She was casual.</p> - -<p>Holton laughed. “No, you can get him if you want to.”</p> - -<p>“I didn’t mean that at all. What do you mean by saying -that?”</p> - -<p>“Not a thing.”</p> - -<p>She went on talking for several moments, trying to be indignant. -Then they crossed another street and she stopped -talking.</p> - -<p>They walked with the current of people, walked uncomfortably -but deliberately over the sidewalk ventilators of the -subway beneath. As they walked they could feel the thunder -of a subway train under their feet, vibrating upward, -like a great emotion, into their stomachs.</p> - -<p>Then they came to the opening of the subway. With a -deep breath they descended into the pit. Like lemmings -dashing seaward the people pushed down the steps and into -already crowded trains.</p> - -<p>Caroline and Holton were separated. A sudden push of -the crowd threw her into the train just before the door -closed. He caught a last glimpse of her serene beauty being -crushed between a large Negress and a tall white man. The -train gave a rumble and pulled away.</p> - -<p>Holton stood on the concrete platform with a hundred -others who had missed this train and were waiting for the -next.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</span></p> - -<p>He walked up and down between the concrete pillars, -looking at the broken machines which were supposed to sell -gum and peanuts and, from habit, he put his finger into one -of the slots to see if anything was there: nothing was there -however.</p> - -<p>He admired the advertisements. His favorite one, the girl -advertising beer, was not in this station but there were -others. Two very excellent ones of movie actresses, young -women hauntingly attractive with red lips. He admired these -even though the most beautiful actress of all had had her -front teeth blacked out and a crude phallic image drawn -over her passionate face. There were people in the world -who would do those things, of course, and he was not annoyed.</p> - -<p>The other advertisements were less interesting and he -didn’t look at them very long.</p> - -<p>Another train roared through the tunnel, stopping with -great noise; the doors opened and people flowed out; then -another rush to get on the train. Robert Holton allowed himself -to be carried into the hot stale car.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>He liked to walk in the Park. In the evenings the Park -was the most peaceful place in the city. A few people would -be sitting on the benches and a few couples would be walking -between trees but there were never many people here in -the early evening and the ones that were there were always -quiet.</p> - -<p>As Robert Holton walked the miracle of the street lamps -took place, white light filling the bulbs and changing -the early evening, the twilight period, to a premature night.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</span></p> - -<p>He walked quickly now because it was almost six o’clock. -Mrs Raymond Stevanson’s cocktail parties often went on -until nine or ten o’clock and occasionally they lasted all -night but he couldn’t know this for certain and he didn’t -want to be late.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton thought sadly about Jim Trebling as he -walked, breathing the cool air. A short time had made a lot -of difference and he was aware of this difference.</p> - -<p>Trebling was apt to be impractical. It was a likeable quality -in the army; he himself hadn’t made much sense in those -days, but things had changed now. This was the time to be -practical and Jim Trebling was not.</p> - -<p>A couple were embracing beside a large rock. He watched -them with interest as he went by.</p> - -<p>He had tried to pretend to be the same but the effort, or -the change, had been too great. It made him unhappy to -think that he and Trebling had really been so different, had -always been so different, even in those days. He was shocked -to think that Trebling remembered the army as a pleasant -period of his life. There had been times, of course....</p> - -<p>Another couple came out of the woods, walked to the -pathway and looked uncertainly about them, as though unsure -of themselves. When he glanced at them they looked -at him angrily, as if he had been spying. He walked away.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton was not sure why he had changed toward -Trebling. He wanted to be the same. He wanted to take up -the friendship where it had been broken but he could not. -He was not going to change again.</p> - -<p>A nurse with a baby carriage was hurrying streetward. It -was late, probably much too late for her to be out with the -baby. As she passed him he caught a glimpse of the child<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</span> -and saw that it was staring vacantly ahead, concentrating -upon growth.</p> - -<p>He followed the nurse and the carriage toward the street. -Robert Holton smiled to himself when he thought of Caroline -and Jim Trebling going out together. It was always interesting -when people out of different periods of his life -came to know each other. He had never associated Trebling -with Caroline before.</p> - -<p>He took a last deep breath of air before he left the Park. -He wished vaguely that he might have more time to walk in -the Park and straighten out certain things.</p> - -<p>The uptown streets were not crowded. A few people were -coming home from work; most of the people were already -home by now. Children played together in the streets, shouting -at one another in sharp hoarse voices. A smell of cooking -was in the streets.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>There was no mail for him.</p> - -<p>This was not a good day. On the good days there was -mail; days could be bad when there wasn’t any. Not that -there was anyone Robert Holton wanted to hear from in particular -but he was less alone when he had letters to read.</p> - -<p>“Been a nice day,” said the person behind the desk.</p> - -<p>“It certainly has,” said Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“Won’t be long until it’s winter,” said the person behind -the desk.</p> - -<p>“It won’t be long,” said Holton. He turned then and -walked through the dingy lobby to the elevator.</p> - -<p>He and the elevator boy discussed the kind of day it had -been. They also decided that it would be winter soon.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</span></p> - -<p>His room looked no more cheerful than usual. Robert -Holton sat down on the bed, leaving the room dark. It gave -him a feeling of power to think that, when he chose, he -could turn on a light and dispel the darkness.</p> - -<p>He started to think of Trebling but stopped himself. There -was nothing to be done now. The old friendship was gone.</p> - -<p>Trebling had mentioned a girl named Carla. He remembered -her well. She had been pretty and intense and wealthy. -He had not thought about her for a long time. She had been -a strange girl, gentle and understanding. He had been greatly -attracted to her and she to him.</p> - -<p>They had walked around Florence and Fiesole. She had -taken him to old palaces and churches although he hadn’t -wanted to go. When he had objected she told him that she -was trying to show him something. He never knew what it -was she wanted to show him. When he left Florence he told -her that he would write: he didn’t, though, and he had not -thought of her again until today.</p> - -<p>The thing he had liked most about Carla, the thing he -could remember now, was her way of understanding him. -She once told him that it wasn’t necessary to finish sentences -when they talked; that she knew what he would say and that -he should know what she would say.</p> - -<p>Sitting in the dark of his hotel room, Robert Holton -thought of all the women he had known and liked; some he -had slept with and some he hadn’t. Most of them he had -forgotten. Now he only thought of them when someone else -recalled them to him.</p> - -<p>And he did remember about Paris. He remembered the -picnic outside Versailles, although he could not remember -the faces of the two girls.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</span></p> - -<p>In Europe there had been so many women. He often was -surprised now when he thought of how many he had known. -There were periods when he had been never satisfied. Both -Trebling and he had gone about it like hunters. Trebling -was probably still hunting, thought Holton suddenly, and -he wondered if he was, too. No, that was behind him. He -had to live and act in a different way now. He had to be a -different person.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton turned on the light beside his bed. He -blinked in the yellow light and suddenly he was dissatisfied -with the room. He wished for the first time that he were -somewhere else; it didn’t matter where, just somewhere else. -He was a person of great logic, though, and he asked himself -what he would rather be doing and he couldn’t think of anything -else to do. He didn’t want to travel. He had no desire -to escape. There was no place to escape to anyway and Robert -Holton who had a kind of wisdom knew that.</p> - -<p>Then he took his clothes off and got under the shower. -This was usually the happiest part of his day. The warm -water gave him a feeling of security, relaxing him; the world -fell into a genial perspective. He finished bathing reluctantly -and dressed quickly.</p> - -<p>Finally he stood in front of the mirror again and combed -his hair. He was glad to see that he wasn’t losing his hair. -Sometimes he thought he was; at other times he knew he -wasn’t.</p> - -<p>He wasn’t displeased with himself. He wasn’t pleased -either but he knew that he was acceptable. There was no use -in worrying, anyway. He wished sometimes that his nose -could have been more aquiline. He would like to look more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</span> -impressive. Perhaps his face would get that way as he grew -older. He turned away from the mirror.</p> - -<p>He looked at the picture on the wall and wondered for the -hundredth time why the painter had made everything look -so blue. The painter had made one of the apples almost sky-blue -and Robert Holton had never seen an apple that color -before and he found it hard to believe that there was much -advantage in so misrepresenting things. Perhaps in certain -parts of France the apples were blue.</p> - -<p>He was dressed and ready now. He looked at his watch -and saw that it was a quarter to seven: he would have to -hurry. Robert Holton looked around the room to see if there -was anything he wanted to take with him. There wasn’t. He -put on his trench coat, turned out the light, and left the -room.</p> - -<p>The elevator boy wanted to know if he was going to a -party.</p> - -<p>“Sure, I’m going to a big party.”</p> - -<p>“Lots of girls, I bet.” The pale thin elevator boy was interested.</p> - -<p>“A whole lot of them.”</p> - -<p>“Boy, I wish I was going out to something like that. This -night work is getting me down. I ain’t getting much relaxation.” -He winked to show what he meant by relaxation and -Holton smiled sympathetically.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton stopped by the desk.</p> - -<p>“I’ll be back pretty early,” he said to the clerk. He always -told them when to expect him, told them from force of habit -because no one ever wanted to know.</p> - -<p>“Yes, sir,” said the clerk. “Nice night tonight,” he added.</p> - -<p>“Nice fall night,” agreed Robert Holton.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</span></p> - -<p>They discussed the evening politely. Then Robert Holton -left the hotel.</p> - -<p>It was darker now and cooler. The night was refreshing -and he felt suddenly strong and contented. The depression -of the office left him and he was becoming alive. He prepared -himself for the party and for the evening ahead. He -walked briskly down the street and, to emphasize his mood -of sudden power, he hailed a taxi and rode in it happily, -without regret for the money he was spending.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</span></p> - -<p class="half-title">2<br /> -NIGHT</p> -</div> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</span></p> -</div> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</span></p> -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Nine</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">The party seemed to be going well. Although Mrs. Raymond -Stevanson hated cocktail parties, finding her own almost -as bad as other people’s, she still felt she had to give -them and she worked very hard to make them outstanding.</p> - -<p>Several hundred well-dressed people wandered about her -large apartment, looking at the furniture, each other, and -the five different paintings of Mrs Stevanson. There were no -traces of Mr Stevanson in the apartment. He had died early -in her career, leaving her his money and four race horses. -She had sold the horses and she had saved quite a bit of the -money. Now, at fifty-five, she was a famous hostess and -somewhat overweight.</p> - -<p>“Good evening, Helena.” Mrs Stevanson turned around -and saw the thin malicious face of Beatrice Jordan. They -were contemporaries.</p> - -<p>“Beatrice! How marvelous!” They touched cheeks with -slight frowns, then came apart again with affectionate smiles.</p> - -<p>Beatrice stood back a moment and looked at Mrs Stevanson. -Beatrice was extremely nearsighted but much too vain -to wear glasses. To see clearly she was forced to tuck her -chin down and look upward, a habit which had given her -an undeserved reputation as a coquette. She did this now.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</span></p> - -<p>“Helena, you’ve lost weight! How?”</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson was pleased. “Does it really show?” She -patted her cement-hard corseted buttock.</p> - -<p>“Not so much around there,” said Beatrice, thinking for a -moment. “More around here.” She touched her own meager -breasts.</p> - -<p>“You think so?” Mrs Stevanson was irritated and angry -with herself for allowing Beatrice Jordan to say such a thing. -Mrs Stevanson was proud of her breasts. Several of the -famous painters had called her voluptuous.</p> - -<p>“It’s been lovely seeing you, Helena darling. I’ve got to -join my escort now. I came with Clyde.”</p> - -<p>Beatrice said this triumphantly but gained no victory.</p> - -<p>“You came with Clyde. How wonderful! I’m dining with -him tomorrow.”</p> - -<p>“Indeed?”</p> - -<p>“Is he here now?”</p> - -<p>“He’s in the other room.”</p> - -<p>“Do tell him to see me before he leaves. There are <em>so</em> -many people here.”</p> - -<p>“I will, darling. Lovely to see you.” Beatrice smiled, showing -her artful white false teeth and Mrs Stevanson smiled -back showing her own artful white false teeth. The two -women parted.</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson was annoyed but she had found that the -older she got the less interested she was in what people -said. It was well known anyway that Beatrice Jordan was a -cat.</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson walked now from group to group. The -groups unfolded for her like flowers before the sun. She -would disappear for a moment into the heart of one and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</span> -then it would unfold again, release her and become tight and -compact once more.</p> - -<p>Certain groups contained people more important than -other groups. In these she lingered longest, smiling the -most attractively, saying her superlatives.</p> - -<p>In the dining room a buffet had been set on a long table. -Three footmen (hired for the evening only) guarded it from -the hungry-looking guests, betrayed it to the superior ones -who were not hungry.</p> - -<p>Twenty or thirty people were gathered here and they -looked rather self-conscious as she approached. Somehow -everyone felt rather guilty to be caught eating heavily (they -<em>were</em> eating heavily, she noticed) at a cocktail party.</p> - -<p>She moved heartily about the dining room, demanding -that they eat more, suggesting they try something they had -not already tried. And then, to show she was mortal, she ate -a piece of white bread with Virginia ham on it.</p> - -<p>The dining room under control, Mrs Stevanson marched -back through the drawing room, accepted greetings and -homage with a tiny smile that one of her lovers (he was dead -now) had said reminded him of La Gioconda.</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson, among other things, believed in art. Tonight -she had invited several writers, a few painters, one -sculptor whose name she couldn’t remember, and a half-dozen -actors whose names everyone knew.</p> - -<p>She had also invited George <em>Robert</em> Lewis. For some obscure -reason his middle name was always Gallicized, legitimatizing -the Lewis. He had been born and raised in Alabama. -Unfortunately for his family he had very early shown -a passion for the artistic as well as a marked tendency -toward Socratic love. When he decided that the thing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</span> -he most wanted was to go to Paris and become an artist, his -family did not object; in fact, his father had suggested that -if he wanted to live the rest of his life in Paris it was all -right with him. Lewis lived there in the Nineteen-Thirties. -He returned in the Forties.</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson thought him cute and she was in the habit -of telling her friends that, although his habits were shocking, -he was still quite charming and so <em>advanced</em>. And then -he was marvelously decadent and the decadent was becoming -popular now that the artificial virility of war was safely -past.</p> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis was also an interesting person to -know because he was the editor of <cite>Regarde</cite>, a magazine -which had been called <em>avant garde</em> before that phrase became -old-fashioned. Under his editorship the magazine had -advanced all new things in the hope that one of the new -things thus championed would be a success. So far none had -but he still was championing and, though Mrs Stevanson -seldom understood a word he said, she felt he was awfully -brave to say the dreadful things he did about people and -morals, especially people.</p> - -<p>Lewis was talking to a small brown man whom she didn’t -remember inviting.</p> - -<p>“Dear Helena,” said Lewis as she approached, “you look -wonderfully well-preserved.”</p> - -<p>“George, you’re a devil,” said Mrs Stevanson, secretly -pleased.</p> - -<p>Lewis embraced her in much the same way Beatrice Jordan -had. “What mad things have you been doing, Helena? -Something naughty, I’m sure.” His innocent blue eyes sparkled -as he spoke. He had the expressions of a child.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</span></p> - -<p>“Nothing that you couldn’t equal. It was delightful of you -to come.”</p> - -<p>“I was so bored, darling, I felt that if I stayed home another -moment I should go completely out of my mind.”</p> - -<p>“Poor thing.” They talked this way with each other, talked -with the casual rudeness of people who have met each other -at many parties. He was an amazing person, thought Mrs -Stevanson, looking at him carefully. He was slim and not -very tall, with a pretty feminine face and, except for the -small bitter lines about his mouth, he looked as if he were -still in his twenties. His actual age was unknown. Mrs -Stevanson thought he was forty.</p> - -<p>“And whom have we here?” asked Mrs Stevanson, turning -to face the small brown man beside him, a social smile -on her face.</p> - -<p>“Why, don’t you know ... this is....” He said the name -quickly. It was something foreign and difficult. She would -have to call Lewis up the next day and ask him. She shook -hands with the little man and saw that he was impressed -with her. She smiled as George <em>Robert</em> Lewis explained him. -He was a Greek and a professor and he knew a lot about -poetry.</p> - -<p>“<em>But</em> Helena, he has the most fabulous philosophy. I really -think it’s never been done before. What was it again, Timon?” -Mrs Stevanson knew his first name now.</p> - -<p>“I’m sure Mrs Stevanson wouldn’t be interested.” As a -matter of fact Mrs Stevanson wasn’t interested but she encouraged -him.</p> - -<p>“I should love to know,” she said. How like an earthenware -pot he looks, she thought as he began to tell her his -theory.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</span></p> - -<p>“You see it is based on the legend of the Golden Fleece. -I have substituted the artistic ultimate in place of the fleece -and, to carry the myth to its final parallel, I envisage all -artists as traveling upon an Argosy....” She listened politely, -carefully to the sound of the words, ignoring their -meanings. She glanced up and down the large white-paneled -room. No one was drunk.</p> - -<p>“Isn’t it stimulating?” asked Lewis when the Greek named -Timon had finished.</p> - -<p>“Wonderful,” murmured Mrs Stevanson.</p> - -<p>The Greek flushed happily. “I don’t think the Argosy’s -ever been interpreted quite that way before.”</p> - -<p>“I’m sure it hasn’t,” agreed Mrs Stevanson. She was becoming -impatient now. Her own Argosy would have to begin -again. More guests were arriving.</p> - -<p>“Have you seen the new ballet?” asked Lewis suddenly.</p> - -<p>“No, I haven’t seemed to have had the time.”</p> - -<p>“It’s dreadful. But the boy...” Lewis made little motions -with his hand, with his mouth, with his body. His eyes glittered -their blue innocence, their cheerful pleasure. He described -the boy to her and in great detail he told her how -he was going to arrange a meeting.</p> - -<p>“You’re too clever to stay alive, my pet,” said Mrs Stevanson. -She hoped that none of her other guests were overhearing -this. Most of them were quite worldly but a few weren’t -and it would never do to have them hear him.</p> - -<p>“I must ...” began Mrs Stevanson moving slowly away.</p> - -<p>“So nice to have met you,” said the small Greek named -Timon.</p> - -<p>“The pleasure ...” murmured Mrs Stevanson.</p> - -<p>Lewis waved to her. “I shall see you later, Helena.” Mrs<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</span> -Stevanson wondered irritably why fairies had to have such -unpleasant voices.</p> - -<p>Several new arrivals were in the foyer. She recognized Mr -Heywood immediately. He was passively allowing one of the -footmen to take his overcoat away from him.</p> - -<p>“Heywood dear, it was so nice of you to come.”</p> - -<p>“It’s nice to be here, Helena.” He looked unhappily at the -footman, retreating with the overcoat.</p> - -<p>“And where is your lovely wife?” Mrs Stevanson knew -perfectly well they were no longer on speaking terms.</p> - -<p>“My wife?” Heywood became dreamy, vague and distant. -“Oh, she’s not well at all.”</p> - -<p>“Really? Do tell me what’s wrong. I’ve a very good doctor, -you know.”</p> - -<p>“It’s nothing, really. She has trouble with her head. I -think it’s her head.”</p> - -<p>“Migraine,” said Mrs Stevanson firmly, leading Heywood -now into the drawing room. “I’ve been a martyr to it myself. -You know,” and she lowered her voice, “I think it’s due -to change of life.”</p> - -<p>“Really, Helena!” Heywood was gently shocked. He made -a restraining motion with his white limp hairless hand. “I’m -sure she’s much too young for that.”</p> - -<p>“Well, you never can tell,” said Mrs Stevanson who knew -Mrs Heywood’s exact age.</p> - -<p>“What a lot of people,” sighed Heywood. “So many -people.”</p> - -<p>“There <em>are</em> a lot,” said Mrs Stevanson proudly. “As usual -I don’t know half of them.”</p> - -<p>Carefully she cut Mr Heywood away from her, allowed -him to float unprotected through the groups of people. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</span> -looked back at her sadly but she had no pity for him and, -finally, a group of Wall Street people swallowed him up and -she saw him no more.</p> - -<p>Several people were entering the drawing room. They -walked slowly with the carefully controlled uneasiness of -people who didn’t know the hostess well.</p> - -<p>She recognized one of the newcomers and she greeted him -joyfully: Ulysses returned to Ithaca, as the small Greek -named Timon might have said.</p> - -<p>The man she knew introduced her to the others. Most of -them were English and she had a great admiration for the -English. It was not particularly fashionable to like them -now but she still was fascinated by them because they could -talk without moving their lips. It <em>was</em> rather wonderful.</p> - -<p>“And this,” said the man she knew, “is Mrs Bankton.”</p> - -<p>“How do you do,” said Mrs Bankton in a low voice. She -was not English; Mrs Stevanson could tell that right away.</p> - -<p>“We’ve met before, I think?” A hint of question was in -Mrs Stevanson’s voice.</p> - -<p>“I don’t think we have.”</p> - -<p>Mrs Bankton was definitely not English. Her accent was -French or Spanish or Italian. Mrs Stevanson could never tell -one from the other.</p> - -<p>“Mrs Bankton’s husband is the artist,” said the man she -knew slightly.</p> - -<p>“Of course,” said Mrs Stevanson wondering who Bankton -was. “Certainly, I know. But you’re not English, my dear?”</p> - -<p>“No, madame, I’m not English.” Mrs Bankton smiled at -her and made no further admissions. Mrs Stevanson looked -at her with dislike. She liked to find out about people -quickly. Life was too short to have them hold back important<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</span> -facts and, ultimately, confidences. People always confided -in Mrs Stevanson, knowing that she was not sufficiently -interested in them to repeat what she heard.</p> - -<p>“I do hope you’ll enjoy yourself,” said Mrs Stevanson -more cordially than she would have done had she liked the -person.</p> - -<p>“Thank you,” murmured Mrs Bankton. They bowed -slightly to each other and parted. Mrs Stevanson watched -Mrs Bankton as she walked across the room with her party. -She looked very exotic in a short black lace dress and a red -rose in her hair. What slim ankles, thought Mrs Stevanson -disagreeably, thinking of her own heavy legs, practical legs -one artist had told her, voluptuous legs an even better artist -had said.</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson turned, setting a smile on her lips. She -faced the largest of all the groups: over twenty people talking -all at once to each other. Holding her breasts high she -approached them and, as she was recognized, their voices -lowered and smiles appeared all about her and she was accepted -into the center of the group and there devoured.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Robert Holton was received by a butler. His coat was -taken with ceremony and he was moved easily out of the -black marble foyer into the drawing room.</p> - -<p>He had never visited Mrs Stevanson in her New York -apartment. He was greatly impressed and he tried to retain -a mental image of what he saw: he was constructing a dream -world and such an apartment might be material for it.</p> - -<p>The drawing room was large, formal and very light. Three -chandeliers hung from the high ceiling. The walls were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</span> -paneled in white wood with gold-leaf decorations, like the -palace at Versailles. Paintings hung at regular intervals -about the room: portraits mostly, portraits of Mrs Stevanson. -There was one large painting of a countryside which -Robert Holton could tell immediately was done by Rembrandt -or someone like him.</p> - -<p>The floor was thickly carpeted and tables and formal -chairs furnished the room. A few people sat; most of them, -however, preferred to stand, to move about gracefully, -searching.</p> - -<p>He stood blinking in the light, drugged by the high noise -of voices, hypnotized by the odor of many flowers drenched -over the women who stood talking to men.</p> - -<p>He walked slowly, uncertainly toward the center of the -room. He knew no one in the room. He looked for familiar -faces, though; there were none. Then he saw Mrs Stevanson -and he walked toward her. She looked at him and he could -tell she was puzzled. Then she recognized him; she came -toward him and they met beneath a portrait of her holding -lilies.</p> - -<p>“You’re little Bob Holton, aren’t you?” A strange description, -he thought.</p> - -<p>“Yes, Mrs Stevanson, you remember we met last year -and....”</p> - -<p>“Of course we did. How <em>is</em> your father?”</p> - -<p>“Fine, just fine.” His father hated her.</p> - -<p>“I’m so glad to hear that. I think you look more like your -mother, you know. She was such a lovely woman.”</p> - -<p>He mumbled thank you.</p> - -<p>“Your mother was one of the most charming women I ever -knew. She had such a wonderful way of doing things, so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</span> -original.” Like marrying my father, thought Holton. “She -was always full of surprises. I used to enjoy her so much.”</p> - -<p>There was an awkward silence. Robert Holton never found -it easy to talk about his mother and Mrs Stevanson had decided, -obviously, that it was the only thing she could discuss -with him.</p> - -<p>“It was very nice of you...” began Holton.</p> - -<p>“Think nothing of it, my dear. I don’t know if there are -many younger people here. You might look round, though. -I suppose you’ll know everybody. There’s Laura Whitner -over there.... You know her of course.” He looked and saw -a dark little woman wearing a skull cap.</p> - -<p>“I’ve seen her act,” he said accurately.</p> - -<p>“Oh, yes.” Mrs Stevanson looked around the room. He -could see that she was preparing to leave him alone.</p> - -<p>He was wrong. “You must,” she said, “meet some friends -of mine. They’re foreigners and they’ve only just arrived. -They don’t know anyone....” She was going to say “either” -but did not.</p> - -<p>She led him over to a small group of men and women. -Mrs Stevanson didn’t know their names but she acted as if -they were her dearest friends.</p> - -<p>“This young man is Robert Holton. His mother was a -great friend of mine and you must be nice to him.” She was -cute. “He’s just gotten out of the navy.” She looked up suddenly -with a magnificent gesture, looked as if someone had -hailed her from across the room. “Oh, I have to go! Please -excuse me.” She moved away in a swirl of silk, her bright -blue hair bouncing on the back of her thick white neck.</p> - -<p>“How do you do,” said Holton, shaking hands with a dark -man. Then he shook hands with a light man, with a short<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</span> -heavy one, with a thin blonde girl and finally he shook hands -with Mrs Bankton.</p> - -<p>“How do you do,” said Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>“How do <em>you</em> do,” said Mrs Bankton. Her voice startled -him. It was deep and foreign and she had said the “you” as -though she had really meant him.</p> - -<p>“I’m very well,” he said and he looked at her. Her hair -was dark. Her eyes were greenish and bright and shining. -He looked at her mouth, red and curved, elfinly shaped. He -stammered, “I know you. I know you but....”</p> - -<p>“But who am I?” She laughed and gestured with her long -white hands.</p> - -<p>“Yes, who are you?”</p> - -<p>“Carla.”</p> - -<p>“No!”</p> - -<p>“Yes.”</p> - -<p>“You’ve changed. I....”</p> - -<p>“And so have you. I think you look younger out of uniform.”</p> - -<p>“But....”</p> - -<p>“You’re surprised to see me? I’m just visiting this country. -My husband,” she paused, “my husband is in England and -I think he’ll be coming to join me soon.”</p> - -<p>“Then you’re married?”</p> - -<p>“But of course! And very well.” She smiled at him, smiled -gently and he felt embarrassed because she acknowledged -an old relationship so easily; that she was so unmoved, so -unguilty.</p> - -<p>“I’m very happy to hear that.” He didn’t know what else -to say.</p> - -<p>“Thank you. Let’s get out of this crowd.” She looked about<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</span> -her. She pointed to a corner of the room, an alcove containing -a window. “Let’s go over there.” They walked through -the crowd and sat down on the love seat beneath the window.</p> - -<p>“You’re surprised, aren’t you?” She spoke softly.</p> - -<p>“A little, I guess. I don’t know. I have to get used to the idea. -I always associated you with ... with Florence and....”</p> - -<p>“You felt that was behind you?”</p> - -<p>He was surprised. She must have known him very well, -he thought suddenly; he had forgotten how well she had -known him. “No, I didn’t think that,” he lied.</p> - -<p>“I have very warm memories,” she said lightly.</p> - -<p>He blushed and hated himself but there was nothing he -could do or say that would make it better. “Mine were pleasant, -too. I ... I liked Florence quite a bit.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I’m sure you did, and you liked Fiesole, and the -nights and summer days. I suppose you liked them all.”</p> - -<p>“I liked them all.”</p> - -<p>“And that was what you liked, all that you can remember?”</p> - -<p>“No, I <em>remember</em> more. I ... I didn’t know if you’d want -to talk about that; being married and....”</p> - -<p>She was surprised. “But I knew you first, after all. That -counts for something and then I remembered, too. It hasn’t -been so long.”</p> - -<p>“Several years.”</p> - -<p>“It doesn’t seem that long to me. You remember those -nights at our place in Fiesole? We used to go out and sit on -the ledge and look at the lights of the city.” They both -looked out the window then, looked at the glacier-bright -squares of light.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</span></p> - -<p>“It was very pretty.”</p> - -<p>“You Anglo-Saxon!” She laughed at him, not maliciously -but gaily. “You say it’s pretty. You say it’s nice. It was beautiful -and you know it. That was a beautiful time.”</p> - -<p>He felt her warmth suddenly, began to remember her -warmth, began to remember much that he had forgotten. -“Yes,” said he, warmed by her, “those nights <em>were</em> beautiful.”</p> - -<p>“Good, I wanted to hear you say that. I wanted you to -say,” her voice became so low that he could barely hear her, -“I wanted you to say much more but I think you’ve forgotten.” -She looked out at the towers of the city, at the glittering -webs of light. She was embarrassed now and he was -not. No, she was not embarrassed; he realized that with a -sudden vision; she was sad and he didn’t want her to be -sad.</p> - -<p>“You know ... I can say more. I didn’t think you wanted -to hear it. That was so long ago. You’re married and....”</p> - -<p>She turned around and faced him, her face alive and gay; -her moods changed so quickly, he remembered: he had always -been baffled by her changes. “You got interested in -someone else. I know what you soldiers are like. Italians are -just the same in Italy.”</p> - -<p>“No, there isn’t anyone else.” This was the wrong thing -to say and he tried to withdraw the words from the air but -they were lost to him now.</p> - -<p>“No one else? No one...?”</p> - -<p>“Well....”</p> - -<p>“How strange.” She looked at a painting of Mrs Stevanson -and at that moment she looked as if this painting were -the most important thing to her. Finally she said, “I think<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</span> -I’d like to drink some whiskey. Shall we go to the bar?”</p> - -<p>“Certainly, Carla.” He was glad that he had said her -name naturally.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Carla felt uncertain. The cold glass that a footman had -given her was chilling her hand. She wondered if she should -put it down on the dining-room table. They were standing -near it and Robert Holton was looking hungrily at the food; -she could see that in a moment he would have enough courage -to eat.</p> - -<p>“What a dreadful room,” said Carla.</p> - -<p>“What?” He looked at her as though she had not been -there. “Oh, yes, it’s sort of forbidding.” He glanced at the -dark wood-paneled walls and the ornate chandelier.</p> - -<p>“I don’t know why these people must have everything so -heavy inside,” said Carla. “The buildings in New York are -so tall and light.”</p> - -<p>“Some places are more modern.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose they are.” The glass of whiskey in her hand -was becoming much too cold to hold. She put it down on the -table.</p> - -<p>“You don’t like it?”</p> - -<p>“I think I’ve had enough for now. You remember how -little I used to drink.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, you never needed it.” He looked at her directly and -smiled. She was happy then because it was the first time he -had looked at her eyes. He was losing his fear of her, this -strange and, to her, inexplicable fear.</p> - -<p>“Let’s find some place to sit down,” she said.</p> - -<p>“I thought you wanted to walk around.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</span></p> - -<p>She laughed. “All right, we’ll do both.” They walked -around.</p> - -<p>More people had arrived. Several hundred, thought Carla -with distaste. She liked smaller parties. She had only come -tonight because friends of her husband had insisted. They -were keeping close watch over her for they knew how jealous -Bankton was. It was very amusing, she thought as she -and Holton walked from group to group. Her husband’s -friends watching her now would never suspect what had -happened in Florence.</p> - -<p>They came to an especially large group, a dozen men surrounding -Laura Whitner.</p> - -<p>“Do you want to meet her?” asked Carla, looking at Holton, -knowing that he did.</p> - -<p>“You don’t know her?”</p> - -<p>“But of course. I know everyone.”</p> - -<p>They cut their way through the bewitched men, cut -through to the enchantress herself.</p> - -<p>Laura Whitner was dark and slight with full breasts. Her -face was as delicate as a carving in ivory; sallow, too, as old -ivory. The lips were brilliant red and she twisted her mouth -in childlike expressions and her sad dark eyes glittered -from habit and not from fire. She looked unwell, thought -Carla.</p> - -<p>“Carla Bruno!” exclaimed Laura when she saw them. The -two women embraced with warmth and the enchantment -was broken for the admirers and they began to withdraw -from the circle of her spell, smiling as they departed, leaving -her alone in her theater with only two admirers.</p> - -<p>“But my tiny Carla, what are you doing in New York? I -haven’t seen you for years, not since Paris.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</span></p> - -<p>“I’m here visiting.”</p> - -<p>“But I’m so happy to see you! You know, you’re the last -person I’d expect to run into here.”</p> - -<p>“I had to get away from Europe. I hadn’t been to America -since I was a child.”</p> - -<p>Laura Whitner looked at her hands. “You’re not married, -are you?” Carla wore no wedding ring.</p> - -<p>Carla smiled and nodded.</p> - -<p>Laura looked astonished, her scarlet mouth, like a wicked -child’s, twisted with all the emotions she felt and several -that she did not. “To whom? To the little one here?” She -motioned to Robert Holton who had been standing silently -watching her.</p> - -<p>Carla laughed. “No, Laura, to Bankton in England.”</p> - -<p>“The painter?”</p> - -<p>“The painter. We’ve been married two years.”</p> - -<p>“Are you happy?” There was a dark note in her voice as -she said this and Carla could tell that it was something she -wanted to know.</p> - -<p>“I am not unhappy,” said Carla, knowing that this was no -answer but she hoped that Holton would grasp her meaning.</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry,” said Laura Whitner almost undramatically. “I -married again, you know.”</p> - -<p>“I heard you did. Is he here tonight? I used to know -him.”</p> - -<p>“He couldn’t come, he’s working on a show. Are you going -to have children?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t think so.”</p> - -<p>“I want one.” She sighed and touched the skullcap on her -head with a hand that was pale and like the claw of a bird,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</span> -a hand that shook. “If I’m not too old I’m going to make a -child. I think that’s what I need.”</p> - -<p>“You must be very happy with him.”</p> - -<p>She nodded and said with great sincerity, “Yes, I’m very -happy now. After a long time I am.” And Carla looked into -her sad dark eyes and saw that they had not changed expression.</p> - -<p>“Who is this?” asked Laura Whitner, turning to Holton, -making love to him automatically with her face.</p> - -<p>“This,” said Carla, “is Robert Holton, an old friend of -mine. We knew each other in Florence during the war.”</p> - -<p>“Indeed!” She lifted her thin brows and made her mouth -very round. Holton blushed and Carla wanted to protect -him.</p> - -<p>“I’m very pleased to meet you,” said Holton awkwardly. -“I’ve liked you in the movies.” Carla remembered then his -honesty: the thing that had attracted her to him. He had -always been honest; she wondered if that was so now.</p> - -<p>“Have you really, child? Thank you.” She made a gesture -that was intended for an entire audience but it was still very -graceful.</p> - -<p>“You must,” said Carla, “call me up and we’ll get together. -I’m staying at the Mason.”</p> - -<p>“I shall, of course. Tell me....” At this moment Mrs Raymond -Stevanson appeared to capture Laura.</p> - -<p>“Laura, darling, I’ve got the most marvelous Estonian who -wants to meet you. I think he said he was an Estonian. I -know you’ll love him. You’ll excuse me, I know.” She said -this last to Carla and Holton.</p> - -<p>“We’ll have lunch,” said Laura, calling back over her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</span> -shoulder as she was borne away by the conquering Mrs -Stevanson.</p> - -<p>“What did you think of her, Bob?” asked Carla.</p> - -<p>“She’s not as pretty as I thought she’d be.”</p> - -<p>“They never are; you must learn that.”</p> - -<p>He looked at her and she tried to tell what he was thinking -but for once her intuition was not enough: she had first -to examine the years that had gone by. She had to find some -trace of familiar emotion in him. She had to rediscover the -stranger. She had to make him remember what she remembered. -In Florence he had loved her, she was sure of that. -Now it was up to her to reconstruct a passion that had -never been wholly lost. She had cared more for him than he -had known then; would ever know, she hoped. There had -been so many nights after he had left when she had longed -to be with him, nights when she could feel again the warm -summer about them as they lay together in the wide bed in -her room. She was determined now to find the lover in the -stranger that stood beside her, who stood looking seriously -but remotely into her face.</p> - -<p>“Shall we sit down now, Bob?”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>People were beginning to leave. It was eight-thirty and -Mrs Stevanson was glad to see them go. The first two hours -were interesting and then she found herself bored.</p> - -<p>On the other hand George <em>Robert</em> Lewis was not bored. -He was slightly drunk and enjoying himself very much. He -was usually overcome by a monstrous <em>ennui</em> during the day -which, as evening came, grew less and less. In a few more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</span> -hours he would have discovered a reason for living and this -would keep him happy until he woke up the next morning -with a hang-over.</p> - -<p>He was glad when he heard that the famous Bankton’s -wife was at the party. She had been pointed out to him but -he hadn’t met her yet. He stopped a waiter and took a cocktail -from him. And, equipped for conversation with a woman, -he marched across the drawing room to where Carla stood -talking with a young man, a rather nice young man, thought -Lewis.</p> - -<p>“Mrs Bankton?”</p> - -<p>She turned and looked at him and he rather liked her -brown-green eyes.</p> - -<p>“Yes?” She looked at him as though she wanted him to go -away. Lewis was sensitive to such things but not particularly -nonplussed; in fact he was accustomed to being asked -to go away.</p> - -<p>“I’m George <em>Robert</em> Lewis ... you know <cite>Regarde</cite>, the -<em>avant garde</em> magazine, only it’s so trite now to call anything -<em>avant garde</em>. You must have seen it. We did the most splendid -article on Bankton last year. I’ve just loved his work because -I can feel what he’s trying to do: post-surrealism and -all that sort of thing. I’m all for it; in fact, we’re all for -people like Bankton who do things. I just felt I couldn’t help -but come over and say hello.”</p> - -<p>She smiled at him very nicely. “I’ve heard of you, Mr -Lewis. My husband thinks very highly of what your magazine -is doing.”</p> - -<p>“He does? Oh, but isn’t that simply marvelous! I always -felt I would be most sympathetic with the great Bankton. -Tell me, darling, when do you expect him in this country?”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</span></p> - -<p>She took the “darling” quite well, he thought.</p> - -<p>“I’m not sure. I think in a month or so. He’s so busy in -London.” “By the way”, she said, “I want you to meet an old -friend of mine, Robert Holton.”</p> - -<p>“Very pleased to meet you, Mr Lewis,” said the young -man as they shook hands.</p> - -<p>“<i>Enchanté</i>,” said Lewis, bowing from the waist and allowing -his hand to stay too long in Holton’s. Such a nice young -man, thought Lewis, and wondered if....</p> - -<p>“What,” said Carla, “is <em>Regarde</em> espousing now?” She -spoke quickly and Lewis could see that she understood him -and this pleased him although, in a sense, they were rivals.</p> - -<p>“As always: the advanced, the revolutionary....”</p> - -<p>“And the honest?”</p> - -<p>“But of course, darling, we are never consciously dishonest, -though it <em>is</em> hard sometimes not being.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps in life but not in art.” She spoke severely. She -was a Latin; he could tell now from her accent.</p> - -<p>“You’re not English?” He changed the subject.</p> - -<p>“No, I’m a Florentine.”</p> - -<p>“But how charming! I have always loved Florence. I spent -several summers there when I was a boy. Let me see ... I -was there last in 19.... It’s not important. How I loved -those doors, though!”</p> - -<p>He saw that the young man named Robert Holton was -beginning to look bored and Lewis hated above all else to -be thought a bore even by a bore.</p> - -<p>“And <em>you</em> have been to Florence?”</p> - -<p>Holton nodded.</p> - -<p>Carla said, “That was where we met the first time. He’s an -old friend of our family’s.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</span></p> - -<p>“How droll that must’ve been for you, finding this charming -boy here at Helena Stevanson’s who, though I love her -dearly, gives the dullest parties in New York.”</p> - -<p>“They <em>are</em> dull. I wonder why people come. Why do you -come?”</p> - -<p>“I’m a creature in constant need of companionship. I go -to everything. I <em>must</em> see a lot of people or I become most -dreadfully morbid and then I write poems.”</p> - -<p>She smiled. “I remember you used to write some good -poems.”</p> - -<p>He laughed, pleased. “You remember then? That was so -long ago. I somehow have gotten all out of the habit.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps you see too many people.”</p> - -<p>“That may be right and, speaking of people, you lovely -ones must have dinner with me this evening, otherwise I -must eat alone; I’ve been deserted today by everyone.”</p> - -<p>“I’m afraid,” said Carla, “that we can’t....”</p> - -<p>“That’s not a bad idea,” said Holton much to Lewis’s surprise—to -Carla’s surprise, too. Lewis looked at her and saw -she was surprised. He was amused, wickedly amused. There -was something between them.</p> - -<p>“You must really join me. I know of the most interesting -place in the Village. I know you’ll love it.”</p> - -<p>“Don’t you want to go?” asked Holton, looking at Carla.</p> - -<p>“Why....” She didn’t know what to say.</p> - -<p>“Certainly you’ll come; three is good company.”</p> - -<p>Carla gestured uncertainly with her hands.</p> - -<p>“Perhaps I’d better come back in a moment,” said Lewis, -smiling maliciously at Carla. “I so hope I’m not upsetting -plans.” He made bowing movements and retreated into the -center of the party.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</span></p> - -<p>As he withdrew he could see the long look Carla gave the -young man.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The men from Wall Street bored Mr Heywood. He tried -to act like them but from time to time he could not help implying -gently to them that he was a broker through heredity, -not inclination. It was so much easier doing what his father -had done than to do something else or nothing at all. He -had a puritanical horror of doing nothing. His family had -made him believe that it was necessary always to work and -he rather liked the work, too. It made him think less about -his own uniquely miserable life.</p> - -<p>His wives were a large part of the general dreariness of his -life. He never seemed to marry the right women. They either -wanted his money or wanted to dominate him. He was used -to domination by now but it made him uneasy sometimes to -feel that his own will was so easily bent by others. He was -always making stands, erecting firm barriers, but somehow -the barriers usually collapsed. He wondered sometimes if he -shouldn’t collect stamps or have a hobby like that.</p> - -<p>Thinking of this, he began now to divorce himself from -the group of Wall Street people. He promised to have lunch -with one, to call up another; he bowed to a third, shook -hands with a fourth and then he floated softly away, a look -of quiet happiness on his face: he was now alone in the -midst of a party.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood looked about him to see if there was anyone -he might like to talk to. He would prefer some young woman -who looked lonely. His three wives had all looked lonely at -one period of the courtship and he had married them as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</span> -much for this corresponding loneliness as for anything else. -He had been mistaken three times but he was, in general, -an optimist.</p> - -<p>There seemed to be no lonely-looking young women. He -sighed and was about to leave the party when he saw Robert -Holton. He remembered him clearly; he was proud of his -memory. Now he would have to speak to him. It would be -difficult, but then he had always been taught that if a thing -was particularly unpleasant it should be done: character was -made in this fashion and character was more important than -anything else. He proceeded to mould his character. He -walked toward Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood approached Holton from behind and he -could overhear his conversation with a dark pretty woman.</p> - -<p>Holton was saying, “I think it might be interesting. After -all, Carla, I don’t get out much and if a person like Lewis -wants us to go I think we should.”</p> - -<p>“If you want to, Bob.” She was a foreigner, thought Mr -Heywood with interest. “I’d hoped we might have had dinner -together and try to ... to talk of.... I’m not saying this -well, I’m sorry.”</p> - -<p>“No, Carla....” Mr Heywood drifted between them now.</p> - -<p>“Mr Holton?” he asked.</p> - -<p>“Oh, Mr Heywood! How do you do, sir?” Robert Holton -was impressed as always with Mr Heywood’s greatness and -this both saddened and pleased Mr Heywood.</p> - -<p>“I had thought ...” began Mr Heywood in a barely audible -voice.</p> - -<p>“This,” said Holton quickly on top of Mr Heywood’s -words, “is Mrs Bankton, an old friend of mine. Mr Heywood.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</span></p> - -<p>The meeting was made and Mr Heywood was rather attracted -to this pretty girl who spoke English so beautifully -and yet with an accent.</p> - -<p>“I thought I should find you here, Mr Holton. Mrs Stevanson -was telling me about you.”</p> - -<p>“That was nice of her.”</p> - -<p>“She is a charming woman,” said Mr Heywood, praising -an absent person about whom they all cared very little; it -filled the first awkwardness of a meeting such as this. “You -enjoy being downtown?” He was careful not to associate -himself with Holton’s job.</p> - -<p>“Oh, very much,” said Holton.</p> - -<p>“By the way,” asked the dark pretty woman, “what are -you doing now? You haven’t told me.”</p> - -<p>Holton flushed and Mr Heywood was sorry for him. “I’m -working in a brokerage office.”</p> - -<p>She laughed. “But how dreadful that must be.”</p> - -<p>Holton looked miserable and Mr Heywood, who rather -agreed with her, laughed. “It’s not too terrible, Mrs Bankton. -Some of us manage to survive it. I think a sense of humor is -the most important thing.”</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry,” she said. “I had no idea you were also in the -same situation.”</p> - -<p>How delightful she was, thought Mr Heywood. “We -must all,” said Mr Heywood in a voice that was like the sigh -of a dying man, “do our appointed tasks. Duty is of such -great importance: it is the only tangible thing in the chaos -of living.”</p> - -<p>“But I don’t think that’s so at all,” said Carla as gently as -he but with less resignation. “One should always try to do -what one wants to do.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</span></p> - -<p>“In spite of one’s duty to others?”</p> - -<p>“People that you love?”</p> - -<p>“No, that I ... that one admires and respects.”</p> - -<p>“And this makes you happy?”</p> - -<p>“Are any of us happy?” asked Heywood in a voice of -weary sadness; he stopped, suddenly remembering that -young Holton was there. It would never do for him to hear -these things.</p> - -<p>“I talked,” he said casually, “with Murphy about you today. -He seemed most enthusiastic.”</p> - -<p>“That’s nice. I like working with him.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps,” said Mr Heywood, looking at a spot somewhere -over Holton’s head, “perhaps you would be interested in -working in the jobs that, ah, come in contact with the public.” -He could not say selling: he tried but he could not. He -wondered if maybe a long trip to South America would give -him a new perspective.</p> - -<p>“I think that would be wonderful!” Holton was moved as -he should be. An affable young man, thought Mr Heywood -who, as a rule, did not like men at all, especially -young men who seemed to be able to get all the lonely -young women they wanted.</p> - -<p>“Perhaps,” murmured Mr Heywood, “something can be -arranged in the near future.” He looked at the dark woman -beside Holton and he thought her an unusually real person -to find in such a place as this. She was probably not real, -though: only an illusion with long white hands and silvery -nails. He was used to women vanishing.</p> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis appeared and Mr Heywood experienced -a slight spasm of nausea. He found Lewis hard to be -with. Mr Heywood would not have said that being a broker<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</span> -was a productive life but if, to be an artist, it was necessary -to be like Lewis he had no desire to be an artist.</p> - -<p>“How do you do?” said Lewis, bowing very low and -smirking at him.</p> - -<p>“And how are you?” inquired Mr Heywood politely, beginning -to retreat slowly.</p> - -<p>“Doing marvelously. These charming people here are dining -with me, aren’t you?”</p> - -<p>Carla looked uncertain and Holton nodded. Mr Heywood -wondered where Holton had run across Lewis.</p> - -<p>“I’m really,” said Lewis in a conspiratorial voice (an old -woman’s voice, thought Mr Heywood, frowning slightly), -“just doing a job. Her husband is one of our idols and I may -get a perfectly marvelous essay out of her. I knew his work -so well.” Mr Heywood wondered vaguely why Lewis was -explaining so many things.</p> - -<p>“I see,” said Mr Heywood. He turned to Carla. “Delighted -to have met you.” He nodded to Holton. “I shall probably -see you tomorrow.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, sir; good night, sir.” Mr Heywood glided away toward -the door.</p> - -<p>Mrs Stevanson appeared beside him just as he had made -up his mind to leave.</p> - -<p>“Do cheer up, Heywood. You look so petulant!”</p> - -<p>“I’m not really, Helena, not really.”</p> - -<p>“I’m not so sure. Who’re you looking at?” He glanced -away quickly but she saw that he had been watching Carla. -“Lovely, isn’t she? I’m afraid she’s stuck with that Holton -boy and, my Lord, George <em>Robert’s</em> got her, too. The poor -child and...” Mrs Stevanson was surprised. “I do think -they’re leaving!”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</span></p> - -<p>“After all,” said Heywood soothingly, “it <em>is</em> a cocktail -party. They probably weren’t able to find you.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose you’re right, Heywood. Manners change so. -She looked rather unhappy, I thought.”</p> - -<p>“Who?”</p> - -<p>“Mrs. Bankton.”</p> - -<p>“Really. I didn’t notice.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t suppose you did; men don’t notice very many -things anyway,” said Mrs Stevanson, suddenly exhibiting -her bitterness. She controlled herself quickly. “Except men -like you, Heywood dear.”</p> - -<p>“Thank you, Helena.” He bowed without movement; he -suggested a bow without actually executing it. “Now I must -really be going.”</p> - -<p>“So soon, Heywood, so soon?”</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Ten</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">Carla was angry with Robert Holton, angrier still with -George <em>Robert</em> Lewis. She had hoped to have dinner alone -with Holton. She wanted time to recover a past emotion and -now she would have very little time. As they drove through -the lighted streets she looked with dislike at Lewis’s smooth -boyish face.</p> - -<p>None of them spoke after they got into the cab outside -Mrs Stevanson’s place. Lewis had given the driver an address -and they had relaxed, each thinking of different -things: Holton pleased to be seeing life; Lewis pleased to -have secured the wife of a great figure; Carla displeased -with the arrangement, Carla plotting murder.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton sat in the middle. Carla had decided that -if she had to spend an evening with Lewis she at least -wouldn’t sit next to him.</p> - -<p>She looked at Holton as they drove down Seventh Avenue. -He was looking straight ahead. His well-formed, not -very strong mouth was set in a straight line; he was trying -to be firm now; he was trying to convince her that he was -right in accepting Lewis’s invitation for them.</p> - -<p>She sighed loudly so that she would be heard and understood.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</span> -Then she looked out the window and examined the -neon signs that broke the darkness with many colors. She -liked the lights.</p> - -<p>The taxicab stopped on a side street where a dozen or -more signs advertised night clubs. They got out and Lewis -paid the driver.</p> - -<p>“Where is it?” asked Holton, looking about him.</p> - -<p>Lewis pointed to some steps. “Right down there. I suppose -it’s open; you know, there was some talk that the -police might close it but I don’t think they will. Shall we -go in?”</p> - -<p>Carla could see that Holton was wondering what he -meant when he said that the police might close it. She understood -herself and she was rather pleased now: it would -be a lesson for him, an experience that he needed.</p> - -<p>Lewis led them down the steps and into the night club.</p> - -<p>There were two large rooms: one light and garish, with a -long bar, many mirrors and booths; the other was darker, -with tables and, at one end, a small band on a small stage. -They went into the darker room. The headwaiter recognized -Lewis and was very polite to him; he showed them to a -table near the stage.</p> - -<p>“Isn’t this charming?” asked Lewis. “I think it has a wonderful -atmosphere.” He grinned at Carla. She nodded.</p> - -<p>“It’s not too garish,” she said. “So many American places -are too light.”</p> - -<p>“Do they have a floor show?” asked Holton.</p> - -<p>“A very unusual one,” said Lewis, giggling. “I’m sure -you’ll think it great fun. Hermes de Bianca is the star of the -show and his dance is perfectly magnificent. He is one of the -great artists, great interpretive artists, I mean.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</span></p> - -<p>“Is that right?”</p> - -<p>A waiter came to take their order. He was a curious-looking -waiter, a type which Carla recognized but Holton -did not. He wore no uniform. She looked around the room -and found that none of the others wore uniforms. They were -dressed casually. This waiter’s hair was long, unpleasantly -long and the front of it had been carefully bleached. He was -thin and moved stiffly, self-consciously, like a woman thinking -of rape. On one of his fingers he wore a large ring with -a bizarre stone in it.</p> - -<p>“What do you people want?” His voice was irritable and -high. He was looking interestedly at Holton who was looking -just as interestedly at him.</p> - -<p>“I’d love something to drink,” said Lewis. “How about the -rest of you?”</p> - -<p>The waiter looked at Lewis for the first time. His face -brightened. “George, it’s you! How lovely to see you! You -haven’t been here in such a long time.”</p> - -<p>“I’ve been dreadfully busy,” said Lewis coldly, disengaging -himself from the waiter’s assumed relationship.</p> - -<p>“I think,” said Holton, “that I’d like a highball.” They all -decided to have the same thing and the waiter, with a slight -toss of his head, walked away.</p> - -<p>The small band was playing loudly and eagerly. One sentimental -modern song after another was catapulted into the -room. Fortunately, after several minutes the band stopped -playing and the musicians departed.</p> - -<p>“I’m glad they’re gone,” said Carla. “They make too much -music.”</p> - -<p>“They aren’t very delicate.” Lewis turned suddenly to -Holton. “And you, what do you do?”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</span></p> - -<p>Holton flushed. “Well, I work in a brokerage house.”</p> - -<p>Lewis’s eyebrows went up and he elaborately showed surprise -and disbelief. “But how remarkable! You’re not an -artist! Surely you must do something wonderful. You have -the hands of an artist. You’re just working there because -you have to. That’s it, isn’t it?”</p> - -<p>“No, that’s not it.” Carla admired his courage. “I don’t -mind working there and it’s probably going to be my career.” -His jaw got very firm. She liked him this way.</p> - -<p>“How marvelous!” exclaimed Lewis. “A contented Babbitt.” -He stopped. “What a dreadful thing to say: that’s such -a Nineteen-Twenty phrase. Really, I sometimes wonder if art -is the answer to our problems.”</p> - -<p>“I think it might be to the artist,” said Carla softly.</p> - -<p>Lewis bowed. “<em>Touché</em>, my dear. Let’s say the dedication -to art, the freedom from conventions. Perhaps this young -man’s view is the saner: to accept the pattern.” He was -mocking now but he did not show it in his face.</p> - -<p>“Some things you have to accept,” said Holton, aware of -Lewis’s mockery. “Sometimes there is nothing else.”</p> - -<p>“There is always something else,” said Lewis decidedly.</p> - -<p>“I think that’s right,” said Carla.</p> - -<p>“What?” asked Holton. “What else can you do but that?”</p> - -<p>“Run away,” said Lewis.</p> - -<p>“Fall in love,” said Carla.</p> - -<p>But neither solution was convincing to Holton and Carla -could think of no way to explain herself. There seemed, at -the moment, no words to record her meaning, no bridge to -reach him. They were all three quiet, thinking of questions -and answers.</p> - -<p>Finally their silence killed the problem and they began<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</span> -to notice the room they were in and the other people. The -people at the different tables were not, generally, mixed. -Several women would sit at one table and several men would -sit at another. Around the room were small tables for two -and here men sat with men and women with women. This -was puzzling to Holton, she could see. He said nothing, -though, and she had a great sudden ache of tenderness for -him, a desire to protect his innocence. But this she could not -do. She was a stranger to him and he had forgotten.</p> - -<p>Cigarette smoke veiled the room bluely and everything -seemed tenuous and unreal. The sound of voices and ice -clattering, of forks striking plates and of many people moving -and breathing together made an ocean-like roar in -Carla’s ears. The room was hot and the smell of perfume was -strong.</p> - -<p>The band returned and began to play. They played much -more softly than they had before and she was grateful. Conversation -was not difficult when the music was soft. In fact, -the music seemed to underline many things, made emotional -statements dramatic. Unfortunately, with George <em>Robert</em> -Lewis sitting at the table there was no opportunity to make -emotional statements. He would have to leave. She began -to concentrate on this as they talked now of trivial things. -Finally he received her subconscious message. He stood up.</p> - -<p>“I hope you’ll excuse me a moment but I have to go backstage. -I’ll only be gone a minute.” He left quickly, going -around the stage and behind the crimson curtain.</p> - -<p>“He’s a funny little queer, isn’t he?” commented Holton.</p> - -<p>“He’s one of the great aesthetes. You’re glad you came tonight?”</p> - -<p>“It’s interesting,” he said. He was defending himself now.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</span></p> - -<p>“This is a very ...” she paused, trying to think of the right -word, “trivial world. I don’t think you’ll like it.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps I will. I used to be something of a sculptor.” He -said this laughing, and she could see that he was quite -serious.</p> - -<p>“Then why don’t you do it?”</p> - -<p>“I wasn’t good enough. I haven’t done any since I was in -college.”</p> - -<p>“Would you like to do it?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t think so.” She couldn’t tell whether he meant this -or not.</p> - -<p>The waiter came and put their glasses down on the table -with a look of boredom; in fact, he yawned slightly as he did -it. He tried to catch Holton’s eye but failed. Sulkily he -walked away.</p> - -<p>“I don’t want this,” said Carla, pointing to the glass.</p> - -<p>“I’ll take it,” said Holton and he began to drink his own, -his teeth making clicking sounds as the ice bobbed against -them.</p> - -<p>“You like what you’re doing now?” asked Carla.</p> - -<p>He put the glass down and frowned. “I suppose I do. I -have to do it and so I figure I might as well like it.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps you might find something you like better.”</p> - -<p>“What?”</p> - -<p>“You might be a sculptor again.”</p> - -<p>He laughed. “I’m really no good. I can’t do anything else -but this. I don’t see anything wrong with what I’m doing, -anyway.”</p> - -<p>“There’s nothing wrong with it if you’re happy; are you?” -He didn’t answer for a moment. Then he said, “I suppose -I am.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</span></p> - -<p>“But you’re not in love?”</p> - -<p>“What has that to do with it?”</p> - -<p>“So many things,” said Carla, and she did not look at him; -she avoided his eyes. He did not understand. She could see -that now. The desire, however, to make him destroy his barriers, -to come alive, was becoming an obsession with her. -And then, of course, he had been the first man she had -known and that made him important to her. She had never -lost her feeling for him and she was sad to see him confused; -Carla thought of herself as Joan of Arc: helping the -king to his throne. She was not yet sure, however, that the -king wished to reign.</p> - -<p>The music was becoming soft and sentimental. Full round -chords gushed around them and people danced on the stage. -Men danced with women and women with men for there -was not really much courage among these people.</p> - -<p>“Would you like to dance?” asked Holton.</p> - -<p>“Not right now.”</p> - -<p>He was not disappointed. She watched him as he watched -the other people in the room. This was something new for -him. She guessed that he was shocked by the people he saw -at the different tables. He showed nothing in his face, -though. Perhaps he did not recognize them, did not know -them the way she did: she who had married one of them.</p> - -<p>“It’s been quite a while, hasn’t it?” said Holton finally.</p> - -<p>“Yes, but I haven’t forgotten any of it, have you?”</p> - -<p>“Of course not. Naturally I didn’t know whether you -wanted to talk about it. I figured that ... well, after you -married Bankton you wouldn’t want to think about what -we did.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t,” said Carla, “love Bankton.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</span></p> - -<p>He was shocked and she knew that she had said the right -thing if in the wrong manner.</p> - -<p>“But you got married,” said Holton.</p> - -<p>She nodded. “I’m afraid I didn’t know very much about -him then. I went to London after the war was over and I -stayed with some artists there. I met him and he made love -to me. I thought he was very wonderful. I had heard stories -about him: that he was ... was like these people here.” She -gestured to include the room. “I didn’t believe the stories. I -married him. I found he wanted me for camouflage.”</p> - -<p>“Why don’t you divorce him then?”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps I shall someday. It seems so much trouble, -though. He’s really a very nice person.”</p> - -<p>Holton shook his head, confused. “I don’t see ... I don’t -see why he married you in the first place if he was....”</p> - -<p>“He could still like me, Bob.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t see how.”</p> - -<p>She smiled. “It <em>is</em> hard to explain but anyway you know -now that I don’t feel too deeply about him. You understand -this?”</p> - -<p>“I suppose so,” said Robert Holton. He <em>is</em> beginning to -understand, thought Carla, happy now: her words had -begun to build the bridge between them. Soon they would -meet again.</p> - -<p>“You’ve certainly had a funny life,” said Holton, smiling.</p> - -<p>“Sometimes I think so but then the most important thing -is making a freedom for oneself. When that’s done nothing is -strange because everything is natural. You know what I -mean?”</p> - -<p>He nodded. “Sometimes I know.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</span></p> - -<p>She picked up a fork and drew pictures on the white -tablecloth. “I want you to be free,” she said.</p> - -<p>“Free from what?”</p> - -<p>“You know. From your routine and morals: the things you -don’t want.”</p> - -<p>He laughed. “You know pretty well what my set of morals -is and I don’t mind the routine so much.”</p> - -<p>“I think you do.”</p> - -<p>“Why?”</p> - -<p>“Why did you want to come here with Lewis tonight? -Why are you with me now?”</p> - -<p>He smiled. “Perhaps you’re partly right. I was curious and -I do get bored and....”</p> - -<p>“And you’re alone.” She spoke for him.</p> - -<p>He finished his drink and did not answer her; there was -no need to answer her.</p> - -<p>“Are you glad,” she asked at last, “are you glad to see me -again?”</p> - -<p>He said that he was. He declared that he was. He made -an issue of it. He was still not at ease with her and she felt -desperate. It was like a battle between them; first one side -retreating and the other advancing.... Or perhaps a hunt. -She was the hunter and her memories the pursued. She -knew that beneath his many assumed faces there was the -person she had known in Florence. Deliberately Carla began -to smash the faces.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis had a very pleasant interview with -de Bianca, the star; after a half-hour, though, he was beginning<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</span> -to get restless. Dancers seldom talked about anything -interesting. Finally he excused himself, saying that his guests -were waiting for him.</p> - -<p>They were talking quietly and intimately when he got -back to the table. He took a secret pleasure in interrupting -them. Lewis had already decided that they were lovers.</p> - -<p>“I’m so dreadfully sorry that I went off and left you the -way I did. It was stupid of me but I got so involved with -Hermes and his amours: he tells me all about them and -though they’re really quite dull I have to be polite and listen. -Have you ordered yet?”</p> - -<p>They said that they had not. Lewis immediately became -noisily efficient. He ordered the languid waiter about, gave -him careful instructions and ignored his glances and meaningful -gestures. Lewis never had liked this type at all. The -ones like this waiter never seemed to have any respect for -him. They couldn’t understand the principles for which he -stood. They were not artists.</p> - -<p>The dinner finally ordered, he turned toward his guests, -a white-toothed smile on his slightly rouged lips (Hermes -had lent him rouge).</p> - -<p>“Are you adoring the atmosphere, my dear Mrs Bankton? -It’s nothing to compare with Paris, of course, but you must -admit that it’s a lot gayer than Rome. I love Rome and usually -have a marvelous time there but somehow one never -seems to find the same easy atmosphere that we have here.”</p> - -<p>“No, it is not like Rome,” agreed Carla. What wonderful -golden skin she has, thought Lewis, enjoying her aesthetically. -He didn’t dislike women the way many of his friends -did. He felt, in fact, most compatible with them.</p> - -<p>“Are there many places like this in New York?” asked Holton.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</span> -Lewis was pleased that he had caught on. Lewis, always -optimistic, wondered if it might not be possible to -make some sort of an arrangement.... It was not impossible, -certainly.</p> - -<p>“Oh, quite a few, quite a few. They <em>are</em> rather charming -from time to time. I enjoy visiting them and I do feel that -the atmosphere is not uncongenial.” He wondered if perhaps -he hadn’t been using the word “atmosphere” too much.</p> - -<p>“I’ve heard about these places,” said Holton without much -expression.</p> - -<p>“Surely you don’t disapprove?” Lewis was intent on discovering -this now. He could see that Carla was uneasy. Holton -was unsatisfactory, though.</p> - -<p>“I don’t care much one way or the other,” he said and he -turned to Carla and began to talk to her again. Lewis, disappointed, -listened to them as they talked of Fiesole.</p> - -<p>Lewis was not quite sure what their relationship was. As -they talked he gathered that she was more interested than -he in continuing it. That was usually the case, however. -Young men like Holton were apt to be a little unfeeling, a -little stuffy. George <em>Robert</em> Lewis thought pleasantly of -young men.</p> - -<p>When he felt that they had talked too long without him, -he interrupted. “When were you last in Fiesole?” He looked -at Carla, intending the question for her; it was difficult not -having a name to call her.</p> - -<p>She looked at him as though she had forgotten him completely. -“In Fiesole? I was there just a year ago.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose it’s pretty well recovered from the war. I told -you how I used to love visiting there before the war. I hope -it will always be pleasant.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</span></p> - -<p>“I think it will,” said Carla.</p> - -<p>“Europe must’ve been very nice before the war,” said -Holton.</p> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis made an elaborate motion to show -just what it had been before the war; as he was finishing his -movement the waiter brought them their dinner: a number -of dishes with filet of sole at the center.</p> - -<p>“I hope you enjoy it,” said the waiter spitefully, putting -the dishes down loudly and angrily. He walked away, his -duty done.</p> - -<p>Lewis sighed. “These dreadful waiters, they presume so. I -suppose that it’s all a part of the American dream. Shall we -begin?” Like a priest of a pagan cult he began to perform -the ritual of arranging plates, of removing covers, of neatly -moving food from plate to plate, and finally of eating. The -others imitated him.</p> - -<p>“When,” asked Robert Holton, after the main part of the -dinner had been eaten, “will the show start?”</p> - -<p>Lewis put down his fork carefully, swallowed, and said, -“Very soon, I think. What time is it?” There was an examination -of watches: ten-fifteen. “The show starts at ten-thirty. -I hope you’re not impatient. The audience is very often as -interesting as the show. But I must say that de Bianca’s -dance is in another world and that we mustn’t miss it. I’ll -be very curious to know how you react.”</p> - -<p>“There used to be a place in Paris like this where they had -a wonderful dancer of the same type. I suppose he’s the type -of dancer I think he is?” said Carla.</p> - -<p>“He is quite probably the sort of dancer you think he is,” -said Lewis, smiling, excluding Holton from his words. “The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</span> -only difference is that he is a great artist, interpretive artist, -I mean. I know you’ll appreciate him.”</p> - -<p>A group of people who knew Lewis came over to their -table. They acted most respectfully and he hoped that -Carla and Holton were noticing what an important person -he was. He spoke nicely to them, shook hands with them, -and let them know that he was busy. They left him then, -smiling. Smiling himself, he turned to Carla and Holton and -he was disappointed to find them talking together again. -Holton had taken Carla’s hand in his and Lewis felt a strange -anguish, felt an inward betrayal. He did not know what had -been betrayed, however.</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry, my dear, that I didn’t introduce you to those -people. It was rude of me because they <em>all</em> admire your husband’s -work.”</p> - -<p>“That’s perfectly all right,” said Carla. “I know so little -about his work. I’m only a layman, you know.”</p> - -<p>“I can hardly believe that. You must’ve been an artist -yourself at one time.”</p> - -<p>She shook her head. “No, I was never an artist at anything. -Except at living, perhaps.” Trumpets sounded loudly from -the band, giving her statement an absurd grandeur. She -sensed this and laughed. “I wish to say that I try to make -my life a complete thing.”</p> - -<p>“But what a marvelous thing to want to do! All of us try -that but when we fail at it (and alas we most of us fail) -then we must find ourselves a medium to guard our egos, to -protect our fears.”</p> - -<p>“That’s for the talented, Mr Lewis, but for the rest of us, -the majority, only our lives count. We must make them -natural.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</span></p> - -<p>“And that,” said Robert Holton suddenly, “is for the rich -to do. The rest of us can’t even do that.”</p> - -<p>“How delightful!” exclaimed Lewis. “We have here the -three representatives of humanity: the rich and ... free? -the poor and trapped, and the artist who is finding both -freedom and an opiate. But how wonderfully symbolic! -We’re practically an allegory. I suppose we can reach some -understanding.”</p> - -<p>“How?” asked Holton and Lewis could see that he was -asking Carla, not him. “How can you get what you want -without money? I don’t see how you can ever do what you -want if you aren’t free.”</p> - -<p>“I think,” said Carla, “that you can become free. You can -get free in art and you can get free in love. Money hasn’t -much to do with it. You can’t go anywhere alone. I don’t -think it’s possible to be sane alone, without love.”</p> - -<p>“I think you’re right,” said Lewis sincerely and sadly, allowing -the now soft music to dissolve his mind into an emotional -waste out of which, of course, came art. “I think you -have explained all the tragedies in the world.”</p> - -<p>“And all the happiness,” murmured Carla, looking at Holton. -Holton smiled then. It was the first time that Lewis had -seen him smile and he was struck by the gentleness and -beauty of his face. He was beginning to see the person under -the rather rigid mask and he understood now why this quite -wonderful woman was in love. Holton was about to say -something when the band made a crescendo and the lights -on the stage went up. The show was about to begin.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>A slender little man, ineptly painted, appeared on the -stage and welcomed the audience to the night club.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</span></p> - -<p>He then motioned and the lights in the room went out -leaving only the stage with its curtain backdrop lighted. The -band began to play a current song and the master of ceremonies -proceeded to sing, using new dirty lyrics which made -the audience laugh. He then told a joke about fairies. The -audience laughed loudly at this, reveling in exposure; often -their masks became too tight, too heavy. He removed them.</p> - -<p>Finished with his joke, he bowed and several persons -came onto the stage. They were probably men. They wore -dresses and several of them had faces of great beauty. They -danced, parodying women, transcending the single sex. And -in the audience people looked at one another and nodded -and looked again at the stage, smiles on their faces.</p> - -<p>When their dance was finished they left. There was much -noise from the audience.</p> - -<p>Then a thin young man swayed onto the stage, took the -microphone in his hands and sang a sexual funny song.</p> - -<p>“Who is that?” asked Carla, turning to Lewis.</p> - -<p>“Our waiter, darling,” whispered Lewis; “all the performers -are waiters, too. Isn’t it exciting?”</p> - -<p>Carla said nothing. Lewis looked at Holton. There was -little light in the room and he couldn’t make out his expression. -Holton was sitting motionless, one hand on the table, -one hand touching Carla’s.</p> - -<p>Their waiter was so well received that he sang another -song.</p> - -<p>More dancers appeared. This time they were real women -and the men who came out with them were dressed as men. -They did a serious near-ballet but, because they didn’t know -how to dance very well and because they didn’t particularly -care, the dance was funny and Holton laughed. Lewis and -Carla didn’t laugh: for different reasons.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</span></p> - -<p>Suddenly in the middle of the dance a voice off stage announced -loudly, “Jerry!” and a girl dressed in a fake tiger -skin ran onto the stage. The audience whistled and stamped -and a table of girls near the stage applauded hysterically. -The girl’s face was square and smooth and hard, without expression. -Her body was strong and slim and startlingly -white. One shoulder and most of one breast were bare.</p> - -<p>She moved in a stylized jungle fashion among the other -dancers who ran from her, simulating fear as they did. -Finally she was left alone on the stage. She danced then, -showing as much of her hard white body as she could. Her -face never changed expression, however. She always looked -straight ahead without smiling, her square face rigid.</p> - -<p>And, at last, as a climax, she unfastened the tiger skin and -with a quick gesture pulled it off and for a moment let the -audience see her white hard body. Then the lights went off -and she disappeared as the women in the audience shrieked -their delight and the men, catching some of the hysteria, applauded -loudly.</p> - -<p>The lights came on again and the stage was empty. The -band played uncompelling music. “What,” asked Lewis, -turning to Holton, “did you think of her? Isn’t she a perfect -savage?”</p> - -<p>“No, I don’t think she is,” said Holton seriously. “I don’t -think she was good at all, did you?”</p> - -<p>“Why, yes, I thought she had something. A certain ... -how shall I say ... banked fire?”</p> - -<p>“I agree with Bob,” said Carla. “I don’t think she’s a savage; -I don’t think she’s natural.”</p> - -<p>“Just prejudice,” said Lewis lightly, gesturing with his -hand. “Just prejudice; anyway, the girls here love her.” He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</span> -pointed to a table of women. The dancer, wearing a dressing -gown now, was sitting on the lap of one.</p> - -<p>Holton chuckled.</p> - -<p>“What amuses you?” asked Lewis but Holton wouldn’t -answer him.</p> - -<p>Carla told them of a dancer in Paris, like this dancer, and -as she talked the lights went off in the room and the band -began to play. Suddenly a spotlight was turned upon the -stage and the room became quiet as the people waited to -see the thing they had heard of, the thing they had come to -see.</p> - -<p>Softly the orchestra played.</p> - -<p>A boy with blond curling hair and a smooth white face -walked onto the stage, turned his back to the audience, and -hung a round silver moon from a hook attached to the low -ceiling. He stood back a moment, looking at the moon, and -then, satisfied that it was right, he stepped off the small -stage and sat down on a bench near the wings.</p> - -<p>The silver moon shone dully, dominating the stage and -the room. In the middle of the moon there was a mask: a -painted mask, enticing, sexual, ambiguous, a youth or a -woman. From this mask long veils of pink and blue silk -quivered gently, stirred by the now-excited breathing of the -audience. They watched this mask and, watching, waited for -the dance to begin.</p> - -<p>A voice came startlingly into the room from a loud-speaker. -Said the voice: “We take great pride in introducing the star -of our show, the one and only Hermes de Bianca. To the -music of a Tschaikovsky concerto he will do a dance symbolic -of the struggle between the material and the spiritual -natures of man. Introducing MR HERMES DE BIANCA!”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</span></p> - -<p>The band began to play the concerto. More lights, multicolored -lights, were turned upon the stage. The veils of the -moon fluttered and Hermes de Bianca entered.</p> - -<p>A long sigh came from the audience as he appeared and -began to dance.</p> - -<p>He wore a thin silk costume, mysterious and black, with -flowing sleeves. He was fat, not grossly fat like a man, but -rather the plump voluptuousness of an old belle; his skin -shone white through the semi-transparent costume.</p> - -<p>His hips were heavy and feminine. His hands and feet -were tiny; he was very proud of them, for he gestured with -his hands and pirouetted on the tips of his dainty feet. His -breasts were the breasts of a woman.</p> - -<p>Methodically he danced. With an obscene grace he moved -about the stage, moved like a yielding woman exulting in -her passivity.</p> - -<p>His face:</p> - -<p>There are the faces of men and there are the faces of -women and there are also the faces of children, but this was -yet another face.</p> - -<p>The skin was smooth and silken-looking. The face was -beautiful; his eyes were widened with paint and across the -upper eyelids rows of shining, diamond-like stones were -glued, making his slightest expression glitter in the light.</p> - -<p>As he danced he would touch his hair from time to time, -using the most common of feminine gestures. His hair was -dark and oiled, with an artificial peak over the forehead. -And, most striking of all, streaks of gray had been painted -at the temples.</p> - -<p>The music then became sad and, as it did, his dance became -slower, more sensual. His wide painted mouth was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</span> -never still, always working, always moist, the lips never -without expression; now parted, showing desire, now petulant, -now commanding, always enticing young men to love.</p> - -<p>He moved with great lightness, handling his heaviness -gracefully as he advanced upon the moon, making love to -the mask.</p> - -<p>Then, as the music became louder, more compelling, he -whirled and twisted among the veils of the moon, wrapping -himself in them, surrendering to the mask, approaching and -retreating, always attracted to the painted mask.</p> - -<p>But, finally, he was the one conquered, the one who surrendered, -the passive one. And he stood there, the sounds -of music all about him, engulfing him, his back arched, his -head thrown back and his plump white stomach shuddering -beneath the dark material of his costume.</p> - -<p>And then, as the music reached a climax, he whirled in the -center of the stage, violent, obscene in a desire to be possessed.</p> - -<p>The music stopped.</p> - -<p>There was silence in the room—no sound save the unheard -thundering of many quick-beating hearts. The ones who understood -were too moved to speak and the ones who did not -understand were embarrassed and sickened, aware of their -danger, and afraid.</p> - -<p>He bowed to the audience now, his moist red mouth smiling -brilliantly, the mouth of an actress awaiting applause. -The applause came, destroying the silence in the room, creating -another less frightening mood, replenishing his ego.</p> - -<p>Smiling, he walked in triumph off the stage.</p> - -<p>The lights were turned on at last and the orchestra played -a popular song.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</span></p> - -<p>The boy took down the silver moon and the painted mask -and as he walked away he took the reality of the dream with -him and couples began to dance on the stage where Hermes -de Bianca had danced. Yet as they danced, close to one another, -there was a certain fear within each of them, an uncertainty -and a dread.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>“What do you think of that?” asked Lewis.</p> - -<p>He was breathing quickly, Carla noticed. His face was -flushed and he was excited, more excited than she had -thought he could possibly be.</p> - -<p>“It is very ... erotic,” she said, knowing how inadequate -that word was.</p> - -<p>Holton was sweating when she turned to ask him what he -thought. He looked angry.</p> - -<p>“Did you like it, Bob?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“No, I didn’t,” he said. He took out his handkerchief and -dried his face. “Christ, but it’s hot in here. Why don’t we -go?”</p> - -<p>“In a moment,” said Lewis, now recovered. “You must -meet dear Hermes. I’ll go back stage and get him.” He stood -up, looked around the room to see if he were being watched; -then, satisfied that he was, he went back stage.</p> - -<p>“You don’t care for this?” Carla asked.</p> - -<p>“I guess I don’t. I never saw anything like this before. I -used to hear a lot of stories but I didn’t think there were -really such places.”</p> - -<p>“There are many a lot worse, said Carla. Of course I’m -used to it. You see my husband is....”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</span></p> - -<p>He smiled. “I guess you were right about not coming -here.”</p> - -<p>“You don’t regret it?”</p> - -<p>“It’s interesting.”</p> - -<p>“I think it was a very good idea for you to see something -of this world. Perhaps you can understand me better now, -knowing that I’m living with people like these, married to -a person like Lewis.”</p> - -<p>He frowned and looked very serious and she was happy -to see him concerned. “Can’t you leave him, can’t you leave -Bankton?”</p> - -<p>“Where would I go? He’s a charming person and I like -him. I’d have to find someone else before I could leave.”</p> - -<p>“Yes,” he said, not understanding her, “I see what you -mean.”</p> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis returned leading Hermes, still in -costume, by the hand.</p> - -<p>Everyone was polite. Hermes lisped that he was glad to -meet them and he shook hands squashily with both Holton -and Carla. Then they sat down at the table.</p> - -<p>Lewis was excited. “You know Hermes has made the most -dreadfully big decision? He’s going to Rome!” Trumpets did -not blow at that moment in the band; they should have, -though.</p> - -<p>Carla was puzzled. “You mean he’s going to Italy?”</p> - -<p>“No, darling, he’s becoming a Roman Catholic. Isn’t it -the most thrilling thing!”</p> - -<p>“I suppose so,” she said. “I used to be a Catholic myself.”</p> - -<p>“What happened?” asked Hermes in a lisping little girl’s -voice.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</span></p> - -<p>“I seemed to’ve gotten out of the idea. I married a Protestant, -of course.”</p> - -<p>“What a pity,” murmured Hermes, looking at Holton admiringly; -“I think it’s the only answer, really the only answer. -Almost everyone I know is going over to Rome so -there must be <em>something</em> in it.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps there is,” said Carla. “I think in Italy we take -the Church too much for granted.”</p> - -<p>“I do wish,” said Lewis, “that I could get interested in it. -There seems to be such a rush for rosaries today. But I’m -dreadfully afraid I’m just a hedonistic pagan.” He put his -hand on Hermes’ plump little hand. “I’ve always felt that -somewhere there is a faith that I could grasp onto.” With -his other hand he took a drink out of his recently filled glass. -“Sometimes one feels so lost, so homeless. I think there must -always be a womb-longing in each of us, a desire to go back -where we came from. I used to think that art was enough -but I suppose I was wrong because I never had much real -satisfaction from it. Carla here will say it is love that gives -us a reason, but I don’t think so. I’ve always been in love. -Occasionally with my own image, I must admit, but there -<em>have</em> been others. No, I never got much out of love. Hermes -here has his dancing, but I don’t think that was enough for -him either....”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps you’ve never given enough of yourself to another -person,” said Carla.</p> - -<p>“Vampire,” chuckled Lewis. “Our identities are the only -real things we have in this shadowy world.” He was in good -form now and he was becoming drugged with his own facility. -“No, we must try to obtain a faith, or at least a medium, -to carry out our search for immortality, or should I say perpetuation?<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[Pg 165]</span> -Women, normal women, seem to have less fear -of death because they have the function of child-bearing. -They are able to experience their own perpetuation; and in -their primitive way they feel a part of all mankind and there -are no real mysteries for them, no need of logic. But man is -different. The act of procreation is a pleasure and not painful -and, therefore, he does not observe that in that function -his own image is mirrored through eternity. He turns then -to art (the sensitive talented man, I mean now) and in making -pictures or books, playing at creation, he hopes to survive -death but he is never really convinced: at best he is -hypnotized, he is drugged by his art and in desperation he -tries to make meaning out of his own creations: playthings, -in reality. And so he finds himself in the end with chisel -and mallet in his hands making a statue and no nearer perpetuation, -closer only to death.”</p> - -<p>“How beautiful!” exclaimed Hermes. “But that’s why we -all have to go to Rome.”</p> - -<p>“Perhaps that’s the answer.” He began to speak again, his -flat voice rising and falling without emotion in it. Carla -looked at Holton questioningly. He nodded.</p> - -<p>“Bob and I have to go now,” she said.</p> - -<p>“Oh, you must stay a little longer,” he pleaded.</p> - -<p>“We really have to go,” said Holton, rising. They thanked -him (Lewis insisted on paying the bill) and said good-bye. -George <em>Robert</em> Lewis was still talking to Hermes as they -left.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Eleven</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">“How cool it is!” said Carla, as they walked along the -street. “I couldn’t breathe in there.”</p> - -<p>“It was a crazy place,” said Holton, looking straight ahead -as he walked, following the traffic lights. Carla occasionally -drew him off the curb and into the street but he always -managed to obey the green lights.</p> - -<p>They decided to walk uptown, to walk to Times Square.</p> - -<p>Carla felt light and happy now that Lewis had been left -behind.</p> - -<p>“I like the air in New York,” she said.</p> - -<p>“The air?”</p> - -<p>“It’s exciting and silly and everyone is busy doing things -they don’t want to do but still it’s stimulating.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose so.”</p> - -<p>She hadn’t decided yet whether he tried to be noncommittal -or whether he had nothing to say. No, he had something -to say: she was sure of that. He was shy and he felt -things very much but he was afraid to say them. She remembered -now that he had told her things about himself in -Florence. He had told her about his parents and his life,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</span> -though he hadn’t told her what he wanted to do. He still -would not tell her that and, if he knew, she would have to -discover it.</p> - -<p>“How long are you going to be in town?” he asked.</p> - -<p>“I don’t know. A month perhaps, I don’t know. I think -Bankton will be coming over soon. They’re going to give him -a big show here.”</p> - -<p>“I’d like to see him.”</p> - -<p>“He’d like to meet you, too.” She laughed. “I might lose -you to him” She stopped herself quickly. She shouldn’t have -said “lose” because they were supposed to be just casual -friends; at least, that was the basis he seemed to want. She -mustn’t frighten him. “I don’t think you’d like him,” she said -easily, in control now. “He’s rather jealous and disagreeable.”</p> - -<p>They crossed more streets, dodged more cars, bumped -into more and more people and, finally, they came to Times -Square.</p> - -<p>At Forty-second Street they stopped and Carla looked at -the lights for a long time.</p> - -<p>It seemed as if all the commercialism in the world had -decided to concentrate itself in one place, as if by blazing -colored lights and moving signs it could justify itself.</p> - -<p>At one end of the square a giant sign exploded colors, advertising -cigarettes. Another cigarette advertisement had a -man puffing smoke; it was most realistic because real smoke -or something like smoke came out of his mouth. Soft drinks -and chewing gum and cigarettes—all the small things—were -displayed in the most magnificent manner. There was an almost -religious appeal in the brightness of the lights, the -cathedral-like splendor of the signs which supported countless<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</span> -colored bulbs of light: everything was so large, so magnificent, -so desperately appealing.</p> - -<p>“Such wonderful strength,” murmured Carla, “so much -misguided energy.”</p> - -<p>“It’s very nice to look at,” said Robert Holton, speaking -self-consciously for America.</p> - -<p>They stood pressed against a building while hundreds of -people pushed by them in a thick stream. Carla studied the -lights, mesmerized by their colors: red passionate ones and -guttering greens, blue and yellow glowing, and moving figures; -they even had the lights turn on and off in such a fashion -that silhouetted men appeared to dance and animated -animals had adventures. The lights were most splendid and -nowhere in the world was so much grandeur hung against -the sky. Carla watched the lights.</p> - -<p>Yellow taxicabs clattered by them and everyone moved -quickly. Everyone had at least a destination and that was a -hopeful sign. She didn’t care to think what their destinations -might be.</p> - -<p>She looked at the buildings and saw that they were not -tall. They looked like buildings in Paris or London. Squat -and dirty and rather Victorian: the buildings were most ordinary -but there was so much light over them, against them, -all around them that they became as insubstantial as theater -props.</p> - -<p>The movie houses which filled the lower parts of most of -the buildings of the square had the most light. Their marquees -rippled and glittered with names. Large posters were -hung wherever there was no electricity. People moved in -constant streams into the movies, while other people, as constantly,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</span> -came out, blinking their eyes, adjusting themselves -to reality.</p> - -<p>Then there was the noise. Not a really individual noise, -not like an Italian crowd, hoarse and insistent, but a roar -with sharp breaks and a rhythm like an automobile engine, -a noise like a discordant piece of music with the rumblings -of a subway train as a bass. The conversations of many -people made a sound as soothing and as natural as the sea -but the mechanical things made sharp overtones, set the -rhythm of Times Square and of many lives.</p> - -<p>Slowly Carla and Robert Holton allowed themselves to -become a part of the current of people, gliding with them -toward the north end of the square.</p> - -<p>First of all were the young adventurers: boys with dark -skins and dark clever eyes, dressed in the spirit of the jazz -they had made their own without understanding. Looking -for sex, they walked together in groups, talking in whining -voices, unpleasant nasal voices.</p> - -<p>Young girls with bleached blond hair that looked untidy -and unclean walked in twos together, looking for men. Their -well-formed bodies with tight breasts moved self-consciously -as they walked on awkward high heels. They laughed too -loudly, giggled too much and stared at sailors.</p> - -<p>The couples were the happiest-looking of all. They always -walked with wonder in their faces, conscious of each other -as they walked through all the light and sound.</p> - -<p>Old men in dirty clothes moved slowly, looking for cigarette -butts. This was not new to them; they had known the -square before and found it good hunting though not as congenial -as quiet places. They had stopped looking for sex: -only cigarette butts.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</span></p> - -<p>Cripples and bums sang songs and rattled tin cups. It was -hard to tell what they were looking for besides charity. Perhaps -they had stopped their long search. Carla was sorry -for them.</p> - -<p>Hot stale air rushed out of the theater lobbies and from -the bars and restaurants; stale air rushed upward from the -subway ventilators in the sidewalk. The cool night was defeated -by the city, even the darkness had been defeated for -it was as light as day, as light as day and much prettier and -more exciting.</p> - -<p>“What a place!” said Carla. “So <em>much</em> is here. Is this the -dream Lewis was talking about?”</p> - -<p>“Maybe.”</p> - -<p>“I think,” said Carla, laughing, “this is the peak of your -civilization.”</p> - -<p>“Probably; it’s the sign of the century.”</p> - -<p>“But there will be other centuries.” And they thought of -other centuries when they would not be alive and they tried -to see the square in future years—if the square survived with -the dream.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Outside the Bijou Theater Marjorie Ventusa stood, trying -to make up her mind if she wanted to see her favorite actress -suffer. Marjorie liked pictures that made her cry. She wasn’t -sure, however, if she wanted to cry tonight.</p> - -<p>Mrs Merrin had been quite pleasant that evening when -Marjorie left and this made her feel good. She stood now, -undecided, Times Square all around her. She often faced -the high prices of the square to see new movies. She liked -crowded places because she felt happy with a lot of people -around her.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</span></p> - -<p>She stood beside the box office, warmed by the air from -the theater. The sight of all the people and lights made her -feel secure as though she were not really alone, for she identified -herself with every couple that passed by. She had no -envy.</p> - -<p>Marjorie was about to go into the movie when she saw -Robert Holton crossing a street on the other side of the -square. She had a sudden impulse to call him, to make herself -heard over the hundreds of people. Then she saw that -he was not alone. She saw that he was with a dark pretty -girl: a woman from the world where he lived. Marjorie Ventusa -watched him as he walked with this person across the -street. Then, on the other side, she lost him. He had disappeared -with the dark woman.</p> - -<p>The square had changed now and the lights were cruel. -The noises became oppressive and she felt shut out of the -lives of the people who passed her.</p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa grabbed her black patent-leather handbag -close to her and, controlling herself, she walked along -the square. She walked slowly, allowing others to push by -her. She passed in front of many movie houses and many -bars. There was a great noise all around her, harsh voices -and much laughing. She hated the laughing the most. Two -young girls were stopped by two sailors in front of her and -they spoke together in the light of a red neon sign. The -sailors said something and the girls laughed. Quickly Marjorie -Ventusa walked by them.</p> - -<p>A group of boys were standing in a blue light and they -were laughing in their harsh changing voices. She wished -they would stop. Looking downward, she walked through -the crowd, no longer with it.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</span></p> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa was the center now of laughing people -and her eyes were dazzled by changing lights.</p> - -<p>Finally, out of breath, and at the northern end of the -square, she stopped and pressed against a building. She -looked back at the places she had just left and she was tired.</p> - -<p>A stout little man was staring at her. He was trying to -figure out what she was and what he might dare do. She -looked at him with disgust, but he was not bothered by this -and, thinking her a whore, he separated himself from the -crowd and came over to where she stood. He leaned against -the building a few feet from her. Slowly, calmly he took a -package of cigarettes out of his pocket. He turned to her -now, offering her a cigarette.</p> - -<p>“Want a smoke?”</p> - -<p>She shook her head. “No, thanks.”</p> - -<p>He took one himself and lighted it. He inhaled to show -how calm he was and then he said, “You want to walk -maybe?”</p> - -<p>“No,” she said furiously, comparing him with Robert Holton. -“I don’t want to walk with you.” She turned away from -him and went quickly toward the nearest movie. Without -once looking back she bought a ticket. As she gave the -ticket to the man at the door she heard the stout man -whistle as he walked past the theater.</p> - -<p>Setting her face, she walked into the marble and gold -lobby. She walked, conscious of a thousand nonexistent eyes -watching her back.</p> - -<p>Then she entered the darkened hall of the movie. On the -screen two characters, simulating love, were laughing loudly. -Marjorie Ventusa was trapped.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</span></p> - -<p>Caroline and Jim Trebling had been giggling all evening. -Caroline had never known anyone quite so amusing as Trebling. -He had no respect for anything; at least, no respect for -the things most people did. He made fun of her office and -her job and he was pleasant as he did it; not bitter as so -many people were.</p> - -<p>He had suggested that they visit Times Square and go -dancing in one of the large dance halls there. She had tried -to talk him into going some place more expensive but he -had said that he didn’t have the money and that as long as -you danced somewhere that was all that counted.</p> - -<p>From Fifth Avenue they walked along Forty-Seventh -Street until, finally, they came to the square. Trebling -blinked.</p> - -<p>“It’s the damnedest sight! I don’t think it can compare -with L.A. but there really is something wonderful about it.”</p> - -<p>Caroline regarded the square without much emotion. She -had seen it all her life. “I think it’s too crowded,” she said -finally, wishing that he had decided to take her to a better -place, a place with a big name, one she could talk about -later.</p> - -<p>He stood, however, staring at the lights; then he lowered -his eyes from the lights and looked at the people. -She noticed now that he looked at people a great deal. Even -when they were talking he always stared at people as though -there was something wrong with them.</p> - -<p>“Why’re you looking around all the time?” asked Caroline. -“I don’t understand you at all. I don’t think they like being -stared at.”</p> - -<p>“What?” He hadn’t been listening to her. “Why do I ...<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</span> -stare? I just like to look at them and see what they’re so -busy rushing around for.”</p> - -<p>“Don’t you know?”</p> - -<p>“No, do you?”</p> - -<p>“Well....” She hesitated, uncertain of her meaning, uncertain -of what they were talking about.</p> - -<p>He laughed. She admired his way of telling when she -couldn’t understand him; he never really embarrassed her -by trying to talk over her head as some men tried to do: not -that they really could, of course. She was an American -woman and just as smart as any man. Caroline stood there -looking at the square with Trebling who had just laughed -and saved her from embarrassment; Caroline stood erect and -sure of herself and her emancipation, her arm in his.</p> - -<p>Then, without speaking, he led her across the middle of -the square. It was dazzling to cross between the many lights. -Caroline liked the colors. They seemed rather cozy to her. -Times Square was in many ways her symbol of home. It was -no longer interesting because home is never interesting but -she liked it still.</p> - -<p>“Look at all the movie houses,” he said when they had -gotten over on the other side. “There’s so much of everything. -But it’s dirty. It’s all awfully dirty.”</p> - -<p>“Is it?” Caroline had not thought of that. Perhaps the -square was not very clean but how could it be? There were -always so many people coming to be impressed or depressed -by it.</p> - -<p>“Bob used to talk a lot about this part of town, about -Broadway. I think he used to like it a lot,” said Trebling.</p> - -<p>“Is that right?”</p> - -<p>“Oh, sure. He was a playboy during the war.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</span></p> - -<p>Caroline was surprised but not very interested. “He sure’s -changed a lot,” she said. “He’s a nice fellow and I know you -think a lot of him but he’s a little dull ... now, anyway.”</p> - -<p>“I think,” said Trebling, “that people sometimes feel they -have to change to protect themselves. He’s just making a -new life now.”</p> - -<p>“He’s certainly making a dull one.”</p> - -<p>“Not if it’s what he wants.”</p> - -<p>“Imagine working in an office if you could do something -else!”</p> - -<p>“What about yourself?”</p> - -<p>Caroline flushed; she had found herself becoming so much -involved with Trebling’s personality that she had begun to -lose her own in his: she had begun to think that she was as -free as he was or, rather, as he felt he was. She had to retrace -now; she must go back into herself. “I can’t do anything -else,” she said. “That’s all I know—working in an -office.”</p> - -<p>“You could get married.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose I could.” Purposely she left it at that. He didn’t -ask her anything else. They watched the square.</p> - -<p>Caroline was conscious of odors, too conscious of them. -There were a great many unpleasant odors in the square: -beer and cigarette smoke and exhaust; perfume and sweat -and stale air from theaters and subways; food cooking—hot -dogs, hamburgers, popcorn and peanuts. She got a little -dizzy just breathing.</p> - -<p>“Come on, Jim,” she said, “let’s go find the dance hall.”</p> - -<p>They walked together along the crowded streets and as -they walked he told her wonderful stories of freedom that -were not true but still very interesting; and she thought him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</span> -the most fascinating man she knew and not at all like his -dull friend Robert Holton.</p> - -<p>At last they came to a dance hall. As much as she liked -the glitter of the square it was a relief to go inside the red-upholstered, -mirror-walled dance hall where the only odors -were of perfume and cigarette smoke.</p> - -<p>“I haven’t been here for so long,” she said.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Mr Heywood came out of the theater. He had left in the -middle of the last act. It was his personal strategy to do this -because it meant that he missed the crowd and the long -wait for his car to find him.</p> - -<p>The play had been dreary and he had seen it only because -a friend of his knew the girl in it. Besides, Mr Heywood did -not like to go to plays alone. His wife no longer went with -him and he was afraid of taking other women around with -him because people talked. He did not like any men at all.</p> - -<p>The street was almost deserted. The theaters still were -full and their chaste white light signs shone cleanly into the -street. Two blocks away was Times Square. He could just -barely make out the colored sign of a soft drink bottle. He -shuddered as he thought of soft drinks.</p> - -<p>He stood in front of the theater, the light from the marquee -shining dramatically down upon him. He would stand -here now without moving until his waiting chauffeur saw -him and took him away. To his left he heard the sound of a -motor starting. He did not look to his left. He merely stood -now, self-contained and passive, waiting.</p> - -<p>His car stopped in front of him. The chauffeur got out, -opened the door and said something to him and Mr Heywood<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</span> -said something to the chauffeur and an understanding -was reached. Mr Heywood got into the car and the chauffeur -drove down the street into the square and toward home.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood shrank from the lights that suddenly made -the inside of his car as colorful as a rainbow. He tried not -to look out the window at the square but it was impossible -not to look. His eyes were drawn by the force of the lights -and he looked out finally.</p> - -<p>All the cheapness he hated was in the square. The people -of whom he was terrified moved all about him now. The -noises he hated to hear and the lights he hated to see intruded. -He shuddered and wondered if he was going to be -sick.</p> - -<p>Finally they left the square.</p> - -<p>He felt much better now that they were in the quieter -darker places of the city. Mr Heywood was lonely now. He -had always been lonely and that was his personal sadness. -He wished that he were young. It was impossible to be -lonely when one was young. He wished that he were Robert -Holton.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Carla and Holton stopped to rest at the northern end of -the square. They stood upon a small island of concrete surrounded -by avenues. A red light shone across Holton’s face -giving him a sinister expression. Carla laughed.</p> - -<p>“What’s so funny?”</p> - -<p>“Your face ... you look like Mephisto.” He smiled and -stepped out of the red light and stood beside her.</p> - -<p>“What do you think of it now?” asked Holton as they -stood on their island, watching.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</span></p> - -<p>“The things I’ve always thought. It’s very brilliant. It is -a ... production.”</p> - -<p>“Everyone comes to see it.”</p> - -<p>“And I think it means something different to each one. -It’s like a work of art that way.” She paused and added, “It -is a work of art.”</p> - -<p>“An unfriendly one, though.”</p> - -<p>She shrugged. “Art doesn’t have to be friendly. To me all -this bad taste is very alive and miraculous.” She was going -to say more but she was not sure of her English. The language -she had learned had been literary and she was occasionally -conscious of not speaking ordinary words. Holton -had not been listening, though. Caught in the magic she had -performed upon the square, he was melting into it, his eyes -fixed on the effect and not the details.</p> - -<p>“What a place to make a decision,” he said firmly, turning -to look at her.</p> - -<p>“A decision?” She was not sure of him now; not sure of -the magic. “What sort of decision?”</p> - -<p>“I’ll tell you later.”</p> - -<p>“If you like.” She could see that he was not ready to talk -to her yet. The signs were good, though. He was returning.</p> - -<p>Arm in arm they deserted their concrete island. They -crossed the street and stood for a moment on the edge of -the square, looking back at the lights.</p> - -<p>“Where do you want to go?” asked Holton.</p> - -<p>“Back to my hotel,” she said, not looking at him.</p> - -<p>“Shall I go with you?”</p> - -<p>“Do you want to?” She noticed that one of the largest -signs had several dead lights in it.</p> - -<p>“Of course I want to,” he said.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</span></p> - -<p>She was very happy then. The bridge was completed.</p> - -<p>“Shall we walk? It’s not far.” He nodded. They left the -bright square and walked northward, not speaking. The -bridge was not yet strong.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Twelve</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">They stood a moment in the gray heavily carpeted corridor. -The hotel was an expensive one and this was the first -time Robert Holton had been inside it.</p> - -<p>“I’m down here,” said Carla, taking a key out of her bag. -She led him down the corridor.</p> - -<p>She stopped, unlocked a door, and they went inside.</p> - -<p>“In America you always try to make everything look expensive,” -she said. “But I like this room.”</p> - -<p>“Looks like Hollywood,” said Holton. Carla looked about -her and agreed. The walls were dull green and the ceiling -white. The furniture was low and modern and there was -much glass in the room: mirrors and glass-topped tables. -Two large windows looked out on Central Park. At the left -was the doorway to the bedroom.</p> - -<p>“Bankton must have a lot of money,” murmured Holton.</p> - -<p>Carla smiled. “No, I have, but that’s not important. Sit -down over there, Bob.” She motioned to a white couch by -the window. “Would you like something to drink?”</p> - -<p>“If you want one.”</p> - -<p>While she fixed his drink she would be able to think of -the right thing to say. She felt constrained still and her heart<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</span> -was beating rapidly. She prepared the drink deliberately -and, satisfied that it was right, she turned and walked over -to him. “Here you are.” Then she sat down beside him.</p> - -<p>They looked out at the city. Carla sat straight on the edge -of the couch, her eyes fixed on the tall buildings. She was -conscious of Holton’s slow breathing beside her. The silence -was becoming difficult; then he picked up his glass and ice -clattered and the silence broke.</p> - -<p>“Tell me,” she said, sitting back in the couch, “what do -you do during the days? What does a broker do?”</p> - -<p>He opened his coat and relaxed. “Not much, I’m afraid. -I get all sorts of statistical books and I make out reports -from them. It’s pretty dull.”</p> - -<p>“How long are you going to have to do that?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t know ... a year maybe. I think Mr Heywood—he -was the fellow we met at the party—I think he’s going -to move me out in the selling end.”</p> - -<p>“You would like that?”</p> - -<p>“It means more money and it’s going to be my career.”</p> - -<p>“That’s right; it’s going to be your career.”</p> - -<p>Holton crossed his legs, using the movement to give himself -time to think. Carla waited, watching him.</p> - -<p>“Are you going to live in Florence?” he asked finally.</p> - -<p>This was not going at all well, she thought. “I think I may -live there part of the year. I think I shall travel first.”</p> - -<p>“Where? Where do you want to go?”</p> - -<p>“Some place in the Near East, some place like the <em>Arabian -Nights</em>—you’ve read it, haven’t you?”</p> - -<p>“I read it once.”</p> - -<p>“I always wanted things to be like that, to be enchanted.”</p> - -<p>“And you’ve been disappointed?”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</span></p> - -<p>She nodded. “Sometimes I’ve been very disappointed but, -you see, sooner or later it’s all right. I’ve great faith in things -being right.”</p> - -<p>“You’re a curious girl,” he said. He looked at her and she -could see her own face twice reflected in his eyes. “You -don’t,” he said, “really like Bankton, do you?”</p> - -<p>The words were making the proper patterns now. She -turned so that he would see all her face when she spoke. -“Yes, I like him very much but I don’t love him. I can’t love -anyone without having it complete, without having ... the -other thing.”</p> - -<p>“What we had.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, what we had.” She felt that now he was coming -back again.</p> - -<p>“It was so long ago, wasn’t it?” She wasn’t sure now that -he was coming back: “so long ago.”</p> - -<p>“I’ve remembered it,” she said. “It doesn’t seem long ago -to me.”</p> - -<p>“I don’t mean that,” he said. “I meant that ... well ... -so much has happened to us since then. You’ve been married -and I left the army....”</p> - -<p>“We’re not much different, are we?” She looked out the -window now and watched different lights go out in the tall -buildings; for each light that went out, though, someone else -turned on another. “You know,” she said, concentrating on -the lights, “you know you were really the first for me.”</p> - -<p>He was awkward now. “Yes, I guess I was. I didn’t....”</p> - -<p>“There were probably a lot of others for you in Europe. -You know, I haven’t really wanted any man since then.”</p> - -<p>This had to surprise; she wanted this to be her strongest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</span> -weapon. She looked at him now. He had put down his drink -and he was looking at her.</p> - -<p>“Is that true?”</p> - -<p>She nodded. “I don’t know why I shouldn’t tell you. I -couldn’t keep from telling you.” She tried not to look at him.</p> - -<p>“You mean what happened to us in Italy was the only -time...?” He was confused.</p> - -<p>She turned then and looked at him, at the troubled eyes -and the boy’s mouth. “My dear, when something means a -lot to you I think it’s hard to take a substitute. You see, I -made an object for myself. I was upset when you left, naturally, -because you’d become my object. I never heard from -you and so I married Bankton in London. I never lost my -object, though. It never changed.”</p> - -<p>“I’m sorry,” he said.</p> - -<p>Carla smiled. “I understand it now. You had so many -women and I was only one. I think that’s all right, I think -that’s natural. I hoped you might have felt the way I did. -One always wants to be loved and it’s not easy to find a -lover. I never had another man—not because I couldn’t, but -because I didn’t want to. I was waiting all that time, hoping -to see <em>you</em> again.” She had said everything now. He had -listened and there was nothing else she could do.</p> - -<p>He ran his hand through his hair. “I was very close to -you,” he said.</p> - -<p>“I thought you were.” She was waiting.</p> - -<p>“You’re right, there were a lot of others, but I don’t think -I loved any of them.”</p> - -<p>“No one at all?”</p> - -<p>He didn’t answer. He stood up and walked across the -room. Then he came back and stood looking down at her.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</span></p> - -<p>“I don’t know what to say. We were very close once and -then I came back here and made myself forget everything -about Europe, everything that had happened to me there.</p> - -<p>“It hasn’t been easy to do. The only way I could get by, -though, was to do what I’m doing: become a broker. I can’t -be the way I was; I can’t afford it. Of course I can still have -all the girls I want and I can have a good time. I suppose -I can fall in love sometime ... again, but I have to be a -conventional person and I don’t mind.</p> - -<p>“Tonight those people were examples of freedom....”</p> - -<p>She interrupted him. “Not really freedom, self-indulgence -perhaps.”</p> - -<p>“Whatever it is, they call it being free. I don’t want that. -I couldn’t have that kind anyway because I’m not talented; -I don’t do anything well and I know it.”</p> - -<p>“You can be a free person, though.”</p> - -<p>“How?”</p> - -<p>She sighed. “I’ve already told you and you already know. -You can love.”</p> - -<p>“You think that’s the answer?”</p> - -<p>“I don’t know any other. It’s been important to me.”</p> - -<p>He sat down beside her, sat close to her. “I don’t know if -I could love someone,” he said. “I don’t know if I could love -you the way you’d want.”</p> - -<p>“You can,” said Carla. “You can do whatever you want.”</p> - -<p>His hand touched hers. She sat very straight then, her -eyes on the window, on the white lights. He put his arm -around her shoulders and kissed her and she closed her eyes -upon the lights outside.</p> - -<p>For a long time they were like that on the couch. Then -they separated and stood up, self-conscious and shy, newly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</span> -discovered. He motioned with his hand toward the bedroom. -She nodded and they went into the bedroom together -and met finally in the middle of the bridge.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Robert Holton held Carla from him at arm’s length and -looked at her. She was pretty, at this moment quite beautiful, -her face white and her greenish eyes glittering.</p> - -<p>“I’ve been waiting, Bob,” she said. “I’ve waited such a -long time.” He pulled her to him then, her body against his. -A part of him was given up entirely to making love but another -part was still detached, still watching.</p> - -<p>He helped her to undo her dress. Modestly now, with the -reserve of strangers, they stood back to back as they undressed.</p> - -<p>She was beautiful and he had forgotten that. She was not -really pale: her skin was gold. She was slim and cleanly -made and her breasts were small. They faced each other and -looked at each other, the detached, the lonely part of himself -memorizing every detail of her.</p> - -<p>Carla walked slowly toward him and touched his shoulder. -Tears were in her eyes.</p> - -<p>“What’s the matter?” he asked.</p> - -<p>She shook her head and smiled: nothing was the matter -now.</p> - -<p>He took her slowly then, pressing her against his body -gently, every nerve vibrating in both of them; hearts beating -quickly.</p> - -<p>They stood like this in the middle of the room; then she -broke away and walked over to the bed and pulled the cover -down.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</span></p> - -<p>“Turn out the light, Bob,” she whispered. It was a ceremony -now: neither of them spoke out loud in the presence -of the miracle taking place. He turned out the light. The -room was dark except for the lighted dots of windows in the -buildings opposite and, over the buildings, like unorganized -window lights, cold stars shone clearly.</p> - -<p>He turned and walked to the bed. Carla lay on her back, -her arms behind her head. He got in beside her and they lay -there together, not speaking, hardly breathing, and he felt -the blood pounding in his head while, next to him, Carla -was shivering, was waiting. He turned over on his side, -barely touching her.</p> - -<p>They did not speak now. Words were discarded and no -surface was needed. Instinct guided them finally, made them -a separate world together; there was only a dream existence -outside of themselves.</p> - -<p>And Robert Holton became the lover and ceased to be -himself; his detached awareness was, for the time, submerged -and forgotten.</p> - -<p>He ran his hands over her, feeling the smooth skin of her -shoulders, her thighs.... They kissed and began the act of -completion.</p> - -<p>To Holton it became a battle and a surrender, a taking -and a giving; it became a fusion. He was no longer himself, -he was enlarged; a giant in a world of giant sensations. He -was no longer alone or incomplete.</p> - -<p>Then the rhythm was found and the wild twistings and -strugglings stopped. He was conquering now and, in the -conquering, giving.</p> - -<p>He entered her and to the rhythm of their fast-beating<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</span> -hearts, with a rush of sound like wind in his ears, he discovered -the single world. Lights whirled inside his head, behind -his eyes: they came in series—circles of sharp lights.</p> - -<p>He was choking then, barely breathing, able only to -cough and gasp. Sweat covered him; his hands clutched at -her shoulders as though they were the only remaining solidity -in a world rapidly disintegrating into sensations and fast-moving -lights and a quick wind.</p> - -<p>There was no time now. There was no memory. There was -no reason. The struggle stopped and the moment came like -fire.</p> - -<p>Carla’s face was buried in his shoulder; she stiffened and -then became relaxed, the battle finished and won.</p> - -<p>Like fire it came and the wonder was achieved; a world -was glimpsed and lost in a moment. Then, tide-like, the -emotion stopped and withdrew. The ecstasy was gone and -only two people were left in its wake, left on a high shore, -exhausted, shipwrecked.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton lay for a moment upon Carla’s still body, -supporting himself with his elbows so that he would not -crush her; he breathed deeply, taking in the air with great -sobs. Beneath him Carla was quiet, at peace, her shuddering -stopped.</p> - -<p>He kissed her very gently then and they separated, without -words; they lay quietly side by side, touching each other, -yet apart, the trace of their fire still inside of them, and exhaustion -brought with it no sadness, no loneliness.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton put his arm under her head; then he looked -out the window, looked at the real stars, not nearly as bright -as the ones in his head, the ones they had made together.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</span></p> - -<p>Silence and darkness protected them.</p> - -<p>Part of his mind became detached again and he saw himself -in relation to the world. He saw himself in a darkened -room of a large hotel, lying exhausted beside the wife of a -painter. He frowned in the dark and he fought the vision -of the outer world.</p> - -<p>Carla moved her hand over his chest, twisting the hairs; -he felt a spasm of tenderness shake him and he took her and -held her close to him. This was the moment when he felt he -was not alone, felt that he was not a single particle lost in a -void. The half of him lost in the womb had been regained -and he was finally complete: he was God and earth and -other stars, so great was this fusion.</p> - -<p>They slept quietly in each others arms. They slept unaware -of time for they <em>were</em> time.</p> - -<p>Carla woke first. She gave a start and Robert Holton -opened his eyes, wondered where he was; then he saw Carla -beside him, saw a vague figure by the light of stars.</p> - -<p>“<em>Caro mio</em>,” she murmured, saying the first words either -had spoken.</p> - -<p>“Darling,” he whispered.</p> - -<p>“It’s so perfect,” she said and he put her head on his -shoulder again. Then they were still, looking at the uncertain -outline of their bodies on the whiteness of the bed.</p> - -<p>He felt her smooth legs. They were cool, like dreams -half-remembered.</p> - -<p>“I love you,” she whispered into his ear, “so much more -than you know.”</p> - -<p>He kissed her for answer and his detached self almost -fused with hers, almost made a union, almost died and made -him free.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</span></p> - -<p>Carla turned on the light. It was two o’clock and they had -been asleep for almost an hour.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton lay quietly on the bed, his eyes closed, his -breathing regular, one arm over his forehead as though to -defend himself. She leaned over and kissed him lightly, then -she got out of bed and went into the bathroom.</p> - -<p>Her face shocked and pleased her. “How depraved I look,” -she murmured to herself. Her face was glowing and her -eyes shone and glittered. There were red marks on her white -skin. His beard had scratched her and made her usually -white face pink. With a sudden gesture she swept her hair -back out of her face, held her dark curling hair captive.</p> - -<p>Holton appeared behind her then and he put his arms -around her waist and kissed the back of her neck. She shuddered -and closed her eyes. She could not look at light with -so much inward light behind her eyes. They stood like that. -Then he let her go. They looked at each other: two people -now, so recently a single world.</p> - -<p>“Happy?” she asked.</p> - -<p>He nodded. “I’ve never had it like this before,” he said. -“It never meant as much to me as this.”</p> - -<p>They walked back into the bedroom and sat down side by -side on the bed. Modestly Holton drew the sheet over their -laps. They sat quietly without speaking, their bare arms -around each other. When Carla looked at the window she -could no longer see stars and lighted windows; she could -see only their reflection on black glass.</p> - -<p>“What are you thinking?” he asked and she saw that he’d -been watching her.</p> - -<p>“Nothing, Bob. I don’t think all the time, you know. I was -only feeling.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</span></p> - -<p>“Feeling what?”</p> - -<p>She smiled. “Feeling all the world.”</p> - -<p>“I think I felt that, too ... to live in a big way....”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I know.” She sighed. “You have to break all your -little patterns. You have to expand now.”</p> - -<p>But there was resistance to this. “I don’t see why you can’t -have everything and still have that, too.”</p> - -<p>“No, everything must be the richest and the fullest. Have -you that?”</p> - -<p>He stretched, the muscles moving under white skin. -“Maybe it is; I don’t know.” He took her then and they fell -back together onto the bed. For several minutes they were -together and then he rolled over on his side. She opened -her eyes.</p> - -<p>“What’s the matter, Bob?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“I don’t know,” he said. He was looking at her, his dark -hair in his eyes. He pushed it back.</p> - -<p>“You’re not sad?”</p> - -<p>“No.” He ran his hands over her hips. “I was only wondering -what’s to happen next. You’ll go back to Europe.”</p> - -<p>She had been waiting for this. She had been waiting for -him to ask this. Now she could say what she felt but the -words did not come easily. “I don’t have to go back,” she -said. “I can stay here as long as I like.”</p> - -<p>“Then your husband’ll come over here.”</p> - -<p>“I can leave him.”</p> - -<p>He shook his head. “I couldn’t marry you.”</p> - -<p>She was lost. She was falling now. It seemed as if the -room had become cold and foreign and she had come to a -hostile country. There was no longer an answer to make:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</span> -the answer had been made. She tried not to let her face -show what she felt.</p> - -<p>“Why couldn’t you marry me?”</p> - -<p>“I haven’t any money.”</p> - -<p>“I have.”</p> - -<p>“I wouldn’t want that. You wouldn’t want to be married -to a broker and live in New York.”</p> - -<p>“Why do you have to be a broker?”</p> - -<p>He sighed then and she saw for the first time that he was -the one trapped, the one who would not escape. “What else -can I do?” he asked.</p> - -<p>“You can break with all this.” She was fighting.</p> - -<p>“But what could I do? I have to do something. I have to -be something.”</p> - -<p>“Why do you have to be something? Why do you have to -do things that you don’t want, that make you unhappy?”</p> - -<p>“Everyone has to. Besides, I’m not sure that I am unhappy.” -She was defeated at that moment. The dream she -had been fashioning disappeared and there were no traces -of it left, only a lingering sadness and an open wound.</p> - -<p>He went on talking and she answered him but there was -nothing left for either of them to discuss.</p> - -<p>Then after a while they both stopped talking. They sat -side by side looking out the window, or rather looking at -themselves reflected in the black mirror. Holton turned out -the light and Carla was able to see the stars again.</p> - -<p>“That was funny, wasn’t it?” chuckled Holton.</p> - -<p>“What? What was funny?”</p> - -<p>“Lewis tonight and all those people talking about religion -and art.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</span></p> - -<p>“I don’t think it was funny; I think it was sad.”</p> - -<p>“Why sad?”</p> - -<p>“They were lost, I think. Just like us, Bob.”</p> - -<p>She could feel him looking at her. “Are you?” he asked -softly.</p> - -<p>She would not let herself cry. She would not give way. -She would have to be strong now. Her voice carefully controlled, -she said, “No more than you. We could be complete, -I think.”</p> - -<p>“I think we could,” he said and she knew that he felt -nothing the way she did. Carla had the feeling of coming -into a stranger’s house expecting friends, expecting familiar -things. She was with an unknown, a man who did not feel -what she did.</p> - -<p>“I had hoped,” said Carla, “that we could.” She was going -to be accurate in what she said. She used each word like the -cut of a knife to sever the relationship, to kill her own love. -“I don’t think we can now. You want to live a certain life. -You want what you know and though you don’t like it you -think it’s the safe thing. I don’t understand you, I’m afraid. -I’ve tried to see all this through your eyes. I didn’t want it -to be just another one, another woman. I wanted it to be -important to you: it was so important to me. I think I was -wrong. I think I was selfish and I’m sorry.” She wondered -when her voice would break.</p> - -<p>Then Holton tried to reconstruct at last. “No, you don’t -understand. I feel very close to you. I’ve liked this more -than any other time, more than with anyone else. But you -see I can’t leave what I’m doing; I couldn’t live on you for -the rest of my life.”</p> - -<p>She sighed. “That’s such a superficial thing; that’s all the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</span> -surface. When you feel something for another person those -things don’t matter.”</p> - -<p>“Someday they might. Of course I’m lonely and not very -happy. You have to accept that. In a few years I’ll get married -and maybe that’ll make it better. I could,” he was -speaking slowly now, “marry you. I could do that but you -wouldn’t be happy.”</p> - -<p>“How do you know I wouldn’t be happy here?”</p> - -<p>“You’re different, that’s all. I can’t tell you what the difference -is. I don’t know.”</p> - -<p>And she couldn’t tell him what the difference was. There -was no way to tell.</p> - -<p>He put his arms around her in the dark and they relaxed -on the bed and she tried to give herself to the moment but -she could not: too much had been given already.</p> - -<p>“It’s a temptation,” said Holton suddenly.</p> - -<p>“What is?” They separated.</p> - -<p>“To go to Europe with you, to live with you.”</p> - -<p>“It could be done.”</p> - -<p>“Maybe.... No, it wouldn’t work.”</p> - -<p>“Why?”</p> - -<p>“It just wouldn’t be practical.”</p> - -<p>No, she thought, it wouldn’t be practical.</p> - -<p>Then the passion came back to them and she almost forgot -his withdrawal. She fell back onto the pillows, his body -over hers.</p> - -<p>He whispered in her ear, “You know I really have to leave -after this.”</p> - -<p>“Of course you must,” said Carla, dying gently.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</span></p> - - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</span></p> - -</div> - -<p class="half-title">3<br /> -THE YELLOW WOOD</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</span></p> -</div> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</span></p> -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Thirteen</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">The early morning was cold and Robert Holton shivered -as he left the warm lobby of the hotel. He stood outside on -the sidewalk and wondered where he was. He turned to the -left and walked a few steps and then he remembered the -street he was on, remembered where east and west were. He -turned to the right and walked rapidly toward Fifth Avenue.</p> - -<p>The streets were almost deserted. Occasionally a taxicab -would clatter by. Occasionally a tired couple looking for a -room would pass him on the sidewalk. As he walked, his own -footsteps made sharp regular noises on the pavement.</p> - -<p>He came at last to a subway entrance. He breathed -deeply, took a last breath of clean air and went down inside -the ground.</p> - -<p>Pale lights burned in old sockets and a sleepy Negro sat -within the money-changer’s booth. A sailor stood vomiting -in a corner; he was very quiet about it and the Negro paid -no attention to him.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton put his nickel in the turnstile.</p> - -<p>On the platform several people were waiting for the train. -They were all tired. Another sailor had a girl and he was -standing very close to her. They were both drunk and made<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</span> -strange little movements with their heads and hands, slow-motion -movements, as though they were flying.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton stood against an iron pillar. He felt exhausted -but physically serene. He rested his head on the -hard rough surface. It was pleasant to stand like this, underground.</p> - -<p>The uptown train stopped with a jolt, the doors opened -and Robert Holton stepped into the lighted train. The doors -closed and the train started again.</p> - -<p>Everyone in the car was weary or drunk or both. Papers -and cigarette butts covered the floor. A pair of dirty gloves -lay at his feet, forgotten by the owner, unwanted.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton tried to sleep but the glare of light through -his eyelids was distracting. His physical exhaustion was -lessening, too, and he began to feel a return of energy.</p> - -<p>He would not think of Carla, though; he would not think -of her for a little while. He would wait until he was in his -room.</p> - -<p>After a long time, after ten minutes, the train stopped at -his station and he climbed out of the ground and stood on -the concrete surface of the earth; a suggestion of morning -was in the sky and the wind blew fresh and cold from the -river. He walked to his hotel.</p> - -<p>“Evening,” said the clerk behind the desk.</p> - -<p>“Good evening,” said Holton.</p> - -<p>“Is it getting colder out?”</p> - -<p>Holton nodded. “Probably be a real cold day tomorrow.” -He walked over to the counter. “Have I got any mail?”</p> - -<p>“Let’s see ... that’s...?”</p> - -<p>“Holton.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</span></p> - -<p>The clerk looked, then shook his head. “No mail, Mr Holton.” -He paused. “You was in the army?”</p> - -<p>“Yes, I was in the army.”</p> - -<p>“So was I.” The clerk was lonely and wanted to talk and -Holton was still tired and nervous and wanted to think. “It -sure is nice being out,” said the clerk.</p> - -<p>“Yes, it’s good to be out.”</p> - -<p>“I was with the 82nd; you remember the 82nd, don’t -you?”</p> - -<p>“Of course I do.”</p> - -<p>“We had a good group of guys.”</p> - -<p>“I know you did.”</p> - -<p>“Nothing like being a civilian, is there?”</p> - -<p>“No,” said Robert Holton, “there’s nothing like being out. -Good night.”</p> - -<p>“Good night.” The clerk who had been with the army was -sad to see him go.</p> - -<p>He turned the light on in his room. It was all just the -same, the troubling painting and the crowded dresser. Sometimes -he would come into his room and have a feeling that -everything would be changed when he turned on the light, -that something exciting would have happened to change his -room. It was always the same, though; always the way he -left it.</p> - -<p>Holton went into the bathroom. He should take a bath; -he wanted to take a bath but he was too tired. In the morning; -there would be time for that in the morning.</p> - -<p>He undressed and put on the bottom of his pajamas; he -never used the tops. Then he looked at himself in the mirror -for a long time. He did not see himself in the mirror; he saw -no image; rather he was trying to find an image, an explanation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</span> -in the glass. But he found nothing and as he realized his -failure the reflection of his face appeared in the mirror and -he looked at it without interest because it was familiar and -because he could see nothing behind it.</p> - -<p>He turned and went into his room. He sat down on the -bed and wondered whether he could sleep or not because -his mind was uneasy. Holton turned out the lights and -stretched out on his bed. He would make himself sleep; he -would not think of Carla or of the day ended.</p> - -<p>But his mind was too active now for him to sleep. He tried -to hypnotize himself, tried not to hear the odd words and -conversations in his ears.</p> - -<p>He gave up finally. The barriers went down.</p> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis’s voice sounded in his head and the -clashing colors of the fairy night club glittered in his head. -Lewis’s voice, flat and nasal, became articulate.</p> - -<p>“I do feel that religion is merely a substitute for the loss -of a personal vision.” His sharp little laugh sounded and -the words repeated themselves over and over again in Robert -Holton’s ear: loss of a personal vision ... a vision ... -and elision.... The words became a refrain. The repetitions -went on until Holton felt himself losing control. He -was angry. He made the repetitions stop.</p> - -<p>George <em>Robert</em> Lewis began to talk again.</p> - -<p>“I feel that we can find some way through the morass of -life, some way to be serene and not sterile, not static. I think -probably art is the way for the sensitive. If one has talent -one can practise a medium; without talent one can appreciate.</p> - -<p>“Love? What <em>does</em> that word mean, darling? I’ve tried so -awfully hard to be sincere about it and I’ve had some delicious<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</span> -attempts at it. Did you ever know Philip?... No, of -course you wouldn’t have known. But as I was saying ... -what was I saying?”</p> - -<p>Holton tried consciously to recall what Lewis had said. -But when he tried to hear speeches again he could not. -Lewis’s voice began again, a disembodied voice speaking -among colors in a place where all emotions were in a minor -key.</p> - -<p>“I think one must really barricade oneself against the -world. One must retreat. Now don’t tell me it’s cowardly to -retreat. Nothing in this world should be put on such a superficial -basis as that. We are talking on different planes. That’s -why communication is so difficult. Every argument is true -and false and can be argued rightly from either side. To -have any agreement those discussing should decide right -away on what plane they want to talk. On a superficial and -obvious one the terms bravery and cowardice and right and -wrong have a certain meaning. On a deeper plane they have -different, sometimes opposite, meanings—sometimes no -meaning at all.</p> - -<p>“Well, to get back to my point, on the <em>deepest</em> level of understanding -only instinct and what is natural counts. If one -can’t arrive at love (and so many of us, darling, haven’t the -capacity for it) then one must make a substitute, something -to take up the sixty or seventy years one is alive. That’s -where art is important. I understand business men feel the -same way about business, though I’m not at all sure about -that.</p> - -<p>“And then as for all this driveling about going to Rome -let me say I do feel that religion is merely a substitute for -the loss of a personal vision....”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[Pg 202]</span></p> - -<p>The sound of Lewis’s voice became louder and continued -until finally the voice became so loud that it ceased to be a -voice and became silence.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton wanted to sleep but there were so many -things that had to be arranged first.</p> - -<p>There was also the dream of the night before to be recalled. -He would think of that later.</p> - -<p>He remembered Jim Trebling. He thought of the days on -the boat when they had talked about the future.</p> - -<p>Against a background of sea he could recall the image of -Trebling. Details were absent and he could not make out -the face but he could hear the voice and he could see the -ocean.</p> - -<p>“I hate the idea of being tied down any more than I have -to be. You know, Bob, we’ve lived the most unnatural life -there is during this war. I get the feeling sometimes that -we’ve lost a lot of time. I keep wanting to start over again.</p> - -<p>“I might want to start my own business. I think that’s not -so bad: it’s worse working for somebody else. It’s funny but -I’d just as soon never work. I’d just as soon drift the rest -of my life.”</p> - -<p>And Robert Holton had agreed. He agreed in those days.</p> - -<p>“Of course you have to have money to loaf. Maybe if we -hadn’t been raised in such a sound middle-class way we -could be bums but we’re too used to being comfortable. No, -we’re too used to being comfortable. We’ve got to get the -money first.”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton had agreed to that, too. He had agreed to -everything. He wanted to be as free as possible. At least he -thought he had then. Because his friend wanted it he felt he -did too. He assumed a similar identity.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</span></p> - -<p>Trebling had more to say and his deep laughing voice -continued: “No, we’re going to have to work a little. Not -much, just a little to get enough ahead. We’re going to be -careful though not to get bogged down, not to get too interested -in working. It’s dangerous to get to like it.”</p> - -<p>Holton agreed.</p> - -<p>“Well, Bob, get your mind on the ball. How’re we going -to spend that army money? I think pottery out in California -sounds easy.”</p> - -<p>Yes, pottery was easy. Then they separated and they -changed. Or perhaps only he, Holton, had changed. He’d -done the easiest thing, he thought. But it was true that he -was entangled now for the rest of his life with Heywood -and Golden; with them or another like them.</p> - -<p>Trebling was entangled, too. Holton was pleased by that -as he lay in the dark. Trebling hadn’t done better. He belonged -to the army now and his chances of beginning a business -were slight. He might try it though; he might be able -to live the way he wanted to. Holton shuddered. It would -be awful to miss freedom so narrowly.</p> - -<p>There was a problem, still unsolved: what did he want?</p> - -<p>“You know,” said Trebling’s voice, rising up out of the -sea, “you know you make things tough for yourself. You -don’t make up your mind.”</p> - -<p>That wasn’t true, he was always plotting; most of the -time, anyway.</p> - -<p>“You try to be like everybody else.”</p> - -<p>He was safest when he was like the rest of them. No, that -wasn’t a bad thing to do; besides, he wasn’t that way really. -He was different from the others in the office. They sensed -that. He would probably go a long way and most of them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</span> -wouldn’t. Perhaps he was like Heywood. That wasn’t bad. -Heywood was a success. <em>He</em> could be free if he liked. He had -money and he could do whatever he liked.</p> - -<p>Trebling’s voice was fainter now and the sound of the sea -behind it was becoming loud. “Sure we might flop but if -we don’t we’re just fine. I’m not worried; I’m not worried -about anything except being stuck in an office and working -for somebody. That’s a lot to worry about, I suppose, but -I’m not bothered. It’s going to work out. You’re a long time -dead, I figure ...”</p> - -<p>The sea came into Holton’s room then and he was whirled -on the top of a wave; for a moment there was nothing but -sensation. He opened his eyes in the dark and the sea was -gone.</p> - -<p>Trebling’s voice was lost.</p> - -<p>Holton turned over on his side, troubled, tired, looking for -sleep. He thought of Carla. He had to think of her; there -was a decision to be made.</p> - -<p>She had been quiet when he left her in the apartment. -She had not looked him in the eyes and he had been eager -to leave, to escape.</p> - -<p>Now she began to speak again. She had talked to him as -he was dressing.</p> - -<p>“I don’t think it would work now. I’d hoped it would; for -a long time I’ve thought about you, about our living together. -But you don’t want to.”</p> - -<p>He had tried to deny this but he could not deny what he -felt.</p> - -<p>Her voice came back to him now, a sad thin echo; there -was no vibrancy in the remembered voice. She was whispering -in an empty room.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</span></p> - -<p>“You’re going to accept a pattern and I can’t stop you. I -can’t bring out the capacity for love in you. You have it, I -know, but I’m not enough to make you aware....”</p> - -<p>Again the denial and again the sad voice whispering.</p> - -<p>“No, I was wrong to try to change your life. It’s very -selfish to do things for people they don’t want done. I -wanted you so much. You’re the one I’m not supposed to -have, though, and that’s sad for me.”</p> - -<p>He had talked to her then and explained that he could not -take the risk of living with her, that he must be within the -pattern. But he could not make any of these things sound -convincing. Somehow everything got confused as he tried -to explain himself to her. He tried to tell her that he did -love her but that he couldn’t live with her. She had listened -and when he had finished she had talked again. Now her -voice entered his room; it was a shadow’s voice murmuring -in his ear.</p> - -<p>“I don’t think I’d better see you again, Bob. It’s very hard -for me but I’m going to control myself. I am going to forget -all the things I had dreamed about since Florence. I shall -find a new object and that’s a hard thing to do. It’s hard to -change but I will.”</p> - -<p>That was true, of course. There was also more.</p> - -<p>She walked with him to the door; she let him go free to -his chosen prison.</p> - -<p>The little voice no longer whispered in his ear and there -was nothing but silence and the beating of his heart, the -slow beating of his heart.</p> - -<p>The shade of the window fluttered in the outside wind. -Bits of light gleamed around the shade as it fluttered. Lights<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</span> -from signs and behind those lights, gray and massive, was -the light of early morning. The room grew colder.</p> - -<p>He got under the blanket and he closed his eyes tight and -thought of nothing: thought of shapes and shadows and -lights and colors and all the things that comprise nothing: -he could not sleep.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton made a case for himself as he lay in the -occasionally broken dark.</p> - -<p>He had no gift. He was an average person. Perhaps not -quite average, he had had many advantages. He was among -the many, though. He could not make a world separate. He -wished now that he had told Carla that: he could not make -a world separate. He belonged to the world of all people -and it was wrong to retreat from that world. He felt noble -as he thought of this: it was an excellent argument and he -wished that he had used it.</p> - -<p>To have gone to live with Carla would have been a retreat -from all that was right. Right? What had Lewis said about -the planes of understanding? It didn’t matter because Lewis -was just another little fairy. He was perverted in everything. -No, it was right not to live with Carla. He had to do what -was expected of him.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton built himself an argument, and as he built -his barricades stronger he was aware of discontent, well-hidden -beyond the barricade but still alive. Duty was important -and difficult. Nothing that was right was easy. Was -that true? He was becoming confused.</p> - -<p>He had worn too many faces. He thought of the myriad -faces he had been made to wear. He had been different with -every person he’d ever known. This lack of consistency<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</span> -bothered him. In the army he had been without care, without -ambition; he had been like Trebling.</p> - -<p>With the people in the office he had been cold or warm, -as they were. He had given them what they expected. He -had been an actor with too many rôles to play. Tonight he -had played all of them for Carla and then he had become -lost and he had tried to be himself and he found that he -was not enough.</p> - -<p>Every person saw him differently, not entirely because -every person was different, but because he had also intended -it to be that way. Now he did not know himself. He had no -way of knowing the person behind the myriad faces.</p> - -<p>For a moment he felt himself sinking. It was like a dream -of falling. He seemed to be descending into a pit without -bottom. There was no longer a Robert Holton: only a series -of masks, cracked now and no longer usable, no longer convincing. -He could never use one again.</p> - -<p>He stopped falling; by an effort of will he stopped himself. -Carla was gone and he was sorry. There was no one -else and loneliness now crept out of the silence. He would -have to build the barricades stronger and higher. He would -shut loneliness out.</p> - -<p>The masks were no longer good. Carla had helped him -break them. This was to be a beginning then. He would -assume an identity. He would become a decided person and -he would cease to be changed by others.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton would become a successful broker working -in an office.</p> - -<p>The decision was made and he felt secure at last. The -words and thoughts that had been in his mind, troubling -him, stopped abruptly. He had a magic of his own and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</span> -had used it and it worked. Now he was free. There would -be no more talk of going away to Florence and living with -a pretty woman who loved him and wanted him to be different. -He was resolved at last. It was as simple as that. -With great effort he assumed an identity and freed himself -from doubt.</p> - -<p>He stopped twisting. The fever was leaving and he was -tired.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton turned over on his stomach and took a -deep breath. Soon he would be asleep. All his questions -were solved—except one. There was still something to be -taken care of, something not very important, but bothersome. -He frowned with his eyes shut. Then he opened them -and he looked across the room at the dark outline of the -picture frame.</p> - -<p>The dream.</p> - -<p>He hadn’t been able to remember the dream of the night -before: the troubling, unpleasant dream. It had great significance, -he knew.</p> - -<p>His only half-conscious mind tried to remember. He kept -it purposefully unawake because in this state, between sensation -and memory, most dreams could be recalled.</p> - -<p>For a long time he wondered. But he could not remember, -and he went to sleep finally, exhausted, and in his mind -was hidden the dream of the night before, the secret dream, -the dream of death, of living. He had almost remembered.</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak"><em>Chapter Fourteen</em></h2> -</div> - - -<p class="p2">The next day was cold, colder than the early morning -had been.</p> - -<p>Robert Holton took a bath, dressed, and went down in the -elevator. He said good morning to the man at the desk who -gave him a letter from his father. Then he went outside; -shivering, he walked to the subway station. Without buying -a paper he went down into the ground and at Wall Street -he came to the surface again.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Marjorie Ventusa was glad to see him. The movie she had -seen the night before had been a successful tragedy and she -had wept and had been able to think about herself less -tragically afterward.</p> - -<p>She watched him as he came into the restaurant. He went -to his usual table and sat down. After he was seated she -picked up a tray and walked over to him.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Mr Holton,” she said, and smiled.</p> - -<p>“Hello, Marjorie. How’s everything going?”</p> - -<p>“Fine, just fine. Weather’s getting cold, though.” She noticed -that he had dark circles under his eyes. She tried not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</span> -to think of what he might have been doing with the dark-haired -girl.</p> - -<p>“Got anything good for breakfast? I feel pretty worn out -today.”</p> - -<p>“I guess you were out late last night.”</p> - -<p>He nodded. She couldn’t stop asking now; she couldn’t -stop thinking about Robert Holton and the dark-haired girl.</p> - -<p>“Probably one of those big parties, I guess.”</p> - -<p>He nodded and said, “Sure, one of those big parties.”</p> - -<p>She was not sorry that he lied. “We got some good sausage -today,” she said.</p> - -<p>“I’ll take whatever you got ... and black coffee.”</p> - -<p>“Sure, I’ll go get it.” She walked back to the kitchen. She -frowned when she saw Mrs Merrin looking at her. She had -to look serious even though she was happy. He had at least -not wanted to tell her that he was out with another girl. -She had made so many images of Holton and herself that -she accepted an imagined closeness as real. He had not -really been unfaithful this time.</p> - -<p>She called out his order to the cook and then she fixed her -snood in the steamy mirror. She had bought a dark snood -and she noticed now that it made her hair look darker, look -rather mysterious. It felt good to look mysterious.</p> - -<p>His breakfast was ready and she took it out to him.</p> - -<p>She made herself busy at the next table and she talked to -him as she worked.</p> - -<p>“You like going out to them big parties?”</p> - -<p>“Not so much.”</p> - -<p>“Why do you go?”</p> - -<p>“Business, I guess. It’s good to see all the big shots.”</p> - -<p>“You’re right there; you’re sure right there.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</span></p> - -<p>“What’s that you got on your head?”</p> - -<p>She giggled self-consciously and wished that she didn’t -get so silly when she was pleased. “Just a snood. I’ve had it -such a long time.” This was not true.</p> - -<p>“Looks nice,” said Holton seriously, biting into a piece of -bread.</p> - -<p>“Thank you; I like it.” No, that was wrong, it sounded defiant -and she didn’t mean that. She added in a much softer -voice, “I’m glad you like it.”</p> - -<p>He ate then and she put dirty dishes on her tray. Then he -said, “When’re you going to Italy with me?”</p> - -<p>She laughed. “I got some previous engagements before. -Any other time, though.”</p> - -<p>“I’m told it’s nice there,” said Holton and she noticed that -he looked sad and she was happy to think that he was a -little concerned about her, that he was almost serious when -he talked about Italy.</p> - -<p>“Maybe we’ll go some other time,” she said.</p> - -<p>“Sure,” said Holton, “maybe we’ll go some other time.” -He drank his coffee. He looked at his watch. “Lord, I’m -late,” he said. He paid her quickly. “See you at lunch.”</p> - -<p>“See you at lunch, Mr Holton.” She watched him go out -the door and into the crowded street.</p> - -<p>She cleared his table. Then she went gaily back to the -kitchen, her hair bobbing mysteriously in its snood. She was -glad she hadn’t told him she’d seen him in Times Square.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>“Late, aren’t you?” asked Caroline when Holton came into -the office. She knew he was late but she was in a mood of -violent humor; she was always this way when she was happy -and she was happy today because of Trebling.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</span></p> - -<p>“Not very,” said Holton and he went to his desk. Mr -Murphy hadn’t come in yet and he was safe. Caroline sat for -a moment enjoying the pale white sunlight that shone across -her desk. Then she got up and came over to Holton’s desk.</p> - -<p>She was awkward now. She wanted to find out things but -she didn’t want to be subtle. She tried anyway. “I was out -with Jim last night,” she began.</p> - -<p>“How do you like him?” Holton wasn’t paying much attention -to her and this was irritating. He was busy putting -books on his desk. She looked around to see if anyone was -watching. Kuppelton was out of the room and no one else -appeared interested. She sat down on his desk.</p> - -<p>“I like him quite a bit,” she said.</p> - -<p>He looked at her. “Good,” he said. “Jim’s a fine fellow. -You’ll have fun playing around with him.”</p> - -<p>“I suppose I will.”</p> - -<p>“Just don’t take him too seriously, though. He’s sort of an -expert with girls.” How shallow Holton was, thought Caroline. -“Just play with him and you’ll be all right. A lot of -girls’ve liked him.”</p> - -<p>“I can understand that. He’s really serious about starting -something himself. At least he doesn’t want to work for -somebody like everybody else wants.” She wanted this to be -sharp; she didn’t care if it hurt or not.</p> - -<p>“That’s a good thing to want,” said Holton. How dull he -is, thought Caroline, comparing him unfavorably with Jim -Trebling.</p> - -<p>There was nothing she wanted to know from Holton. -“How was your society party?” she asked.</p> - -<p>“It was O.K.,” said Holton. “It was interesting.”</p> - -<p>I’ll bet, thought Caroline. She was impatient of others now<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</span> -that she knew she was appreciated, knew that she was to -see Trebling that night. “Well, don’t work too hard,” said -Caroline, getting up from the desk. “By the way, I’m going -out with Jim tonight.”</p> - -<p>“Better be careful,” said Holton seriously.</p> - -<p>She laughed. “I’m always careful; didn’t you know that?”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Heywood was feeling well. He had managed to get home -early the night before. That was one advantage in going to -the theater alone: you didn’t have to go some place afterward -and get drunk.</p> - -<p>He sat contentedly in the mahogany twilight of his large -office, looking at a photograph of himself. There was no particular -work to be done. Golden hadn’t bothered him yet -and it would be almost an hour before he had his first conference.</p> - -<p>A buzz came out of the box on his desk. He pressed a -button.</p> - -<p>“Mr Murphy to see you,” said his secretary, concealed in -the box.</p> - -<p>“Send him in.” There was something he had to tell -Murphy. Something to do with the party. The young man, -Robert Holton: he was to do something for him.</p> - -<p>“Good morning, Murphy.” Mr Heywood did not bother -to rise.</p> - -<p>“Morning, Mr Heywood,” said Murphy and Heywood -wished his voice wasn’t so loud. It jarred the twilight mood -of the office.</p> - -<p>“I’ve got some statistics here, the ones on Steel stocks; the -ones showing fluctuation and ...”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</span></p> - -<p>“Ah, yes, Murphy, that’s very good of you to have them -for me so promptly. I have another matter to discuss....” -Heywood paused to make sure that Murphy was listening to -him carefully. “This boy, Holton,” he went on, “I think he -might do better dealing with the public, don’t you?”</p> - -<p>“Yes,” said Murphy judiciously, “yes, I think that might -be a good place for him. You saw him last night?”</p> - -<p>“What? Oh, yes, I saw him last night. I had a pleasant -talk with him. He’s a clever young man, I think.”</p> - -<p>“Yes, he’s got a good head on his shoulders,” agreed -Murphy.</p> - -<p>“You will tell him, won’t you, about his promotion and, -ah, transfer?”</p> - -<p>“Certainly. He’ll be glad to hear this. I’ll be glad to tell -him. And, by the way, there’s another matter in my section....”</p> - -<p>“And what is that?” asked Heywood gently, trying not to -yawn.</p> - -<p>“Well, we’ve a man named Kuppelton who’s always done -a good job and I think he should get the usual promotion in -that department. The one we had in mind for Holton.”</p> - -<p>Heywood sighed. “Certainly, Murphy; I rely, as always, -on your recommendation in these cases.”</p> - -<p>“Thank you....” They talked then of nothing that interested -Mr Heywood. Finally Murphy left.</p> - -<p>Mr Heywood yawned and stretched. He was rested and -almost happy. He would make good decisions today. He sat -back in his chair and looked at the photograph of himself. -He would divorce his wife and go to South America for a -year. Or perhaps he wouldn’t divorce his wife but take her -to South America instead. It was strange but he looked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</span> -younger now than he did when the photograph was taken -several years before.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>When Kuppelton heard the news his first impulse was to -call his mother immediately on the phone and tell her all -about it. He decided not to, though, because, after all, it -wasn’t completely official. He did talk to Holton about it.</p> - -<p>“Congratulations,” he said as he came over to Holton’s -desk. Mr Murphy had already gone to lunch and it was safe -to talk.</p> - -<p>“Thanks,” said Holton, smiling. He didn’t seem as happy -as Kuppelton expected him to be.</p> - -<p>“Caroline just told me that Mr Murphy told you you were -going to be a customers’ man and I’m certainly glad to see -you’re getting ahead. I always thought that this job would -be too small to hold you.” He paused. “When do you think -you’ll move out?” he asked, looking away.</p> - -<p>“The first of next week probably.” Holton chuckled. “I -guess you’ll be sorry to see me leave.”</p> - -<p>Kuppelton recognized the sarcasm but he didn’t care. -“Sure I’m sorry. Of course, it’s good news, in a way, for me.”</p> - -<p>“It is at that.”</p> - -<p>“You sure got a good deal. Well, you can’t beat City Hall -I always say.”</p> - -<p>“You always say that?”</p> - -<p>“What? Well, no, but.... What I meant was....”</p> - -<p>Robert Holton only laughed.</p> - -<p>Kuppelton tried to talk some more with him but it was -very difficult; they never had liked each other, anyway. -Kuppelton left him to go to lunch.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</span></p> - -<p>He was jubilant but dignified as he put on his coat and -hat and walked down the corridor. He would have a lot of -news to tell his mother tonight. Everything had worked out -nicely and soon he would be making more money and everyone -he knew was happy.</p> - -<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN A YELLOW WOOD ***</div> -<div style='text-align:left'> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will -be renamed. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United -States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™ -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following -the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use -of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for -copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very -easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation -of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project -Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may -do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected -by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark -license, especially commercial redistribution. -</div> - -<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br /> -<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br /> -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span> -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project -Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person -or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the -Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when -you share it without charge with others. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country other than the United States. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work -on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the -phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: -</div> - -<blockquote> - <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most - other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions - whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms - of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online - at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you - are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws - of the country where you are located before using this eBook. - </div> -</blockquote> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project -Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™ -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™ -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg™ License. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format -other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain -Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -provided that: -</div> - -<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'> - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation.” - </div> - - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ - works. - </div> - - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - </div> - - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works. - </div> -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of -the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set -forth in Section 3 below. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right -of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™ -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, -Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up -to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website -and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread -public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state -visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Most people start at our website which has the main PG search -facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. -</div> - -</div> diff --git a/old/66940-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/66940-h/images/cover.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 53515f6..0000000 --- a/old/66940-h/images/cover.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/66940-h/images/title_p_ilo.jpg b/old/66940-h/images/title_p_ilo.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 7eb39d3..0000000 --- a/old/66940-h/images/title_p_ilo.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/66940-h/images/verso_ilo.jpg b/old/66940-h/images/verso_ilo.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d8882aa..0000000 --- a/old/66940-h/images/verso_ilo.jpg +++ /dev/null |
